.■, ■• :<"j 1 V j( ;■'.■! y.' t -.'~. ; \o i v:.i '.O'.' VHOUND.^HE WORLD By E.D. G.PRIME.D.D. mmmmmmtm^. PS I ^i /K .' N /^y |ij|III|!l!!lllilll!!lllliliiliil!i'l;'!liiliiilillj||)|i| AROUND THE WORLD SKETCHES OF TRAVEL THROUGH MANY LANDS and OVER MANY SEAS. By E. D. G. prime, D.D. WITH NUMEROUS ILLUSTRATIONS. NEW YORK: HARPER & BROTHERS, PUBLISHERS, FRANKLIN SQUARE. 1872. Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1872, by Harper & Brothers, In the Office of the Librarian of Congress, at Washington. TO MY BELOVED AND VENERABLE MOTHER, WHO, BEYOND THE GATE OF FOURSCORE, GAVE ME HER PARTING BLESSING, AND WATCHED FOR MY RETURN; WHO NOW CALMLY AWAITS HER SUMMONS TO THE BETTER COUNTRY, THIS VOLUME IS AFFECTIONATELY INSCRIBED. PREFACE. The journey of which the following pages contain a running account was undertaken by the wi-iter mainly for the recovery of health, but also for the general purposes of travel and observation. The volume was designed, not in any measure as an exhaustive account of what is to be seen, and learned, and enjoyed in such a tour (a score of volumes would not contain the record), but to give to the intelligent reader suggestive glimpses of the world of in- terest which such a journey affords. The time devoted to it, a single year, may seem short when the great extent of land and sea is taken into account, but the facilities of travel are so great at the present day that more may now be compressed into a year than formerly into two or three. Nor was the tour made so rapidly as might be supposed. The actual traveling time in going round the world has been reduced to seventy-five days, distrilmted as follows : From New York to San Francisco, by rail, six days ; from San Francisco to Yokohama and Hong Kong, by steam- ship, twenty-seven days (this voyage might be made with perfect ease, at a little more expense of coal, in twenty-two days) ; from Hong Kong to Calcutta, by steam-ship, twelve days ; from Calcutta to Bombay, via Allahabad, by contin- uous rail, a journey of 1450 miles through the heart of India, three days ; from Bombay to Suez, by steam-ship, eleven days ; from Suez to Paris or London, by steam-ship and rail, six days ; from London to New York, ten days. This is taking the most direct route, and does not include viii PREFACE. excursions in various directions to and through different countries on the way, but it leaves between nine and ten months of the year to be spent where and in what way the inclination of the traveler may suggest. Having previous- ly become familiar, by travel, with many of the countries of Europe, the writer devoted the greater part of his time to more eastern lands, spending two months in Japan and China, the same in India, and a portion of the remainder in Egypt and Western Asia. Taking a single year, and starting at the right time, enables the traveler to be in each country, and on every sea, at the most favorable sea- son ; whereas a longer period would inevitably bring him into some Oriental region in midsummer, when the heat is almost intolerable even for residents, or among the typhoons and cyclones of the tropical seas. For the same reason he must needs travel westward, or he will as inevitably find himself in some part of the world at the season when he would wish to be any where else. The natural order, with the sun, is the only practicable course, excepting at great expense of comfort, and no little exposure of health and life. The journey detailed in this volume was arranged, with regard to these contingencies, so accurately, that the high- est rano-e of the thermometer occurrins; in its whole extent was in crossing our own continent at starting, and in land- ing at New York on the return; and yet, in different parts of Asia that were visited, the degree of heat during a large part of the year varies from 100° to 130° Fahrenheit in the shade. In India, the thermometer often stands in summer at 120° and 130° during the day, and does not fall below 100° at night; but we neither saw frost during the entire year, nor a higher degree than 89 of the thermom- eter. The precision with which such a journey can be ar- PREFACE. jjj. ranged beforehand, with the present facilities and regular- ity of travel, may be gathered from the writer's experience. He had planned his entire excursion several months before setting out, with the times of arrival and departure for each country that he expected to visit ; and until reaching Europe, where his plans were intentionally left uncertain, he was scarcely a day out of time at any stage of the jour- ney. . He had arranged to be at Calcutta on the 1st of De- cember, to spend that month and the following (the only two months suitable for traveling) in India, and was there on the 3d, having accomplished his plans of travel in Ja- pan and China with equal precision. Nearly six months before leaving home he had appointed to spend the first week of January, 1870, in the north of India, to be pres- ent at the religious anniversary of the Week of Prayer. He crossed the first range of the Himalaya Mountains the last day of the old year, and about an hour before the new year commenced alighted at the home of a friend in the beautiful valley of the Dehra Doon. He had engaged to meet at Cairo, on the 15 th of February, his brother, Wil- liam . C. Prime, who had started eastward the week before he started west, and was there at the appointed time. His brother was detained by head winds up the Nile, and they did not meet ; but on reaching home and comparing notes, they had the satisfaction of learning that they had spent two days together in Venice at different hotels, a few squares apart, without knowing it. He had arranged to be in Paris on the 1st of June, and was there on that day, and at home again punctually at the end of the year, the last of July. The pleasure of the excursion was greatl}^ enhanced to the writer by the presence of the one who is making with him the voyage of life, without whom it would not have been undertaken. Although an invalid, she accomplished X PREFACE. the journey witK far less fatigue than was anticipated. They enjoyed, during the greater part of the time, the very' pleasant company of B. B. Atterbury, Esq., his daughter and son, Miss Mary Parsons, and Mr. Kilian Yan Eensse- laer, all of New York, who also made the entire circuit. Many agreeable traveling companions, of numerous nation- alities, were met with by the way. To speak of all the pleasures and courtesies received from friends resident in the countries visited would require a separate volume. It is already written in our hearts — but not to be published. For the encouragement of future travelers around the world, it is well to state that the journey was made with- out accident of any kind ; without the occurrence of se- rious illness to any of the party; without missing a steam- er or a train ; without detention for a single day, scarcely for an hour ; and without the loss of the most trifling arti- cle of baggage. More than once were we in peril on the land and on the sea, but under the care of a kind and watchful Providence we made the circuit of the earth and returned to our home in safety, all the objects of our jour- ney attained — health, pleasure, instruction — and a world of information concerning many lands and people gathered, which will be a life-long source of enjoyment. CONTENTS. J-' PAGE NEW YORK TO SALT LAKE 17-24 Early Voyages around the World. — Magellan, Drake. — Pacific Railroad. — Palace Cars.— The Mississippi. — The Missouri.— Omaha. — Meeting a Train.— Indians. — Prairie-dog Villages. — Cheyenne. — Laramie City.— Sabbath on the Plain. — Rocky Moimtains.- Echo and Weber Caflons. — Devil's Gate. Illubteation : Prairie-dog Village, 22. II. THE MORMONS 25-35 Uintah Station.— Stage Ride.— Salt Lake Valley.— Wonderful Fertility.— Irriga- tion.— Salt Lake City.— Brigham Young. — Mormon System.— The People.— Con- dition of the Women.— Joe Smith's Sons.— United States Troops.— Tabernacle. —Temple. — Fugitives. Illustration : View on Salt Lake, 25. III. CALIFORNIA 35-45 Sierra Nevada Mountains.- Union Pacific Railroad.- Cape Horn.- Importance of Pacific Railroad.— Darien Canal.— Reaching San Francisco on Time. — Review of Journey.— A magnificent City.— Furs in Augtist— Seal Rock. — Climate of California.— No Rain in Summer.— Fruits : Grapes, Figs, and Pomegranates. Illustration : On the Sierra Nevadas, 36. IV. THE YOSEMITE VALLEY AND THE BIG TREES 46-68 Few Visitors from California.— Severe Journey. — How to go. — San Joaquin Valley. — Garrote.— Horseback Ride ^Mrs. Gobin. — Descent into the Yosemite Valley. — Mr. Colfax.— Hntcliings's Hotel.— Yosemite Fall.— Sentinel Rock ^Domes.— Bridal Veil.— Mirror Lake. — Vernal and Nevada Falls.— Trout Fishing.— Inspi- ration Point.— The Big Trees.— Fruit-ranches. Illustrations : View of the Yosemite, 46.— Yosemite Fall, 53.— Fall of the Bridal Veil, 55.— Cathedral Rocks, 56.— Mirror Lake, 5T.— Vernal Fall, 58. V. ON THE PACIFIC 69-S5 Steam-ship Japan.— Sabbath Services.— Not meeting the Steamer. — Flying Fish, —Lunar Rainbow.— "The Ocean Wave" Newspaper. — Chinese Concert. — Trial of the Parser.— Dropping a Day. — Where does the Day begin ? Illustration : Flying Fish, 72. xfi CONTEXTS. ' -i- PACE EXCURSIONS IN JAPAN S5-109 First View of Japan. — Gulf of Yeddo. — Typhoon. — Yokohama.— Coolies.— Excur- sion to Daiboots. — Kauagawa.— The Bamboo. — Japanese Ponies. — Beautiful Scenery. — Statue at Daiboots. — Going to Yeddo. — The Yakonins. — Bettoes. — The Tokaido. — Yeddo. — Niphon Hotel. — Japanese Guard. — Temples. — Rev. Mr. Verbeck. — Book-stores. — Atangoreama. — Tycoon's Palace. — Shiba. Illustrations: Entrance to the Gulf of Yeddo, 86. — Japanese Temple, 91. — Vil- lage Life in Japan, 93. — Statue at Daiboots, 95.— Bettoes, 99. — Japanese Kango, 101.— Japanese Resting, 102.— Tea-garden near Y'eddo, 103.— Belfry in Court- yard of Temple, 106. VII. JAPAN AND THE JAPANESE 110-125 Territory.— Mikado.— Daimios. — Kinsats and Nvboos.— Foreign Intercourse.— Character of the People.— Politeness. — Ladies' Dress.— Obi. — Dyeing Teeth black.— Shaving Heads.— Sandals. — Peculiar Customs.— Painting and Drawing. — Porcelain and Lacquer-ware.— Inlaying of Metals.— Beggars.— Saki.— Execu- tions.— Burial.— Religions.— Shintooism.— Buddhism.— Confucianism.— Chris- tianity. —Prospects. Illustrations: Japanese Saluting, 115.— Female Hair - dresser, 116.— Japanese Horse-shoe and Saddle, 119.— Group of Horses, 119.— Athletes, 120.— Behead- ing, 122. VIII. INLAND SEA OP JAPAN 126-132 Suwonada. — Three Thousand Islands. — Cones. — Hiogo. —Osaka. — Tokaido. — Straits of Siraoni-saki.— Panorama of Islands. — Pappenberg.— Nagasaki.— Gale in Eastern China Sea. — Y''anktse-kiang River. Illcstratiot^s : View in the Inland Sea, 126.— Entering the Inland Sea, 128.— Pappenberg Island, 130. IX. SHANGHAI TO HONG KONG 132-144 Approaching Shanghai. — Woosung River.— Chinese Forts.— War-junks.— City of Shanghai.— Taeping Rebels. — Foreign Town. — Wheelbarrows.- Chinese City. — Filth and Smells.— Chinese Criminals.— Modes of Punishment- Duke of Ed- inburg. — International Boat-race; Americans victorious. — Pekin.— Nankin. — Suwonada Steamer. — Hong Kong. — Happy Valley. — Victoria Peak. — Schools. — Pigeon English. — Colonial Prison. — Motto on Post-office. Illustrations ; Chinese Trading-junk, 133.— Chinese Punishment, 137. — Chinese Temple, 139.— Hong Kong, 141. X. CANTON AND ITS SIGHTS 144-159 Early Commerce. — Steamer. —Bogne Forts. — Pearl River. —Villages. — Pawn- brokers. — Pagodas. — Whampoa. — River -population. — Boats. — Streets. — Shah- Miu. — Streets of Canton.— Fan - kwai.— Puntinqua Garden.— Temples. — Mer- maid.— Five Hundred Gods. — Priests.— Honam.— Chinese Dress.— Processions. — Funeral. Illustrations : Chinese Pagoda, 146. — Fort near Canton, 149. — Sedan Chair, 150. XL CHINESE MANNERS AND CUSTOMS 160-172 What they eat— Birds' Nests.— Dog-markets.— Rats.—Porkers.-Fruits.-Small Feet.— Tea ; Growth.— Black and Green, how prepared.— Contrarieties of the CONTEXTS. xiii Chinese.— Dress.— Language.— Coffins.— Competitivp Examinations a Key to Chinese Character. Illustration : Chinese Small Foot, 163. , •A.11. PAGE RELIGIONS OF CHINA 173-183 Confucianism. — Buddhism. — Tauism. — Superstition. — Ancestral Worship. — Cheating the Gods.— Inferior Gods.— Christianity in China.— Effect of Opium War. — Example of irreligious Foreigners. — Difficulty of acquiring the Language. — ^"hat Christian Missionaries have accomplished.— Medical Missionaries.— Dr. Kerr. — Oliphant & Co. Illcstkatios : Casting Lots before a God, 1T5. — Prince Kung, 17T. XIII. MACAO, SINGAPORE, AND PENANG 183-203 Stories of Pirates. — Portuguese at Macao. — Assassination of Amiral.— Churches. — Our Lady of Sorrow. — Camoens's Garden.— Captain Endicott. — Hon. Caleb Cushiug.— Leaving for Calcutta. — Steamers. — The Hindostan.— Captain, Crew, and Passengers. — The Monsoon. — A Storm. — Walter M. Lowrie.— 180th Degree. — Singapore a Paradise.— Cocoanuts, Nutmegs, Cinnamon, etc. — Gardens.- Mr, P. Yoakim. — Rev. Mr. Keasbury.— Rev. Mr. Grant.— Major Malan. — Straits of Malacca. — Penang. — Rev. Mr. Macdonald. — Chinese. — Mahomet Noordin. — Tropical Vegetation Boa Constrictors.— Bay of Bengal. — Turtles. — Snakes. — East Indiamen. Illcsteations : Macao, 185.— Coolie Barracoons at Macao, 187. XIV. CALCUTTA 203-221 Hoogly River.— Lady seized by Tiger.— Palms and Acacias. — Banyan Tree.— Palace of ex-King of Onde.— Scene at Lauding.— Spence's Hotel.— Hindoo Serv- ants.— Aroused by Jackals.— Crows, Kites, and Adjutants.— "City of Palaces." — Maidan.— Gay Sceue.— Residences.— Public Buildings.— Tanks. — Watering Streets. — Institutions.— Colleges. — Asiatic Society. — American Zenana Mission. ■Serampore.— Carey, Ward, Marshman, Judson, Henry Martyn, Dr. George Smith. — Hindoo Festival. Illusteatioh : Entrance to the Hoogly, 204. XV. GOVERNMENT OF INDIA ; ELTfOPE ANS, ETC 221-234 Antiquity of the Nation.— Alexander the Great— East India Company.— Present Rulers.— Viceroy. — Education. — I^uiversity, Colleges, and Schools.— Complicity with Idolatry.— European Population.— Eurasians. — Heat.— Punkas. — Living. — Rainfall.— Sand-storms. — American Ice. Illcbtbation t A Sand-storm, 233. x\a PUBLIC WORKS, PRODUCTIONS, ETC 234-243 Roads.— Canals.— Telegraph.— Railways.— Opium.— The Poppy.— Preparing the Drug.— Opium Market. XVII. THE NATIVES OF INDIA; CASTE, ETC 244-254 Native Society. — Hindoos. —Mohammedans. — Sikhs. — Parsees. — Costumes — Jewels. — Women of India. —Native Wealth. — Food. — Caste. —Brahmins. — Kshatryas. — Vaishyas. — Sudras. — Breaking Caste. — Pariahs. xiy CONTENTS. XVIII. CALCUTTA TO BENARES 254-270 Leaving Calcutta.— Grand Durbar.— Uowrah.— East India Railway.— Cold Nights. —Scenery.— Plain of India.— Mogul-Serai.— The Ilindoo Iloly City.— Monkey Temple.— The Ganges.- Man Mandil.— Grand Mosque.— Ghauts.— Brahminy Bnlls.— Burning the Dead.— Rajah of Benares.— Elephant Ride.— Golden Tem- ple.— The Ancient City. Illustrations : The Grand Mosque, 262.— Burning the Dead, 203.- A Hindoo Temple, 268.— Ruins near Benraes, 2T0. XIX. BENARES TO ALLAHABAD 2T1-281 Crossing the Ganges by Moonlight.— Chunar.— Goddess Kali.— Thugs.— Discov- ery and Suppression. —Major Sleeman'sNarrative.— The Jumna at Allahabad.— Railroad Bridge.— Rev. Mr. Walsh. —The City of God.— Fortress.— Great Mela. —Pilgrims.— raquirs.—Governmeut Connection with Idolatry. XX. THE MUTINY ; CAWNPORE AND LUCKNOW 281-296 Diversity of Opinions.— Anniversary of Battle of Plassey.— Greased Cartridges.— Chupatties. — Outbreak at Duudum. —Meerut. — Delhi. —Allahabad.— Agra.- Cawnpore.— Nana Sahib.— General Wheeler.— Massacre of Soldiers.- Massacre of Women and Children.— Well at Cawnpore.— Memorial Garden.— Monument. —Massacre of Missionaries.— Suttee Chowra Ghaut.— Luckuow.— King of Oude. —Residency.— The Siege.— Havelock.— Sir Henry Lawrence.— Persian News- paper. — "Voyage round the World." XXI. AGRA AND THE TAJ 296-310 Only Rain in India.— East Indian Hotel.— Bed and Bedding.— Fort and Palace.— Heavy Cannon.- Pearl Mosque.— The Taj.— Gateway.— Park.— Shah Jehan.— Noor Mahal.— Mosque and Jowab.— Cost of Buildiug.—Terraces.— Minarets.— Description.— Interior.— Sarcophagi.— Inscriptions.— Song and Echo.— Chris- tian Village at Secundra.- Tomb of Akbar.— His Palaces and Wealth.— Arrested for Stealing. Illustration : The Taj {Frontispiece), 301. XXIL DELHI 311-320 Old Delhi.— Shah Jehan. — Gates. — Chandnee Chowk.— Fortress.— Diwan-a-im. — Diwan-i-khas. — Peacock Throne. — The Palace. — Jumma Musjid. — Kootub- Minar.— Iron Pillar.— Divers.— Ruins.— Rev. James Smith. — Blowing up the Magazine. — Post-office at Delhi. XXIII. AMONG THE HIMALAYAS 320-328 Saharunpur.— Presbyterian Mission. — Government Stud.— Omnibuckus. — Horses. — Road over Sewalic Range.— Drawn by Coolies.— Leopards.— Tiger-hunting. — Doctor Fayrer.— Duke of Edinburg.— Wild Elephants.— Suakes.-Valley of Dehra Doon.— Rev. Mr.Woodside. XXIV. ON THE HIMALAYAS 328-336 Ascending the Mountain. — Jhanpan. — Monkeys.— Wild Peacocks. — Mussoorie. — CONTENTS. XV Landour.— View from the Summit.— Thibet and Cashmere.— Dr. Kellett.— The Sabbath. — Meneely's Bell. — Tea Plantations.— Praying Machine. — Pacific Kail- road. — Week of Prayer. — Amballa. — Rev. Dr. Morrison. — Lodiana. — Cabool Princes. — The Koh-i-noor Diamond ; its History. Illusteations : A Gorge in the Himalayas, 320.— A Praying Machine, 333. LODIANA TO BOMBAY 336-343 Suttee at Cavvnpore. — Jubbulpore. — Colony of Thugs. — Journey by Dak-gharry. — The Nerbudda. — Wild Horses. — Night Journey. — The Jungle. — Tigers Loading Revolver. — An Accident. — Dak - bungalows. — Nagpore. — Mahratta Country.— Cotton.— Egutpoora.— Tunnels. XXVI. BOMBAY 343-350 Island of Bombay. — Portuguese Colony. — Harbor. — Population. — Varieties of Races.— Buildings.— Parsees.— Towers of Silence.— Malabar Hill Burning the Dead.— Caves of Elephanta.— Mr. Kittredge.— Buddhist Monastery at Kenhari. —Dr. Bhau Daji.— Indian Jugglers.— Cocoanut Grove.— Hospital for Animals. Illustbation : A Bullock Carriage, 345. XXVII. BOMBAY TO CAIRO 350-361 Leaving India.— British Rule. — Fearful Scene at Sea : two Men overboard.— Aden. —Broad-tail Sheep.— Red Sea.— Straits of Bab-el-Mandeb.— Constellation of the Southern Cross.— Mocha. — Abyssinian Hero.— Djiddah, Port of Mecca.— Gale.— Suez.— Crossing of the Israelites.- Dr. Robinson.— The Suez Canal Chartering a Steamer.— Ismailia.— Reaching Cairo.— Shepheard's Hotel Strange Cham- bermaid. Illdstuations : Suez, 355.— Night on the Canal, 359. XXVIII. CAIRO TO JERUSALEM 362-375 The Citadel.— Caliphs and Mamelukes.— Old Cairo.— Memphis.— The Nile.— Pyra- mids and Sphinx.— Backshish.-Leaving Cairo.— Meeting Friends.— Alexan- dria.— Catacombs.— Pompey's Pillar.— Alexandrian Library.— Light-house of Pharos.- Bound for the Holy Land.— Port Said.— Englishmen.— Experience In Loudon.— Americans abroad — Eftects of our War.— Reaching Jafl'a.— Orange Groves.— Russian Convent at Ramleh.— Muezzin's Call to Prayer.— The Sab- bath. — Going up to Jerusalem.— Mediterranean Hotel. ILLUSTEATIONS : The Pyramids, 364.— A Street in Cairo, 365. XXIX THE HOLY CITY t ." 375-388 The Road to Calvary.— Pilate's House.— Via Dolorosa Chapel of the Flagella- tion.— Arch of Ecce Homo.— Houses of Dives and Lazarus.— Church of Holy Sepulchre.— Stone of Unction.— The Sepulchre.— Hill of Calvary.— Chapel of St. Helena.— Invention of the Cross.— Latin Chapel.— Vesper Service.— Father An- tonio.— Mount Zion.— Bishop Gobat.— Jews' Wailing Place.— Mosque of Omar. —Temple of Solomon.— Gate called Beantiful.—Gethsemane.— Mount of Olives. —King David's Flight.— Bethlehem.— Bethany.— Valley of the Jordan.— At- tacked by Bedouins.— Sabbath in Jerusalem. Illustkations : Via Dolorosa, 376.— Church of the Holy Sepulchre, 377.— The Beautiful Gate, 383.— Jerusalem and Gethsemane, 384. Xvi CONTENTS. XXX. PAGE TO DAMASCUS AND CONSTANTINOPLE 389-401 Desolation of the Holy Land. — Leaving Jerusalem. — Robberies. — Ramleh. — Jaflfa. — Mount Carmel. — Beyrout. — Messrs. Goodell and Bird.— Druses. — Army expect- ed from China. — Massacre of ISGO.— Grandeur of Lebanon Leaving for Damas- cus. — Diligence. — French Road. — Valley of Ccelo-Syria. — River Abana.— Damas- cus. — Street called Straight. — Rev. Mr. Crawford.— Abd- el- Kader. — Khans. — Mohammed. — Mount Hernion. — Sturza.— Cloud of Locusts. — Leaving Beyrout. — Cyprus.— Rhodes.-Patmos.— Smyrua.—Polycarp.— Mytilene. — Teuedos.— Dar- danelles.— Gallipoli.—Stamboul. Illustrations : Beyrout, 392. — Damascus, 398.— Patmos, 400. XXXI. STAMBOUL TO NAPLES 402-417 Storms at Constantinople; SnovF, Rain, Mud.— Political State of Turkey.— Prog- ress among the People. — Armenians. — Bibles. — Dr. Hamlin.— Robert College. —Leaving Stamboul.— Sea of Marmora. — Turkish Naval Oiiicers.— Lauding at Night. — The Pirseus. — Athens.— The Acropolis Mars Hill.— The Puyx.— Mar- athon. — Party murdered by Brigands. — Syra. — Cape Matapan. — Navarino. — Cephalonia. — Zante. — Gulf of Corfu. — Brindisi. — Banditti. — Entering Naples. — Beggars. — Bay df Naples ; Vesuvius, Sorrento, Pozzuoli, Baioe, Cumw, Lake Avernus, River Styx, Elysian Fields. — Herculaueum and Pompeii. — National Museum.— Cemeteries of Naples. Illustration: Frieze of the Parthenon, 40T. XXXII. ROME TO FLORENCE 418-436 Old Route to Rome. — Terracina.— Roman Frontier.— Passports.— Illumination at Rome.— Present at two Councils. — Pius IX. and Herod. — Arch of Titus. — Sacred Vessels of the Jewish Temple.— The Pantheon. — Anecdote of Charles V. — Bar- berini. — Raphael's Skull. — The Tiber.— Overflow.— Catacombs: Origin; St. Se- bastian and St. Agnese; Bodies; Inscriptions.— Sun shining ou Rome. — Flor- ence. — View from San Miniato. — UfEzi and Pitti Palaces. — Pisa, Leaning Tower, Galileo. — Chandelier.— Victor Emanuel. — Waldeuses. — Religious Liberty. Illustrations: Ground-plan of the Catacombs, 428.— Florence, from San Min- iato, 434. XXXIII. VENICE HOMEWARD 436-465 Piercing the Apennines.— City of the Sea.— How to enjoy Venice. — Moonlight and Midnight.— Bell of San Marco.— Vienna.— Change in Goverumeut.— Mausoleum of Capncin Church Duke of Reichstadt— Maximilian.— Prague.— "The Bo- hemian Fashion."— Tycho Brahe.—Huss.— Jerome.— Dresden.— Berlin.— Char- lottenberg.— Wittenberg. — Luther and Melancthon.— Ninety-five Theses.— Pots- dam.— Frederick the Great.— Cologne.— Cathedral.— The Rhine.— Worms.— Weissenberg.— Strasbourg. — The Siege. — The War.— Nancy, Bar le Due, etc. — Paris. — London. — Isle of Wight. — England. — Scotland. — Ireland. —Atlantic Ocean.— Home again. Illustration : Biugeu on the Rhine, 448. AROUND THE WORLD. I. NEW YOKK TO SALT LAKE. A jorENET around the world is a very different under- taking to-day from what it was when Magellan set his prow toward the setting sun, and sailed onward — onward — until, with the rising sun, his ships returned to the harbor of Se- ville. It does not appear to have been well established, even among scientific men of that day, that the earth was round, and those who admitted the truth seem to ha^•e had a strong apprehension that it would not be safe for naviga- tors to venture too far over the other side ; they might not be able to make their way up again. The ships, too, in which these earlv vova^-ers ventured out into unknown seas were mere shallops compared with those which now trav- erse every ocean. The vessels in which Columbus first crossed the Atlantic are said to have been not more than a hundred tons burden — less than half the tonnage of the pleasure yachts whose safe passage over the same ocean within a few years has been accounted a great nautical ex- ploit. The ships of Magellan, which were the first to com- pass the globe, were two of 130 tons, two of 90, and one of 60. When, nearly half a century later, Sir Francis Drake left the shores of England to sail around the world, the five ships that composed his fleet numbered respectively 100, 80, 50, 30, and 15 tons. To attempt to cross any ocean at the present dav in such vessels, much more to brave all the B 18 AROUND TEE WOELD. perils of tlie Eastern Seas, would be accounted a piece of reckless hardihood. The heroism of those early navigators of unexplored seas is beyond all praise. For two centuries after it was iirst accomplished, the voyage around the world was not made within less than three years. This was the time consumed by the ships of Magellan. He, unfortunately, did not live to share in the final glory of the achievement due to his genius and hero- ism, having fallen in a conflict with the natives of the Phil- ippine Islands the second year out. Sir Francis Drake was three years in sailing round. Captain Cook was three years in making each of his voyages ; and the last, in which lie also fell by the hands of savages, extended to four years. I^ow the circuit is a mere holiday excursion, and may be made in less than three months. It was to me a coincidence of some interest that the day (August 1, 1869) on which I had completed all my arrange- ments for the journey of which some account is given in the pages following was precisely three hundred and fifty years from that on which the first circumnavigator of the globe left the harbor of Seville. My plans for the journey had been definitely made several months before, and a complete programme of the entire tour prepared, including every country that I expected to visit, and almost every day of the year. I was desirous to leave immediately on the open- ing of the Pacific Railroad, but I delayed in order to reach the Japan and China Seas at a period of the year when they are free from the typhoons which sweep over them with destructive violence during the summer months, and also to reach India just at the beginning of winter, the only season in which a stranger can travel there with com- fort or safety. The appointed time having arrived, we left New York by the New Jersey Central Railroad, and on the evening of the following day were in Chicago, where we spent the night. I had telegraphed in advance for accom- modations in the Pullman Pacific cars, which at that time were running regularly no farther east than Chicago. On ^'I:W YORE TO SALT LAKE. 19 reaching the station of the jSTorthwestern Road the next morning, -I was most agreeably sui-prised to find that Mr. Pulhnan had set apart for the exclusive use of our party one of his finest palace cars — the " Promontory," then en- tirely new ; and that, to add still farther to the pleasure of the excursion, the secretary of the company, Mr. Charles AV. Angell, in whom I recognized a former friend, had made his arrangements to accompany us as far as Omaha, five hundred miles on the way, to see us safely across the Mis- souri Eiver and out on the broad prairie. These moving palaces have now become familiar to the traveling world, but at the time we entered the " Promontory" it was an event to find ou wheels and to take with us a luxurious home — a parlor by day, and ample staterooms by night, in which we lived and slept with as much comfort as in a ho- tel. And I may here add that in no other part of the world did we find, either on land or on sea, such luxurious accommodations, or travel in so much ease. We would gladly have taken the same mode of conveyance all the way round. We crossed the Mississippi by the high bridge at Fulton, and entered what then appeared to be the granary of the West. The summer of 1869 had been so wet that from the time of leaving New Jersey we did not see one fine field of Indian corn until we entered Iowa, and the wheat crop had also been severely affected ; but almost immedi- ately after we crossed the Mississippi the corn-fields of the West assumed their traditional grandeur, and the whole country had a new face. In the evening M'e had an illumination of our car, which was abundantly supplied with lamps, concealed in the day by mirrors. Two Har- vard students, bound westward on a hunting expedition upon the prairies, called, and spent the evening with us, and it passed away as rapidly as the train. Our first night on the palace car was one of quiet repose, and the morning brought us to Council Bluffs, on the Missouri, where we M'ere ferried over to Omaha, the bridge at this point being 20 AROUND THE WOULD. then in course of erection. Here we bade farewell to our escort, and struck out into the wide regions of the West, speeding onward and onward — one hundred miles after an- other — never ascending a perceptible elevation, and scarce- ly ever deviating from a straight line. At North Bend, on the Platte Kiver, we spoke a trahi from San Francisco bound east. It was like meeting a ship in mid-ocean. There was no little excitement as we descried each other in the distance across the prairie ; and when we halted at the station I displayed the Stars and Stripes, which I carried not so much for protection as for dear remembrance in the many and far-distant lands that we Avere to visit. We had a few moments of hasty con- versation and inquiry for the news from either direction, and when the passengers by the other train learned that we also were bound for New York, but by way of the setting sun, they sent up three hearty cheers for the old flag and for the party that was to bear it around the world. Amid our answering cheers the trains moved off, east and west, and were soon lost to each other in the distance. Late in the day, after dining at Grand Island, I went out on the engine to enjoy the excitement of scudding over the wide ocean of land. We were then beyond the sight of homes, and the stations on the road were few and far between. We overtook a troop of horses that were roam- ing wild over the prairie. As they saw the train approach- ing they selected the track for a race-course, and started for the Pacific Ocean at the top of their speed. But the iron horse was too much for them. Every now and then we overhauled the coursers, when the shrill whistle of the en- gine, instead of driving them from the track, only inspired them with new vigor, and imparted fresh speed. A stern chase is usually a long chase, but we ran them down, and they struck out into the prairie right and left. Then we came upon a flock of prairie birds, which seemed possessed with the idea that they could not escape from the lines of telegraph poles and wires on either side of the railroad NEW YORK TO SALT LAKE. 21 track, and for a long time we kept them company ; but at length they also disappeared, and we had the com-se all to ourselves, and improved it well. The ride was exciting, without fear of danger ou the level plain, and as we haul- ed up at the next station, the engineer took out his watch, and, turning to me, said," One hour and five minutes." On my asking how many miles we had run between the two stations, he said " Forty." And yet, so perfectly level, and straight, and smooth was the road, that I had sat upon the engine with as much ease as in the car. At Plum Creek, where we were detained half an hour by a heated axle, we found 150 United States soldiers sta- tioned to guard the road against the Indians. I called on the commanding officer at his tent near by, and learned from him that a band of hostile Indians had crossed the track a few nights before, about four miles below. Of course I communicated the pleasing intelligence to the la- dies, whose chief terror in undertaking the journey had been the wild Indians on the Pacific Railroad. But, to re- assure them (as none of us had any extra hair that we wish- ed to lose), I got out my revolvei', and, lest some one should be hurt, took the precaution not to load the dangerous weap- on, and no hostile savages made their appearance that night. The next morning broke upon us nearly 500 miles west from Omaha. We were then ascending the Black Hills, the highest elevation on the Pacific Road, the station at Sherman being 8264 feet above the sea level. The coun- try was beginning to assume the air of desolation which marks the Great American Desert. On all sides were roll- ing hilk, to which the antelopes that we scared up in great numbers bounded off with the fleetness of the wind, after pausing for a moment to examine the cars. They were frequently within rifle-shot. Whole counties of prairie-dog villages skirted the road, the curious little animals usually sitting bolt upright on their haunches, like statues, on the tops of their houses, or scampering away as we passed their towns. 22 AROUND THE WORLD. rr.AIKIE-UOli VILLAGE. Clievenne was at that time the most populous city on the line of the road west of Omaha, although it was less than two years old. On account of its relative importance, we had selected it as the most desirable place for stopping to spend the Sabbath. After breakfasting, I asked one of the oldest inhabitants, an intelligent-looking youth, what was the population of their city. He replied very serious- ly that about a year ago it was 12,000, but they had shot, and hung, and killed so many it now numbered only 4000. We congratulated ourselves that we had concluded to go farther on, and accoixiingly, about noon on Saturday, we left the train, and found comfortable quarters at the hotel at Laramie City. This place is situated on the table-land known as Lara- mie Plains — an immense plateau 71 3-4 feet above the level of the sea, without a mountain or hill in sight, looking north A^HW YOEK TO SALT LAKE. 23 or south, but with tlie Black Hills on the east, and the Rocky Mountains, with their perpetual snow, on the west. From our windows we looked across the vast plain direct- ly out into the deep ether, just as one looks across the ocean into the sky, the rotundity of the earth being as distinct in the one case as the other. The view of the Rocky Moun- tains, on the west, was grand beyond description. They seemed to come almost to our feet, although they were in reality some 60 miles distant, and in that perfectly clear atmosphere it was a calm delight just to sit and gaze upon the mighty chain with which the Almighty had bound to- gether this vast continent. I had heard it said on the way that it never rains on Laramie Plains, bnt we had not been there more than two hours before the rain commenced pouring in torrents, and it continued to come down as abun- dantly for at least an hour, giving us a supply of wholesome water, which can not be fonnd for a thousand miles on the Pacific Railroad. The Sabbath passed pleasantly. In the morning we at- tended the service of the Rev. Mr, Cornell, an Episcopal missionary, and in the evening I addressed an assembly of residents and miners, who filled the largest public room in the town. At the close of the evening service, man}^ whom we had met as perfect strangers gathered round us, and we were detained long by our mutual expressions of interest in finding that we had common sympathies and hopes, though belonging to many different branches of the Chris- tian famil}'. The place, we w^ere assured, was not what it was a year before. It had been thinned out by the process resorted to in the neighboring city of Cheyenne. We heard accounts of summary executions ha^^ng taken place in the streets, but a more orderly or quiet town of two thousand inhabitants on a Sunday I have never seen in any part of the countr3\ Taking the train again at noon on Monday, we crossed the Plains, and commenced tlie ascent of the Rocky Moun- tains, if ascent it could be called when we passed up and over 24 AROUND THE WORLD. them so ffi'adiiallv that we did not know it. "We had been in sight of the distant peaks for two days while stopping at Laramie City ; but there were no lofty ranges to cross, and no mountains towering above us, until long after we began the descent on the other side. It was simply a scene of wild desolation — utter barrenness, as if the soil had been cursed that it should not bring forth. There was only an occasional bunch of wild sage, almost as dreary looking as the barren soil. One who has not seen this portion of the Pacific Eailroad, and other portions of the Great American Desert for nearly a thousand miles in extent, can form no idea of the dreary waste that stretches on and on, until the eye longs to rest on something fresh and green, or even upon a rock ; for, contrary to all our ideas of the Eocky Moun- tains, not a rock was to be seen in this portion of the route. It was not until we entered the Echo Canon that the mountains assumed any grandeur ; but here, and in the Weber CaQon, a scene of wonderful magnificence opened upon us. On one hand (the left in passing westward) all is smooth — not a rock to be seen, althouo-h the mountains rise to a sublime height from the bed of the ^Yeber Eiver ; but the opposite side of the narrow defile is composed of towering rocks, assuming all forms of magnificent propor- tions, sometimes towering up in vast precipices toward the skies, and at others stretching out over the road, or assum- ing grotesque shapes. It was in the Echo Canon that Brig- ham Young threatened to destroy the army of General Sidney Johnston by rolling rocks down upon them as the}' marched through the narrow causeway, when the army was sent to look after the Mormons. The passage of the ri\-er and the railroad out of this weird reojion into the Salt Lake Yalley is called the Devil's Gate. The name was given on- account of the fearful wildness of the scenery to which it leads, but it is equally appropriate as leading to the moral scene to which it introduces the traveler as he enters the Salt Lake Yalley. Echo City is the border town of the ]\Iormon Territory of L^'tah. THE MORMONS. 25 VIEW ON SALT LAKE. II. THE MORMONS. At Uintah Station, about a mile from the "Devil's Gate," we left the cars and took stage for Salt Lake City, thirty-five miles distant. The branch railroad was not then completed. The stage-road was rough and stony for a few miles, but the greatest inconvenience arose from the innumerable little streams which crossed it, as the means of irrigating the whole eastern portion of the valley. Many of these water-courses are natural, but others have been made by divisions and subdivisions, in order to carry the water to parts which could not otherwise be irrigated. The streams are seldom bridged, and the gullies made in the loose soil were a great source of discomfort to the stage traveler, to whom they prove too decidedly anti-dyspeptic for a pleasure excursion. But the stages and horses were 2Q AROUND THE WOULD. good, and the ride, which M'as accomplished within about live hours, I would not have lost, even at the cost of a more severe shaking than we received. It gave ns a tine oppor- tunity for seeing the marvelous transformation of a desert into fruitful fields. Compared with what it was when the Mormons entered it twenty-one years before, the valley was more like a creation than the result of human skill and labor, and yet the change has been wrought almost ex- clusively by irrigation. The vast mountain barrier which stretches along the eastern portion of the valley is an im- mense fountain, streams of the purest water issuing from its sides at every point, and furnishing the means by which this once arid desert has been converted into one of the most fertile plains to be found on the face of the continent. "When the Mormons entered this valley, it was like the des- olate mountains over which we had passed for hundreds of miles — a perfect waste of sand and wild sage, or devil's bush ; but, within a little more than twenty years from their first immigration, they had extended a line of farms along the eastern shore of the lake, sixty miles in extent — farms that equal in fertility the finest prairies in the East. We traversed thirty-five miles of these cultivated fields, and every" mile only increased our admiration of the re- sults of this system of utilizing pure mountain water. The most beautiful crops of wheat formed the staple produc- tion — beautiful not alone because they were abundant, but because ripened and harvested, so far as they had been gathered, without a drop of rain, the straw and the ear so bright that they shone like silver in the sun. The fields of Indian corn and sorghum were standing up more luxuriant and taller than any we had seen east of the Mississippi, and equal to any we had seen in Iowa. The orchards on every farm were loaded with fruit, some of it ripening, but the most in about the same stage as at the East in the same latitude. The roadside, for the greater part of the Avay from Uintah to Salt Lake City, was a succession of apple, and plum, and peach orchards; the fruit, especially the THE MORMONS. 27 apples, of large size, and the trees literally bending to the ground with their burdens. At Salt Lake City, Governor Durkee, in speaking of the wonderful fertility of the valley under Mormon tillage, said he could point out to me a lot of ten acres which had produced 900 bushels of wheat at a single crop ; and Mr Hooper, tlie delegate to Congress from Utah, also stated to me that there were in the agricultural bureau of the Terri- toiy records of the production of wheat at the rate of 93 bushels to the acre. These, of course, were exceptional cases, and were the result of manuring as well as irrigation, and the most careful cultivation. By the same system of irrio;ation, Salt Lake Citv, which had not a tree or shrub when it was first settled by the Mormons, is now a park of locust and cottonwood-trees, the former raised entirelv from the seed, and the latter transplanted from the caiious in the mountains. Every street has its stream of water, and every garden in its turn is regularly watered under the direction of commissioners. This is certainly a won- derful change for a score of years. One can not but ad- mire the enterprise which has created a garden out of a vast desert, but the amount of labor expended in preparing the soil for cultivation has been small compared with the toil of the early pioneers at the East, who had dreary for- ests to clear away before they could go to work upon the soil itself. Here the settlers had only to turn the water upon the soil, and the work was almost done. This is the outside of Mormonism, and fair enough it is. The plague-spot, the corrupt system of imposture and delu- sion, is in the homes of the Salt Lake City and Yalley. I went to Salt Lake City to learn upon the spot what Mor- monism is ; and having had the best opportunities for ac- quiring the information desired, I came away thoroughly convinced that it is a system of the grossest iniquity, and, on the part of the leaders, an arrant imposture upon a poor deluded people. There is much to admire in the ma- terial prosperity of the Territory, in the industry, order, and 28 AROUND THE WORLD. public spirit of the people, and even in tlie administration of affairs by the Mormon leaders ; but one needs only to examine with a careful eye, and to reflect upon what he learns, in order to be convinced that the spirit and purposes of the whole thing are selfish and wicked. I have never met with any person, man or woman, who, having been at Salt Lake City, wishes to go there again. The feeling of disgust which comes over a stranger on entering the place increases every hour; and when once the city is left be- hind, a sense of relief springs up as if a load were taken off the shoulders. The very atmosphere seems loaded with a moral pestilence, and an indescribable feeling of shame comes over the mind as we walk the streets and meet with men and women who are living lives which ought to be lives of shame to them. I did not call to pay my respects to Brigham Young simply because I had no respects to pay to such a man, in such a house as he keeps. Immedi- ately upon reaching Salt Lake City I received from a Mor- mon high in position a polite invitation to call upon " the President," which I as politely declined. I could learn nothing from him that I could not learn more satisfactorily and more reliably elsewhere, and I had no mawkish curios- ity to gratify. I became satisfied, from what I heard while there, that great injury has been done to the Mormons themselves, and that there has been much compromise of dignity, if not of principle, by visitors of all ranks, and among them Christians and Christian ministers, who have shown, an eagerness to be presented to the arch-leader of Mormonism. The inference which the Mormon people draw is, that he must be a great and good man when the great and the good wish to pay him reverence ; and Brig- ham Young himself is puffed up by the attentions which are shown him by persons from the outer world. The Mormon people generally are sincere, devout be- • lievers in the system of religion which they have adopted, and in the men who rule over them. They are an igno- rant class, gatliered from the lowest walks of life, and have THE MORMONS. 29 no means of acquiring knowledge but through Moruiou sources. The schools which they sustain do not afford the means of real education, although one or tw^o of them have been greatly improved of late. The sale of books and of all sorts of literature, standard and periodical, at the book- stores in the city, is made almost exclusively to " Gentiles,'" and it woukJ be very difficult to diffuse light among the Mormons. Tliey have, almost without exception, implicit confidence in their spiritual rulers, who, they are taught to believe, are divinely commissioned to exercise authority over them, and whose integrity it would be a sin to call in question. The leaders, on the other hand, I believe to be as unscrupulous a set of men as can be found. There doubtless are some exceptions, but these exceptional cases are not amono; those who are admitted to the councils of the actual rulers of the community. The system of Mor- monism, as now administered, has three foundation stones — Love of Power, Ava-rice, mid Lust : on these it rests. and it has no better basis, as facts patent to every intelli- gent visitor will show. The system, to begin with, was an arrant imposture, not having even the redeeming feature of fanaticism to excuse those who concocted it. It has been kept up by impostors. who pretend to have received divine revelations to carry out their plans. And what are their purposes ? Here is a large community, gathered from all parts of the world, living under an absolute despotism. The people have nc» share in the government, although living under the protec- tion of a republic. The form of voting is a mere sham, as the rulers know just how every man votes, and he must needs vote one way. The acts of the rulers, especially in their financial affairs, are sometimes submitted to the ap- proval of the people in public assembly, but in such a man- ner that they can form no judgment, and they are all vir- tually compelled to hold up their hands together. Every thing is under the control of a few men who pretend to a divine commission to rule the people. No ideas of repub- 30 AROUND THE WORLD. lican freedom, of personal responsibility and rights, are permitted to enter the minds of the community ; and the whole police system is so perfect that it is next to impossi- ble for them to acquire such ideas. The leaders, too, are perfectly unscrupulous in the exercise of their power. I could give instances, which I have received on the best au- thority, in which they have not hesitated to instigate crime and to authorize acts which no man would dare to execute on his own responsibility, but in the performance of which the willing tools are found in an obedient people, who are taught that the voice of the tyi'ants is the voice of God. Can any one doubt that these men, the rulers, are keeping up this delusion for the sake of perpetuating their own power ? Again, we find a large, industrious, frugal community toiling on their farms, paying into the public treasury one tenth of all their productions, often called upon to con- tribute to public improvements, and, besides this, heavily mortgaged in person and property to pay off all the ex- penses of emigration and settlement. I have heard a great deal said about the benevolence of the Mormon authorities in bringing these poor people from distant parts of the world and settling them upon comfortable farms, but lib- erality is one of the last ideas that have been entertained in connection with the matter. Every cent is charged to the emigrant, and must be paid with enormous interest, so that it is, in reality, a grand money-making system. This is proved from the fact tliat the rulers of tliis people are rolling up large fortunes, A great portion of the people's money goes into the public treasurj^, but not one of the people knows what becomes of it after that. There are pretended financial reports, but no auditors. Brigham Young snaps his fingers in the face of his inferior ofiicers, and asks them if they have confidence in him ; and when they reply, as they must, that they have confidence, he tells them that is enough. Faith is all that is necessary. Brig- ham Young is immensely %vealthy, and lives like a prince. THE MORMONS. 3J and the rulers, as a general thing, are rapidly acquiring wealth. While these men are preaching to the people self- denial and devotion to the public interest, and calling for their money without stint, no one can doubt that they them- selves are governed by the greed of gold. There is another foundation stone to the system. Al- most every man who is able to suppoi't more than one wife has more, but any person who visits tlie Territory, and learns what every one can learn, and yet imagines that re- ligion, or any thing but the basest passions of man's ani- mal nature had or has any thing to do with this part of the system, must be very credulous. For instance, I saw and conversed with one man, now more than seventy years of age, who formerly lived in a New England town, and mar- ried, in his early life, a New England woman. He joined the Mormons with his wife, and when she was ffettino- somewhat in years he took another wife, of course a young one; and now that the second is getting older, he has just taken a young girl of eighteen. Can any one doubt his motives ? Brigham Young's wives are differently enumer- ated from thirty-five to forty. Heber Kimball had four- teen when he died a short time since. The pretense that a woman can not be saved, in the highest sense, without be- ing married, and other like impostures connected with this part of the system, only add a darker, fouler stain to the character of these men, who are li\ing to fulfill the lusts of the flesh. The condition of the women is deplorable. They liave adopted the system of Mormonism as a religion ; they con- fide in their rulers, believing them to be honest, but they regard pol^^gamy as a cross, and speak of it as such ; a cross which they are bound to bear, while, with scarcely an exception, every woman would prefer to be an only wife. Many wear this cross in deep sorrow, such as the circumstances would naturally produce. From extensive inquiry of those who had every opportunity to be well in- formed, I became satisfied that the women of the Mormon 32 AROUND THE WOULD. community are far from being satisfied with their state, whatever representations to the contrary may have been made. I was told by a gentleman who had conversed with some of Brigham Young's daughters, who are com- paratively well educated, that they declared positively they would never marry a man who had another wife. The future of Mormonism — what is to come of it, and what is to come out of it — are questions of no little mo- ment to the American people. We have among us a com- munity aspiring to be a sovereign state ; until the opening of the Pacific Railroad, isolated by its position from the rest of our countrv, but now brought into direct commnui- cation with all j^arts of the land ; a thriving people, con- stantly increasing by emigration fi"om other countries ; with social institutions not only opposed, but abhorrent to the great mass of the nation; the leaders, and the people with them, contemning the authority of the general gov- ernment, and resisting it when they dare ; and all this dis- loyalty sustained and intensified by fanaticism. What is to come of it ? After studying the subject upon the ground, my appre- hensions of any real difiiculty in dealing with the matter, either by moral means or by governmental authority, have subsided. There are no signs of relenting or of voluntary submission on the part of the rulers, nor will there be while they can in security retain power and make money out of the people as they are now doing, and living in the unre- strained indulgence of their lusts. There are no signs of any extensive disaffection on the part of the people. They are an ignorant class, have little opportunity of becoming better informed; they have adopted the system from re- ligious motives, and have given themselves up to it with blind devotion. But there are elements at work which I have no doubt will, ere long, lead to an explosion, so that tlie whole thing shall go to pieces of itself, even without the employment of military or extra-judicial force. Were there no other THE MORMONS. 33 ground of discord, it is not to be expected that the people, who are now getting into communication with the rest of the world by means of the Pacific Railroad, will long re- main blind to the character of the despotism that is exer- cised over them, or that they will continue to pour theii- money into the coffers of a few rapacious men who are rolling up wealth. Some of the more successful have al- ready declined paying their tithes, and have been cut oft' from the Church. There were pointed out to me at Salt Lake Cit}' the elegant residences of four brothers, together worth half a million of dollars or more, who came some time since to the point at w^hich, in their opinion, compli- ance with the increasing demands of Brigham Young and his apostles ceased to be a virtue. One of them sent five hundred dollars in payment of tithes. Brigham sent it back, saying it was not enough. The man coolly put the money into his pocket, telling the avaricious rulers that he would henceforward do his own tithing and administer his own charities. They are . all now independent of the Church. Some men must acquire intelligence; this will extend, and it is not in the nature of man, especially in this age of the world, to submit to such absolute tyranny as is exercised by the Mormon rulers. Then, again, these rulers, governed alike by selfish mo- tives, are likely to fall out among themselves. There is already more or less jealousy of Brigham's power and in- creasino; wealth, and the world will ere lonoj have another illustration of the adao-e, " "When ros-ues fall out, honest men will get their dues." At the time- of my visit at Salt Lake a cloud was rising which threatened no good to Brigham Young and his fellows. Two of Joe Smith's sons had appeared on the stage, and were preaching a reforma- tion to crowded houses. Where a corrupt hierarchy de- pend on divine revelations for their authority, it is easy to get up counter-revelations. The legend which these young Smiths had just brought to Salt Lake was that, previous to his death, Joe Smith, the original pi'ophet and leader of the C 34 AROUND THE WORLD. Mormons, had predicted the birtli of a son by a favorite wife, who should be his successor in the Church. This he had by revelation. Five months after the death of Joseph the son was born, was named David, and now, at the age of twenty-three, he comes, with his brother Alexander, to claim the headship of the Church and the leadership of tlie people. He denounces polygamy, as opposed to the principles and revelations of his father, inculcates loyalty to the government of the United States, and does not hesi- tate to reflect upon the despotism and avarice of the pres- ent rulers. He could not stay in Salt Lake City a day but for the protection of the United States authorities and arms, especially the latter (nor, indeed, would any Gentile's Hfe be worth insuring for a single night were it not for the big guns of the United States troops on the hill over- looking Salt Lake City) ; but he was fearlessly holding forth to crowded assemblies on the abuses of Mormonism, and the apostles and elders were replying to his statements and strictures. Tliere are so many indications of dissen- sion in the Mormon community that I feel confident it will go to pieces by its own rottenness, and I trust that its disso- lution is not very far distant. I do not attempt any description of Salt Lake City ; of its remarkable growth in the desert from nothing to a well- built town of twenty or twenty -five thousand inhabitants ; of the Tabernacle (which is complete), and of its great or- gan, one of the largest in the world, which has been years in building ; of the Temple, the foundations of which only were laid. These were not what I went to see so much as Mormonism itself. I studied it to my satisfaction, and hailed the morning on which I took my leave of the place, even though the daylight had not dawned when I took my seat in the stage. When it came light 1 noticed among our fellow-passengers a lady and gentleman whom I had seen alight from the stage only the evening before. I aft- erward learned that they had come with the expectation of spending a week, but the lady was so disgusted with all she CALIFORNIA. 35 saw and heard that she entreated her husband to take her away at once, and before daylight they were outward bound. Soon after dayhght, when we were a few miles out of Salt Lake City, we picked up two passengers who were on foot. I was seated on the top of the coach, and, as one of them took a seat below me, something heavy in his coat- flap fell upon my toes. I thought I recognized a revolver, and said to him, " I perceive that you are prepared to take care of yourself." He turned, and looked me in the face in order to scan my motive in speaking to him, and then o'ave me his history. He had been in business in Salt Lake City, and, becoming obnoxious to the Mormons, learned that his life was in danger, and fearing assassination, had left in the night, prepared to sell his life dear if attacked. At a safe distance from the City of the Saints he mounted the coach, with the intention of looking out for a part of the country more conducive to longevity than he had rea- son to fear Salt Lake City or Valley would prove. III. CALIFOKNIA. After this episode at Salt Lake City we resumed our journey by the Pacific Railroad at Uintah, and soon reach- ed the western half of the great thoroughfare, the Central Pacific ; not the half in distance, but much more than half in the boldness of the undertaking and in the grandeur of achievement. Leading over the abrupt heights of the Sier- ra Nevada Mountains (which might, with great propriety, exchange names with the Rocky Mountains, for rocky ele- vations and precipices abound far more in the former than in the latter), the work to be accomplished on the Central Pacific was far more forbidding than any thing upon the 36 AROUND THE WOELD. Union Pacilic. By tlie force of a mighty engine, and oc- casionally with a double team of iron horses, we climbed the dizzy heights, and wormed our way along the sides of the mountains. At different points we could look from the car window down the precipitous rocks into the ravine, more than fiften hundred feet below. Cape Horn, a bold promontory, around which the road makes a sharp curve at this elevation, is as famous among Pacific Railroad travel- ers, and almost as much of a terror, as the cape from which it takes its name is to navigators. The twenty-five miles of close snow-sheds through which we passed (since in- creased, I believe, to thirty or forty), were a more cuinous ON TUE SIEKEA NEVAPAS. CALIFORNIA. 37 than pleasiiiij portion of the passage. We could only no\\- and then, through the interstices of the sheds, catch a o-limpse of the wild and grand scenery which marks this part of the road. Before we commenced the ascent of the Sierra Nevadas the thermometer which I carried with me stood at 89 degrees in the Salt Lake Valley. When we reached the summit, early the next morning, the same ther- mometer indicated S-i degrees. We were then at an ele- vation of 7000 feet, and it was August 14th. When we reached the California plain in the afternoon of the same day the mercury was again at 88. My views of the importance of the Pacific Eailroad to the country and to the world have been greatly enlarged, not only by passing over it, but still more by observing in foreign countries, and even in the very heart of Asia, the influence which it is already exerting upon the intercourse and the ideas of the world at large. There was no enter- prise connected with our country that awakened such inter- est in the East as this. All over India it was the theme of earnest inquiry; and, when I had crossed the Sewalic range of the Himalaya Mountains, and reached the beautiful and fertile valley of Dehra Doon, I was earnestly entreated by the English and American residents to deliver a public lecture on the Pacific Railroad, of which they had heard much, and wished to hear still more. On mv return south from the Himalaj^as I met at Allahabad the report of the commission appointed by the East India government to visit this countrj' and examine our railroads, and especially the Pacific Road. Their report was quite as enthusiastic and laudatory as one emanating from the companies them- selves could be. In ray opinion, the value of the road as an immediate channel of commerce has been overestima- ted. ]^o railroad — not all the railroads in the world can carry on the commerce of the world. They are limited in capacity, and a great passenger route can never become a great channel for the transportation of freight. This is especially true of a single ti-ack road, and more especially 38 AROUND THE WORLD. true of a road of such immense length as the Pacific, on which passenger trains are liable to be detained, and must have the precedence over freight. It will be as impossible to cany on the commerce of the world over one or more railroad tracks as to carry on the entire correspondence of the world over a single telegraph wire. The passenger business of the Pacific Road must nearly, if not altogether, absorb its capacity of locomotion ; but its vast importance, even in a commercial point of view, will be enhanced rath- er than diminished by this result. It is to be the great me- dium of communication between the different parts of the world ; and while actual commerce — the transportation of the products of the earth, and of the skill of different na- tions — must have a channel of greater capacity, the com- mercial intercourse of the world will receive from the com- pletion of this and similar works a stimulus which has nev- er been fully estimated, and the value of the road to its enterprising projDrietors, as well as to the world at large, will be increased instead of being diminished by this very restriction. The grand enterprise of the century is to be the ship canal across the Isthmus of Darien. Commerce must have water for its channel ; it must liave a channel of such ca- pacity tbat there will be no occasion for breaking up car- goes ; aud the nearest approach to a natural union of the two oceans will be a canal of sufiicient depth and breadth to allow the largest ordinary steamers and sailing vessels to pass through without transshipment of goods. It has been a matter of surprise that our government and our capitalists have not taken hold of this great scheme with more determination to have it carried through to comple- tion.. I know many of the difiiculties which lie in the way, international and economical, but it is an enterprise of such vast importance to the country and to the world that it ought to be begun at once, and completed as soon as it can be done, if a practical route can be found. It was late Saturdav evening when we reached San Fran- CALIFORNIA. 39 CISCO. More than two weeks before I had written to the proprietor of the Lick House engaging rooms for 10 o'clock of that evening, and I note it as one of the many indica- tions of precision in modern travel that, although I was nearly a fortnight on the way from New York to the Pa- cific, including different pauses of a day or two at a time, I was never an hour behind time on the Pacific Railroad, and I reached the hotel at San Francisco within an hour of the time I had named some weeks before. The entire journey around the world was marked by nearly the same exactness, of which I may have occasion to speak from time to time. A week passed in the city of the Golden Gate, and 1 found myself still in a maze. I did not lose my conscious- ness during the long journey from the Atlantic to the Pa- cific. It was all a reality when, after spending two or three days in traversing the older states, we crossed the Missouri and swept out upon the broad prairies of Ne- braska, and over the Black Hills, and then over the Eocky Mountains, and through the Great Salt Lake Basin, and over the Sierra Nevadas. All this was real. Neither the time nor the way seemed long, although it was not difiicult to comprehend that we were actually spanning the conti- nent. Seven days and seven nights of steady travel upon a smooth road, behind a locomotive, will tell upon any dis- tance ; and when, early on the morning of the seventh day of actual journeying, we crossed the summit of the Sierra Nevada Mountains, we strained our eyes to catch a glimpse of the broad Pacific, although it lay a long day's journey out of sight. As we descended the magnificent slope we felt sure that Ave were coming into the Golden State, and when we saw the wlieat-fields, and vineyards, and tlie abun- dance of luscious fruits at the railway stations greeted our eyes and then our palates, we became more and more pleasantly assured that we were within the borders of Cal- ifornia, the cornucoj^ia of the country. 40 AROUND THE WORLD. Darkness liacl gathered over us before we crossed the l)ay and entered San Fi-ancisco, so that we could form little conception of the city. But when, the next morning, on going out into the streets on our way to church, instead of a mushroom city of twenty years, made up of rough boards and canvas, like the new cities through which we had passed along the line of the Pacific Koad, we found our- selves in an old established town, with broad streets and magnificent stone buildings, as substantial and imposing in appearance as those of cities which have been built for centuries, I could not make it real that this was San Fran- cisco, a city not yet twenty-one years of age. It was more like one of the creations of Aladdin's Lamp. The oldest inhabitants were those that came in 1849, and it was not a little curious to find in so large a city so many who came Japanese know noth- ino; of the delicious decoction, well creamed and sweetened, which cheers tlie hearts of the l^i^^e'^ives, and house-hus- bands too, in other and distant lail^s. As we approached Yeddo, the shops, which are almost invariably fronts of houses, became wider and more impos- ing, though never rising above a second, and seldom above a first story, being s^^read out uj^on the ground. Through the openings we could look back into the most exquisite ^,^' i'"^*r^ I 'III III 'I Jlr. I * 111 1,1 104 AROUND THE WORLD. little yards or g-arclens, ornamented with flowers and the dwarfed evergreens, of which there is a great variety all over Japan. And now we are entering the suburbs of Yeddo, and now the city itself. The crowd increases, and becomes more and more curious, the ladies of our party (as do tlie ladies every where) attracting the most attention. The people all along the street, as if out on a holiday, stand and stare and laugh as we pass, as if we were the lirst of our kind ever seen in Yeddo. Passing through one of the many gates within the city, which seem designed for police pur- poses and not for defense, we meet a Japanese regiment of soldiers, and give them a wide berth, while laughing most heartily in our sleeves at the grotesque, tatterdemalion ap- pearance they make. They reminded us strongly of the fantasticals of our own city. The bass-drummer was a real Falstaff, the sight of whom would have thrown Ho- garth into an ecstasy of delight. On reaching Yeddo we were driven to the Niphon Hotel, the finest hotel in the empire, and one which would not dis- credit any city in the world. No passports and no passes were demanded, although, in crossing a river ten or twelve miles below, we showed written passes obtained from the American consul at Yokohama, for which he charged us one dollar each, while the Japanese officials just across the street countersigned them without any fee. The hotel — occupying, with its grounds beautifully laid out, about four acres — was built by a Japanese stock company, not so much for a speculation, I imagine, as to confine the foreigners who might visit Yeddo. It is situated immediately on the bay, next to what is known as " the Concession" — ^the land appropriated to foreigners for purposes of trade. On the sea front of the grounds were thirteen flag-staffs, in readiness for the flags of as many foreign representatives. When the treaty was signed, and Japan was opened to for- eign trade, it was expected that the foreign merchants would come to Yeddo to transact business. A concession EXCURSIONS IN JAPAN. ]^05 of land on the shore of the bay was made for the erection of warehouses, and the hotel was built to confine the for- eigners in the same quarter. But Yeddo can not be ap- proached by large vessels, and those engaged in the foreign trade found that they could do their business better at Yo- kohama, and the hotel has consequently been a failure. There were only four or five, besides ourselves, staying there, and, as a general thing, it is quite empty. It is a magnificent building for this country. The rooms, public and private, are large and airy, and are quite well furnish- ed. The broad piazzas, extending along the entire front of about 200 feet, command a fine view of the bay, and from the cupola there is an extensive view of the city. An acre or more between the hotel and the bay is laid out in Japan- ese style — with miniature hills and lawns, and lakes and bridges, and ornamented with flowers and trees trimmed in fancy shapes. It is a beautiful picture in itself. The grounds of the hotel are surrounded by a high wall, and in the city front is an arched gateway, along which are barracks for the Japanese guards, M^ithout whom we were not expected to go into the city. Whether they went out with us as spies on our purposes or to protect us was to us a matter of no consequence, inasmuch as they proved a pro- tection from the crowds which every M'here surrounded us. As soon as we had got ourselves and our traps arranged, we intimated at the office our desire to take a walk and visit a large temple near by. Presently eight men, each armed with the inevitable two SM'ords, were ready to attend us, one man for each one of our party, and, thus escorted, we sallied forth into the street. We had not gone a block before a large crowd of men, women, and children began to surround us, pressing close to us, especially curious to examine the ladies of our party, and to take hold of their dresses. It was a very good-natured crowd, and even our guards smiled at their curiosity, and said as much b}' their looks as that they were quite harndess. When we reached the temple they all cast off their sandals, and rushed in be- IIELFBY IN OOTJET-YAED OF TEMPLE. EXCURSIONS IX JAPAN. 107 fore us to get a better view while we were standing. One might suppose we were the lirst visitors of the sort they had ever seen, and that they imagined we had just come down from the stars. The temples of Yeddo tower above all the other build- ings of the city. The houses and shops (and every house seems to be a shop) are all of a single story or a story and a half, built low, so that they may not have far to fall in case of an earthquake, one of the every-day occurrences. The temple that we iirst visited was a structure about fifty feet in height, of which the four-sided high roof formed a chief part. The architecture was Oi-iental and really im- posing, and the interior far more magnificent and in every respect in better taste than I expected to find it fi-oni the weather-beaten appearance of the exterior. The people of the place are not allowed to enter without taking off their sandals, and an exception was made of our party only in the case of the ladies ; but this custom seems to arise from a regard to cleanliness, and not fi'oin reverence. No Japan- ese ever enters a house or shop without taking off his shoes and leaving them at the threshold. We had arranged to drive the next morning to Asaxa, a distant suburb of Yeddo, which is devoted in a great meas- ure to the games and sports of the people, where jugglers and experts of all kinds give their performances in the open air. There is a celebrated temple in this quarter, which we were desirous to visit, but the morning being rainy, we were obliged to abandon our purpose, and it was, perhaps, well that we did, for there is more lawlessness in this quarter of the city than in any other, and we should have been more exposed. Some friends whom I after- ward met were stopped on their way and advised to return on account of exciting demonstrations which were taking place on that day. In company with the Eev. Mr. Verbeck, the American missionary who was called to the head of the English De- partment of the Imperial University, I \isited several of the 108 AROUND THE WORLD. book-stores to see and inquire into their literature. The Japanese are a reading- people. I often found the servants, when not on duty, engaged in reading ; and on one occa- sion I took the book from the hand of one of them, and found it a profusely illustrated volume. Their reading is chiefly sensational novels, arranged after the most approved style of French or English Action — with a pair of lovers, who pass through all sorts of adventures, in which the sun, moon, and stars conspire against them, but the lover at length, with his heavy sword, cuts through all opposition, performing miracles of valor, carrying off his prize, and they live and die the happiest of mortals. Their literature is not more free from o-rossness and immoralitv than that of civilized nations. The second mornino- we drove to a hio-h bluff in the centre of the cit}' called Atangoreama, which is reached by a long flight of stone steps, about a hundred in all. "We were attended this time by a mounted o-uard of nine Ya- Jcoiiin soldiers, wlio suri'ounded our carriage when we rode, and dismounted to accompany and protect us M-henever we had occasion to walk. Every where we attracted the same attention and the same crowd. The heio-hts of Atancjo- reama afford the finest %dew of the city, and overlook the castle or palace of the Tycoon, which, since the Tycoonate was abolished, is used for the purposes of the new govern- ment. The castle stands upon high ground, and is strongly fortified after the Japanese fashion, with walled terraces and deep, wide moats, making it almost impregnable to native attacks, although comparatively weak to those skilled in the more modern arts of war. A drive along the castle walls and moats is one of the ffreat attractions of Yeddo. The citv, which stretches out for miles in everv direc- tion, abounds in beautiful spots and interesting scenes, in which Japanese art has combined wdth nature to produce the finest effect. Gen.Van Yalkenburg, the American min- ister, who resided at Yeddo while the foreio-n leo-ations were located at the capital, in speaking to me of its beauties, said EXCUESIONS IN JAPAK 109 one might take a new walk or a new ride every day in the year and find some charming scene. We were compelled to leave the most of these unseen, but we were advised not to fail of visiting the ancient cemetery of the Tycoons, with its splendid temples. These sacred grounds must have been laid out many centuries ago, and successive rulers have spent immense sums in adorning them and keeping them in order. The place is called Shiba (pronounced Slha at Yeddo and Shiba in the provinces, the precise difference between Shibboleth and Sibboleth). It covers a vast ex- tent of ground — a hundred or perhaps hundreds of acres, we could not tell how many, for there was nothing to bound the vision when we were once within the inclosure. Entering by a massive gateway, we drove a long distance on a broad avenue shaded by magnificent old trees. The avenue itself, and the grounds on both sides, ornamented with trees and shrubbery, are kept with that scrupulous neatness whicli is characteristic of the Japanese. We came at length to another arched gateway, where we left our car- riages and passed into a square court of some acres, in which stands a temple exceeding in grandeur and splendor all tliat we had imagined of Japanese architecture. The extei'ior is heavily ornamented with carving, and the in- terior literally shone witli burnished gold. Leaving this temple, we passed to another part of the cemetery, and were conducted through a succession of courts and temples not so large as the first, but far more elaborately and beautifully ornamented. I was surprised by the refined taste in the combinations of colors and in the other ornaments with which they were loaded. Some of the wide court-yards, inclosing temples, were surrounded with porticoes, or loggia, the roofs of which were exqui- sitely frescoed with a beauty and modesty of coloring that I have never seen surpassed in any country. The panel- ing contained carvings of birds in endless variety, painted as if from life. From Shiba we returned to Yokohama, passing through 110 AROUND TEE WOULD. the same living and moving museum as on the way up. It was a curious scene, and in passing through it I was often reminded of the remark of a gentleman whom I met just as we were starting for Yeddo, " You will need a hundred eyes to see all that you will meet with on the way." JAPAN AND THE JAPANESE. The territory of Japan comprises four large islands and nearly 4000 smaller ones. There are seven grand divisions, which are subdivided into sixty-eight provinces, and these again into smaller districts and towns. It has an area of 190,000 square miles, and a population of about 20,000,000. For the last 600 hundred years there have been both a civil and a religious ruler, although the latter was scarcely any thing more than a nominal officer. The former, known under the name of Taikun or Tvcoon, had the reins of government in his own hands ; but the Mikado was recog- nized as the relio-ious head of the countrv, and was indeed superior in rank to the Tycoon, although he had little to do with public affairs, and his existence was almost regard- ed as a myth. In the year 1868 a revolution was inaugu- rated, and at length became successful, by which the power of the Tycoon was overthrown. He was reduced to the position of prince of the empire, the Mikado was duly in- stalled as supreme ruler, and is now recognized as such throughout the empire. Below him there are 260 Daimios, of whom eighteen are tlie great chiefs of the empire — feudal lords with supreme authority in their own provinces, and having under them thousands of retainers, the two- sworded men of the country, a class who live upon the Daimios, supposed to be ready to do their fighting for them, and who are sometimes quite as ready to fight on JAPA ¥ AND THE JAPANESE. \l\ their own account. Each of the more powerful Daiuiios has many thousands of these retainers, who regard them- selves, and are regarded by the rest of the people, as the gentry of the country, entitled to live without labor. Be- fore the late change in the government the Daimios were required to reside at the capital half the year, and to leave their families there the whole of the year as hostages or jjledges of their adherence to and support of the reigning power. Their residence, with an immense number of their retainers, added greatly to the population of Yeddo. Since the change they are allow^ed to reside in their own prov- inces, and Yeddo is now a city of deserted palaces, the pop- ulation having been decreased by the removal of the Dai- mios and their retinues to the extent of more tlian half a million, some say more than a million. The Mikado, who is now the supreme and only acknowl- edged head of the government, formerly had his palace at Miako, the religious capital of the empire ; but since he has been acknowledged as emperor, he has taken up his resi- dence at Yeddo, or is supposed to have done so, for he is seldom, if ever, seen by the people, and even the recep- tions which he has given to tlie representatives of foreign powers are said tn have been given by proxy. Such is the mystery thrown by the Japanese officials around every thing pertaining to their government, that it w^ould not be strange if the Mikado, in giving audience to foreign em- bassadors, had deputed some one to represent him without allowing it to be known that he had not appeared in per- son. The duplicity of Oriental courts, and their utter in- comprehensibility are so well known, that scarcely any thing of this nature should awaken sui'prise. All who have to deal with them will be taken by surprise only w^hen they shall be found acting on open ground and upon fair prin- ciples. The present government of Japan gives no promise of being stable. The Mikado lias been placed in power, not by his own ability or energies, but by some of the more in- 112 AROUND THE WORLD. flueiitial Daimios, and is now in the liands of a clique who will see that he does nothing prejudicial to their plans and interests. Indeed, his authority is merely nominal ; he has but the semblance of imperial power, the Daimios being supreme within their respective territories. For the sake of presenting a united front against foreign nations, and of keeping up the traditional forms of royalty before the peo- ple, the central organization is maintained ; but it is more than ever exposed to revolution, and may speedily fall through its own weakness. It has no resources of any kind. It is financially bankrupt, and is resorting to every temporary expedient to obtain the means of existence. Crime of almost any nature may be condoned by the pay- ment of sufficient sums. Just before I was in leddo, a woman was convicted of the murder of her husband, and was sentenced to be crucified, but she escaped the cross by the payment of a sum amounting to about $1000. While I was at Yokohama, an ofiicial order, which had been sent to the Japanese merchants, was made public, to the great disgust of the authorities, who wished to keep it secret fi'om foreigners, requiring all native merchants and traders, who might receive either cash or checks from for- eigners, to present the same to the government ofiicers and receive in exchange Japanese money, half kinsats and half niboos — the former almost worthless paper bonds which are irredeemable, and the latter a depreciated coin, and one which is counterfeited to an unlimited extent. The object of the order was to enable the government to raise funds by substituting poor money for good, and making a large percentage ; and also by obtaining the cash for Jap- anese jpromises to jpay — a mode of raising the wind which, by the way, is not confined to Japan. The establishment of any thing like a republican form of government, which some have predicted, with the pres- ent elements, is out of the question. The only people in Japan wdio are allowed to bear arms, and who, from this cause alone, represent the physical force of the nation, are JAPAN AND THE JAPANESE. W^ the Yako7vins, numbered by hundreds of thousands, who are supported in idleness, and who would be deadly hostile to any reorganization of the government, or of society, which would degrade them to a level with the common people, and make it a necessity for them to obtain a living by working for it. The people of Japan can not rise and organize for themselves. They have neither the intelli- gence, nor the means, nor the disposition to make a dem- onstration toward such an end. It appears more probable that Japan, for some time to come, will be the scene of suc- cessive revolutions : that it will not settle down into anv thing like stability of government. There is nothing out of which to make, or on which to found, such a govern- ment as some of its sanguine friends have been predicting. There are intelligent men among the higher classes of the Japanese — men who have looked into the condition of other nations, and who are not wanting in admiration of what they see that is good in them — but they are not men who are enlightened according to our standard, or who would be qualified to lead such a people out of their pres- ent condition into that of more enlightened nations. JSTor would the conflicting interests of so many petty sovereigns as Japan contains — with which are closely united the inter- ests of so many who are dependent on them — allow of such a radical change as the country must undergo before it can enjoy the blessings of a free or even of a good government. Foreign commerce and foreign intercourse have not been a blessing thus far to the Japanese. Foreign com- munications and trade have broken in upon the quiet hab- its of a people that were living in almost Arcadian sim- plicity ; they have excited avaricious and grasping desires among those who were content before with moderate re- turns for their industry ; they have made the cost of liv- ing far greater to the people themselves, and as yet have given them little in return that has been a benefit. Much must be done in the future to promote the welfare and ad- vancement of tlie people as a compensation for compelling II 114 AROUND THE WORLD. them to open their beautiful islands to the world, and for the injury tliat has been already done, or all this foreign intercourse will have proved only a curse. The Christian world owes a heavy debt to these heathen nations which have suffered so much at the hands of Christian govern- ments. The Japanese, although far more agreeable in their man- ners than the Chinese, are both intellectually and physically inferior. They are quicker in apprehension, perhaps ; more imitative and more willing to learn from others ; they pos- sess, or at least exhibit, more curiosity ; they are decidedly ingenious, but are wanting in mental vigor as compared with their neighbors. Neither do they have that over- weening sense of their importance in the scale of being and of superior knowledge which belongs to the Chinese. Their bearing toward each other and toward the outside world is regulated accordingly. The government treats foreigners, and especially foreign officials, with sufficient superciliousness, but the people themselves are open-heart- ed, and exceedingly easy and polite in all their intercourse. Take the nation together, they are the most polite and graceful of all the people of the East. I should call them the Frenchmen of Asia ; but this w^ould be doing injustice to the Japanese ; for, while the peasantry of France, like those of other nations, are often coarse and rude in their manners, the Japanese, even in the rural and more retired districts, have a grace and even a courtliness of manner, and are as polite in their intercourse as those who dwell in the cities. I have seen the people meeting in the most ordinary circumstances, and bowing with the most pro- •found respect to each other, as if they were embassadors instead of the ordinary working men and women of the country. I have wished a hundred times since coming to Japan that we could import into our own and some other civilized countries a measure of this " want of civilization,'' or " barbarism," or whatever any one may choose to call it. In their houses and shops, and in many of their industrial JAPAN AND THE JAPANESE. 115 JAPANESE SALUTING. and domestic arrangements, they are patterns of neatness and good taste. One may walk for miles through their streets, looking into their dwellings or places of business, which are all open by day, and he will never tire in his ad- miration of the cleanliness which prevails, and of the re- gard to order and o-eneral effect in the arrano-ement of their various wares and varying colors. They are like the shops of Paris in this respect. The little gardens attached to their dwellings or places of business are gems, and as neat as their houses. I have several times seen a house divided (without a partition or wall of any kind) between a shop and a dwelling ; and while the blacksmith, or carpenter, or cooper would be plying his occupation in one half, the other, raised but a foot or two, would be covered with mat- ting so cleanly that no one would think of stepping on it without taking off his shoes. I can not say as much for the personal habits of the people ; for, while they batlie reg- ularly once or twice a day (men, women, and children going through the operation vigorously together in a com- ' mon bath-liouse), they put on the same clothes, and wear them until they are worn out. 116 AROUND THE WORLD. The style of dress in Japan is even moro varied than it is on Broadway in New York. It reaches from nothin;h-soundino- names such as " Pure Pearl Street" (not referring to the perfumes that abound more or less every where), " Street of Benevo- CANTON AND ITS SIGHTS. 151 lence and Love," " Couchant Dragon Street," " Court of Unblemished Rectitude," etc. ; but some of them are per- fect bazars, the shops on either side being filled with cost- ly articles well arranged for effect, rich jewelry, silks of all kinds, curiosities in ivory, and all sorts of ornamental and fancy work. The principal streets are hung with gay banners sus- pended from the tops of the houses and from the fronts of the shops. The signs, which are gaudy, stand upon the end, and, with their bright colors, give a showy aspect to the fronts of the buildings; while the great variety of curious articles exposed to public view by the open doors ; the noisy tide of human beings, which is all the while suro-ins; throuo-h these narrow avenues on foot and in chairs, with the coolies carrying burdens of all sorts ; the processions which one often meets, and which take up the whole street as they pass along, all together make up such a scene as can be found in no other city in China, and the like to which is not to be found in any other part of the world. We were never molested in our peregrinations through Canton, but were occasionally greeted with the salutation which the Chinese are fond of bestowing upon foreigners, Fan-l'vxti„ Fan-Jcvxd (foreign devils, foreign devils). Even the little children caught up the sound and shouted it after us. The silk weaving, which is largely carried on at Canton, is accounted among its curiosities ; but it is chiefly inter- esting, as showing how the most beautiful fabrics can be wrought in small and dirty hovels and retain their purity. All the silks of China, for which Canton is most cele- brated, are woven by hand on the rudest of looms, fre- quently by mere girls and boys. I watched with no little surprise the growth of a fine brocade, a little boy mana- ging the harness, and a girl sitting at the loom and casting the shuttle. Every figure came out of their hands perfect, the whole piece looking as if it just came from the fuller, without spot. 152 AROUND THE WORLD. We made an excursion one afternoon about two miles up the river to the celebrated Puntinqua Aquatic Garden, the only specimen of Chinese gardening that I saw that exhibited real taste, or tliat had real beauty. The Chinese style is exceedingly stiff, and consists, in great measure, in training plants, and shrubs, and trees in grotesque shapes, distorting tlie vegetable kingdom into a supposed resem- blance to the animal. The Puntinqua Garden is laid out on a magnificent scale, is chiefly devoted to the cultivation of aquatic plants in picturesque lakes, with beautiful sum- mer-houses and palaces scattered among them, and is pro- vided with all the requisites for elegant entertainments. • The furniture is of the most costly description. It was planned, and for years kept in order, by a high officer of government, who made an immense fortune out of his of- fice, chiefly by peculation, as it is asserted. His estate of several millions of dollars had been confiscated, and this extensive and beautiful monument to his taste was rapidly going to ruin. No one would probably be found having either the fancy or the means to invest in such an expen- sive toy. The temples of Canton, as of China generally, are very inferior to those of Japan. There is nothing I have seen that will bear comparison with the grand old temples of Shiba at Yeddo. The latter are kept with scrupulous neat- ness, the surroundings as well as the interiors showing per- fect taste, while the temples at Canton are simply curious places, the approaches to them being often obstructed with rubbish and dirt. One of the most celebrated is that of the patron god of the city, better known as the " Temple of Horrors," from a series of rude representations of the torment of purgatory and perdition which occupy, but do not ornament, the square in front of the temple. They are wooden or clay images, one group representing the several stages of transmigration through which a human being passes before he reaches the condition of the lower ani- mals. They rival the pictures on the walls of the Church CANTON AND ITS SIGHTS. 2.53 of San Lorenzo, outside of tlie walls of liome. One man is represented as undergoing the process of boiling in a calcb'on of oil; another is ground between two mill- stones, his head and body having gone through the purify- ing process, the lower part of his legs only projecting from the mill ; another is placed between two planks, which are closely pressed together, and sawed longitudinally, the blood oozino- out at the sides. But it is all done in such a I'ude style as to make the representation ludicrous instead of horrible. At the side of a large open square in front of this temple I saw a small inclosure, with a placard in front, which read as follows, in plain English : " Mermaid ; ten cents to go in and see it." We went in, and found one of those curious Japanese manufactures which are known the world over, a monkey's head so cleverly affixed to the body of a fish as to conceal the line of junction. I asked the man who had it in charge if it came from Japan, and he simply replied " Humbug." I made several inquiries in regard to it, and the only answer I got was " humbug." He had evidently got hold of a term the meaning of which he did not understand, supposing it to be complimentary. The same square was crowded with groups of persons gam- bling, consulting astrologers and necromancers, and hav- ing a good time generally, while the thoughts of religious worship were among the last that could have entered their heads. The temple itself is more resorted to b}^ the people of the city than any other, but there is very little of the form of worship at any. Every man has his shrine at tlie door of his house or slioi"), at which he burns his joss-sticks, and with this ^4carious devotion he is probably satisfied. Another celebrated joss-house is known as the Temple of the Eive Hundred Gods. The Chinese deify their an- cestors, and it is thus easy to make a large collection of gods. These five hundred are carved and gilded life-size images of as many sages, real or imaginary, arranged in long rows up and down tlie temple. They are a curious sight, especially in the great variety of faces and forms 154 AROUND THE WORLD. which they present, all classes of features and all nation- alities being represented, sometimes with very good effect. Among the gods was one in European dress, tight-bodied coat and pantaloons ; but how he came to be deified in China I did not learn. As we approached this temple we saw half a dozen priests standing in front of a sort of altar, with their books open, i-eady to commence the service, which we afterward heard them intoning in true ritualistic style. One of them, happening to turn his head, saw us approaching, and the whole group immediately left their altar and prayer-books and gathered around us, the lady who was with me, as usual, attracting the chief attention. They at once, as I judged from their looks, fell to criticising her dress. They assumed that we could not understand their conversation, but a gentleman was with me who had been ten years in China, and was perfectly familiar with their language, and he informed us in English that they were discussing the material of which the lady's dress was composed. One said it was gauze, another maintained it was worsted, and another silk. One of them spoke "u-ith commendation of her wearing a veil, which they all thought was eminently proper for a lady. After they had discussed these points to their satisfaction, they returned to their prayer-books, and as we walked on through the temple we heard them drawling out the service. The most imposing temple, and that which seems most strictly devoted to purposes of worship, although few of the people are seen in it, is the Buddhist temple at Ilonam, directly across the river. It is reached by a long avenue of stately trees, with a large archway about half the dis- tance from the entrance to the grounds. It has some claims, though not great, to magnificence of structure. It is well endowed, and supports a large number of lazy priests with closely-shaven heads, and a considerable number of that sacred animal kno^^^l at home as the hos;. The ani- mals (I mean the swine, though the priests have scarcely CANTON AND ITS SIGHTS. ;! 5 5 any stronger marks of intelligence in their countenances) are fed from the funds of the temple, and literally roll in fat. Whether they die a natural death, or are made to contribute to the support of the priests, I do not know, but the preservation of life is a part of the Buddhist religion. I attended the service, which is performed daily by the priests without any worshipers. About twenty ofliciated, and the service, which consisted of chanting, intoning, ring- ing of bells, striking a toui-tom, and various bowings and genuflections, with marchings up and down the temple, was very like that which may be witnessed in any Roman Cath- olic church. The chanting was well done, and had a pleas- ing effect upon the ear. I have before remarked upon the similarity between the Buddhist temples and ceremonies and those of the Romanists, and every where it was the same. There is nothing picturesque in the ordinary dress of the Chinese. Like the Japanese, they wear the everlasting dull blue cotton, all excepting the really wealthy, and, un- like the blue of the sky, which it is very unlike, it becomes any thing but pleasing to the eye after one has looked upon some millions wearing it. The Chinese, too, are the reverse of neat in their personal habits, and one soon comes to as- sociate this with the blue cotton clothing which is seen wherever clothing is used at all. Consequently w^e came to doubt whether the grand display of gorgeous attire of whici> we had read was not all in the imaginations of the writers, but we had an opportunity while in Canton to con- firm all that we had read and heard. Some of our friends informed us two or tln-ee days in advance of a grand procession which was to take place in honor of one of the gods, an uncouth image which was to be taken from the temple and paraded through the streets, and a friend very kindly made arrangements for us to view it from the balcony of a large tea-merchant's hong. The street itself, like the others through which tlie procession was to pass, was about eight feet wide — not a very grand 156 AROUND THE WORLD. theatre for such a display. But they must needs use such avenues as they have, and there are none much wider. We went early, in time to see the operations connected with the assorting, mixing, and flowering of the teas, which last consists of mingling with the leaves of the tea various flow- ers, the chief of which is tlie jessamine, to give it fragrance. Soon after we arrived the requisite number of cups was placed before us, the choicest tea of the establishment placed in each cup, the hot water poured on, and a second cup or saucer placed over the first to preserve the flavor, the universal mode of making tea in China. To one who is accustomed to having milk and sugar added, this decoc- tion is very insipid ; but the hospitality must be accepted, and it was renewed, on this as on other occasions, as often as the proprietor, who could not speak or understand a word of English, imagined we were thirsty. We waited more than an hour for the procession to ar- ive, and, in the mean time, were the objects of as much curiosity as the procession itself. During the two hours that it was moving, we (especially, if not wholly, the lady that was with me) fairly divided the honors of the day with the Dragon god. The Cliinese, like the Japanese, never be- come tired of looking at foreign ladies (in the case of Amer- ican ladies I do not wonder), and while we looked at the pageant that was passing before us, men, women, and chil- dren stared into the balcony, as if such a sight as an Amer- ican lady had never been seen in Canton. How many of them bestowed upon us the usual compliment, Fan-kwai (foreign devils), I could not tell. After we had waited long, the sound of tom-toms, aud cymbals, and gongs, and triangles, and then of Chinese flutes and various rude instruments, was heard, and one of the most gorgeous processions that I ever beheld passed be- fore us. There was more or less sameness between differ- ent parts, but there was a great variety, especially in the costumes of the persons composing it, and in the richly-em- broidered canopies which were carried along in large num- 1 CANTON AND ITS SIOHTS. 157 bers. I made some notes of the component parts of the procession, and will copy only a specimen. Of course I am nuable to picture the scene as it moved on like a pano- rama, or like the endless turning of a kaleidoscope in which the gayest colors and richest combinations appear. First came a band of police-officers (as in New York) to drive away the crowd who had assembled in the narrow street to see the sight ; then men carrying immense Chi- nese lanterns, ornamented in every conceivable manner with rich colors ; next a company of small boj^s elegantly dressed in silks of various colors, wdth caps embroidered in gold, and set off with the feathers of the golden pheasant three feet in length ; music consisting of a sort of flageolet, with cymbals and gongs ; coolies bearing vermilion and gilded tablets with Chinese inscriptions (which I did not attempt to copy) ; more boys on foot, elegantly dressed as before ; silk banners in various colors borne aloft ; a boy on horseback, his own dress of the richest description, and the housings of his horse richly embroidered (boys thus dressed and decorated in every imaginable way were dis- tributed singly through the procession, until in its different parts there were more than a hundred, in a city where horses are scarcely ever seen); a rich canopy of silk em- broidered all over with birds of gay plumage (and such canopies came along every minute in the long procession) ; elegant sedan chairs, cases elaborately carved and orna- mented, carried by the coolies, and containing gifts to the god ; boy bands of music, and boys on horseback dressed in fancy costumes, representing sages of the empire and emperors, some with long flowing beards and some with bows and arrows ; a large white crane pouncing down with joss-sticks in its mouth as an offering ; fruits and confec- tionery in endless variety for the god to eat ; glass cases containing jewelry and precious stones, including the Chi- nese jade-stones, loaned undoubtedly for the show ; com- panies of men dressed in the most costly silks, crimson, sal- mon, orange, green, blue, etc., the colors of the dresses and 158 AROUND THE WOBLD. the different parts blended and contrasted -s^'ith exquisite taste ; large, lofty embroidered silk canopies j)assira, and so of the Chinese lanterns and Chinese music ; boys richly dressed and painted, carried on platforms, and girls carried in a similar manner, resting on rods of iron concealed, and apparently suspended in air, as if caught up in the act of dancing or performing some gymnastic feat. Toward the close of the procession came the public executioner, with the heavy sword which takes off the head at a blow. This does not begin to complete the catalogue, but, as far as it goes, it is a faithful transcript of notes made on the spot. It was a perfect marvel to see such a pageant got up by the dull-looking Chinese, and to observe what a variety of scenes the turns of the kaleidoscope would bring up as the pageant moved on. I saw, in the course of my walks, two large wedding pro- cessions. One I encountered in a narrow street, and was squeezed into a corner during the time of its passing, but it was a curious sight, and well worth a squeeze to see it. The parties did not seem to be present, and the procession was composed mainly of the presents made, or supposed to be made, to the bride, which were on their way to her home. They consisted of all sorts of articles that would be likely to enter into the outfit, the housekeeping, and living of a newly-married couple. There were tables, chairs, trunks, boxes, blankets, etc. ; even fowls in coops, and vegetables in baskets. I heard it suggested, as the long procession was passing by, that the Chinese are not behind the more civil- ized nations in the art of swelling the display of presents on such occasions, and that a large portion of the articles that I saw moving in such grand ceremonial, like those which we sometimes see so ostentatiously displayed on ta- bles in the Western world, were hired for the occasion, and might be seen the next day gracing other nuptials. Another procession of a similar character I met at one of the ferries between Ilonara and Canton, and, as the boats are small, it was a long time in passing over. The boats CANTON AND ITS SIGHTS. 159 were plying back and forth for nearly an honr, at the end of which time, having finished my call and returned, I ob- served it just leaving the river. This procession was even gayer and more varied than the one 1 had met in the heart of the city, and was designed, like all others, to attract at- tention by its gorgeous character. Nor was it a failure in this respect. Great numbers of persons were standing around discussing the value and beauty of the articles, and, I presume, making their comments upon the parties and families interested, who obtained their satisfaction in being talked about by the street-goers. Whether they found a place in the gazette I am not able to say, as I did not read the Chinese papers next day. I came once, in the city of Shangliai, upon a long funer- al procession which was preceded by a powerful band of music — powerful in amount of noise and not of music. The mourners, real or professional, in white, were carried in sedan chairs, and at different intervals in the course of the procession companies of men in long white garments filled np the train and kept up a constant wailing, making the scene mournful even in the midst of the crowd which always fills the streets of a Chinese city. Not the most grotesque ceremonies, nor the most matter-of-business cir- cumstances, can divest death of its solemnity or bereave- ment of its touching character. The imagination will al- ways supply enough that is melancholy. A much simpler funeral I saw outside the walls of the same city. It consisted of two common coolies W'ho were bearing to the grave, slung upon a pole, the coffins of two cliildren apparently five or six years of age. They were not attended by a single relative or friend, but were to be buried like dogs. Children in China are not considered wortli a funeral, or even mourning, unless they have ar- rived at the age of eight or ten years. IQQ AIWUAU THE WOULD. XI. CHINESE MANNERS AND CUSTOMS. One of the most curious but not the most agreeable parts of a traveler's experience in going round the world is to be found in the ffreat diversity of manners and customs in re- gard to eating and drinking. One can accommodate him- self readily to many new circumstances in which he luids himself on stepping into a new country, but he can not al- ways make his taste agree with the tastes of the people among whom he is thrown. Happily, in this age of the woi'ld he finds some of the staples of life much the same the world over, so that he is not obliged practically to put the most fastidious of the senses to the strong test which it had to endure, when traveling, as one of the fine arts, was more in its infancy ; but he can still indulge in observation and speculation to his heart's content. The Chinese fi'om time immemorial, at least from the days when we studied the pictorial geography, have been celebrated for the range of their animal diet, and for some of the luxuries of life wliich are peculiar to the celestial kingdom. To begin with the first course, soup. All the world knows that in China they have a delicacy which has not reached other parts, in birds'-nest soup. One of my first inquiries, as I got into the streets of Canton, was after this commodity, or the nests from which it is made, and I was taken into a fine shop, fitted up in a costly manner, where it was the only article sold. Birds'-nests are a great luxury in China, being within the reach of the wealthy alone. They are sold at prices grad- uated according to the quality of the article, none of any value bringing a less price than their weight in silver, and some bringing almost tlieir weiglit in gold. Xests are sold CHINESE MANXEIiS AND CUSTOMS. \Q\ as high as $30 or $40 a pound. The nests are simply a mass of pure gelatine, secreted in some way by a species of swallow {Ilirundo esculenta), and deposited against a wall, just as the swallows in our country stick a nest of mud against a beam. Some naturalists inaintain that the gela- tine is formed from a sort of sea-foam which the swallow gathers, and which is exuded from the mouth of the bird. It resembles the gelatine known by the name of isinglass, and the purer sort is almost transparent. There is nothing repulsive in its appearance, and its origin is just as honor- able and commendatory as that from which our jellies are made at home — I am disposed to think more so. The nests come chiefly from the island of Java, where they are ob- tained with great labor, and often at much peril, from deep caves along the coast. Some of these caves on the southern coast of the island are approached only by a perpendicu- lar descent of great depth, by means of ladders, the raging of the sea below preventing all approach from the water. When collected they are assorted into different grades, those w^hich have not been occupied by the birds bringing the highest price, and the other grades prices according to cleanliness and quality. From one to two million dollars' worth are imported eveiy year into Canton. I put a fine specimen of the nest into my trunk for importation into America. The Chinese do not have as great a variety of animal food as the Westei'n nations, but they make use of some which most nations reject. I find a great diversity in the testimonv of travelers and residents in reo-ard to the use of " rats, cats, and puppies," some of the latter (I mean the residents) stoutly afiirming that such animals are not eaten at all, or, if so, only in cases of extremity, where nothing else in the shape of food can be obtained. But I have seen all these exposed for sale in the markets of Canton in the very heart of the city. There are dog markets where nothing else is sold, and where day after day I have seen dogs dressed and ready L 162 ABOUND THE WOULD. cooked. There are several such markets in the city. Rats also, alive and dead, fresh and dried, are regularly and con- stantly sold, and I have seen them in all these stages of preparation as I have been passing. One plump fellow I saw suspended by his tail from a market-hook waiting for a purchaser, but all the w^hile struggling to escape, while the dried specimens hanging around him mocked his ago- ny, and awaited their destiny with more composure. There is no more reason for denying that such animals are regu- larly sold in the markets of Canton for food than that beef and mutton are sold in the markets of ISTew York. And yet it is nevertheless true that the mass of the people do not use them. Their use is confined to those who are un- able to obtain flesh meat that is more expensive. Another staple in the line of animal food is pork. Chi- nese pigs are celebrated the world over for their excellent quality, and, as well as Shanghai chickens, have long been imported into America. They are raised with great care — as carefully, if not more so, than the children. They are often kept in little cages in the shops and houses, where they receive every attention, and are fed with the choicest food instead of living on what is thrown away. And a very quiet and well-behaved race they are. They are car- ried about the streets in baskets just large enough for them to be slipped into with their legs folded, and in this state are laid away at the markets and other places, but I do not remember ever to have heard in China a single note of that dulcet music which is their peculiar forte in other parts. Perhaps it is out of gratitude that they remain so quiet, for I have been told that, until the government interfered and required that they should be carried in baskets, they were slung by the heels across a pole, a mode of conveyance which would very naturally develop their musical powers. The fruits of China are generally poor and destitute of flavor. We had some fine grapes from the extreme north, but the only fruit in the south that was in season and real- ly palatable was the Amoy pumelo, corresponding to the West India shaddock. CHINESE MANNERS AND CUSTOMS. 163 The cultivation of small feet is not altogether peculiar to the higher classes, nor to those who are exempt 'from labor. It is regarded as a mark of distinc- tion, but only as conformity to fashion distinguishes its votaries. In every city great numbers of women, perhaps a quarter or more of the female population, may be seen toddling about the streets on their pegs, looking very much as if their feet had been cut off and they were walking on the stumps. It is difficult to bal- ance themselves in walking, and they frequently resort to a third peg in the shape of a cane to keep themselves straight. The custom of closely bandaging the feet from infancy is not so inju- rious as might be supposed, but it greatly interferes with locomotion. Every one who visits China or reads about it is naturally curious to learn something about the great staple of the country, which has become the common beverage of the world. The tea plant is a shrub which, left to itself, would grow to the height of twenty feet and more, but as culti- vated for the production of tea it is cut down and kept down to four or five feet in height. It is raised chiefly in the central regions. The leaves are gathered several times during the season, the earliest, tender leaves being account- ed the best. The first crop is usually gathered in the third year from planting, and at the end of about seven years the plants are renewed or cut down to the ground, new shoots springing up from the roots. Plants treated in this way will live for twenty-five or thirty years and produce good crops. CHINESE SMALL FOOT. 154 AROUND THE WOULD. Tlie difference between Mack and green teas is not a dif- ference of nature, but of manufacture ; both may be pro- duced from the same identical shrub, according to the treatment of the leaves. In preparing green tea the leaves are dried, or roasted as the process is called in China, by artificial heat, in pans, almost immediately after being gath- ered. After about five minutes roasting they become moist and soft, when they are placed on the rolling table and rolled with the hands. They are then restored to the pans, which are kept in motion for about an hour, at the end of which time they are well dried. The color at first is a dull green, but it becomes Jixed or brighter after a short time. It is afterward sifted and Ji7'ed, or heated, before being packed for market. The high color of green tea is often imparted to it by drugs, which are not the most wholesome for a beverage. For Mack tea, the leaves, on being picked, are spread out in the open air for some time, then tossed about until they become soft, when they are roasted in pans for a few minutes, and then rolled, after which they are exposed to the air for several hours, and finally dried slowly over the fire until they acquire the color which is perma- nent. The process of drying produces a chemical change in the juices of the plant, and tlie difference in the process of greater or less exposure to the atmospheric air in the curing accounts for the difference in the color and flavor of the two kinds of tea. In preparing it for market, fragrant flowers are distrib- uted through the tea as it is placed in the chest, to add to its flavor. The jessamine is most commonly used on ac- count of its fragrance. Tea is unquestionably often adul- terated, and, perhaps, most frequently by the mixing of spent leaves with those that are fresh. In the vicinity of Shanghai I saw old leaves revamped in this way in large quantities. When we remember the immense quantity con- sumed in the empire, and that the mode of preparing the beverage is not by thorough steeping, but simply by pour- ing hot water upon a small quantity of leaves in each cup, CHINESE MANNERS AND CUSTOMS. J (55 leaving much of the strength still in the leaves, it does not appear strange that even the Chinese should resort to tliis mode of adulteration. We are sometimes shocked at the thought that barbarous nations should adulterate any thing desio-ned for market, when adulteration is one of the most common, if not most refined arts of civilized life. Who does not remember how he was puzzled, when a child, with the idea that the Chinese, living on the opposite side of the globe, must of necessity be standing on their heads ; and, although the matter was fully explained on the principle of universal gravitation toward the centre of the earth, tlie puzzle never seemed to get entirely out of the youthful head. Children of larger growth, on coming to China, find a hundred puzzles where before they had only one. The Chinese seem to be standing on their heads in almost every respect ; they reverse the general orders of society in more ways than I can attempt to enumerate. In China the mariner's compass does not point to the north, but to the south ; in other words, the index is placed upon the opposite end of the needle, a fact which must be kept in mind by those who follow the compass, as it might make some difference in laying their course, whether they go north or south, east or west. So in regard to the different points of the compass, they reverse the occidental order, and call northwest westnorth, southeast eastsouth, etc. When they meet a person whom they wish to salute, in- stead of taking him by the hand and giving it a hearty shake, the ordinary salutation with us, they shake their own hands, putting them together and moving them up and down. In most civilized countries it is considered a mark of respect, and even of ordinary politeness, to take off the hat, unless it be for one with whom we are on the most fa- miliar terms. But the Chinese, on the contrary, reo-ard it as sho^ving undue familiarity to uncover the head, and al- though they may remove their shoes on coming into your presence, they never think of removing the hat, or cap, or whatever they may be wearing. The general head-gear 16G AROUND THE WORLD. of the men is a sort of skull-cap. If a Chinaman wishes to do you special honor, instead of placing you at his right hand, you will have a seat or a standing-place on his left. When invited to a feast or other entertainment, the men and women, although invited together, do not eat together, but octcupy separate rooms, a custom which is only partially imitated in strictly English society, where ladies are exj)ect- ed to retire early by themselves, in order to give the gen- tlemen an oppoi'tunity to smoke and drink to their hearts' content. I am sorry to say that the female sex is not regarded with much respect imtil it wears the honors of maternity. Girls in China are of very little account. While at Can- ton I visited, by invitation, the house of a wealthy and highly educated man, one of the Howqua family. I found him in his library, surrounded with books and works of art, some of which he had executed himself. His house was an extensive palace, and every thing about it, as well as his manners and conversation, indicated high culture and refined taste. His little boy coming into the room, I asked the father how many child,ren iie had, and his reply was " One, and two daughters ;" as if the daughters were not deserving of the name of children. The lady who ac- companied me, and who soon afterward was admitted to the ■ wife's apartments, laughingly attempted to impress upon his mind the superiority of the feminine portion of his household, including the two daughters. He took it all in evident good humor, but it was more than doubtful whether any impression was made upon his mind in that direction. The style of dress in China is not only different, as a whole, from what we are accustomed to, but there are some strange transmutations which strike the attention of a traveler. The men very commonly wear a sort of petti- coat — a loose, close garment reaching to the feet, while the women, on the other hand, wear trowsers or pantaloons, literally and not metaphorically. I may say that the lat- CHINESE MANNERS AND CUSTOMS. 1^7 ter wear the pantaloons metaphorically as well as literally, for, contrary to the general ideas in regard to the position and influence of woman in these Oriental countries, there is no part of the world where family authority resides more in the woman. The wife may not have the same high po- sition outside of the family, but maternal authority in China is well nigh supreme, and grand-maternal authority is sometimes still greater. A mother does not lose her right to command her son when he marries or becomes the head of a numerous household of his own, but continues to hold the sceptre over succeeding generations. The dress-makers and milliners in China are men in- stead of women, and the various trades and occupations are singularly mixed up. Having occasion to order an Eastern hat, or topee as it is called, as a protection against the sun, the rays of which often pi'ove fatal, even in the cool season, I sent my measure through a friend. A day or two after, word was brought to my room that the tailor was at the door waiting to see me. On sending for him, I found it was the tailor who had made my hat, and who came to see whether it was a fit. In the streets of a Chi- nese city, almost every man you meet has a fan either in his hand or tucked in his dress, back of liis neck; while, on the other hand, the women indulge freely in a habit which in pur country is supposed to belong to the other sex — that of smoking. The men wear their hair as long as it will grow, longer than any modern reformers that I have ever seen in America, while the women carefully put theirs up. In China, when a man gets angry with another and wishes to be revenged upon him, instead of killing the ob- ject of his hatred he kills himself. The principle on M^hich he does it is the supposition that the man whom he hates will be answerable for his murder, and will be more heavi- ly punished by evil spirits in this world and in the world to come than if his life had been taken. It is certainly, for society, a safer mode of administering vengeance than that which prevails in civilized countries, where the pistol IQS AROUND THE WORLD. f and bowie-knife are made to do their work upon unsus- pecting victims. The Canton poHcemen have quite as orig- inal a mode of performing their services. Instead of look- ing for marauders, they go about the streets at night sound- ing a loud rattle or tom-tom, M'hich may be heard at least a mile, and which seems intended to warn all misdoers that an officer of justice is at hand, and that they must accomplish what they have to do and get out of the way before he ar- rives. The language of China is another of its contradictions. The spoken language is never written, and the written lan- guage is never spoken, so that one may be familiar with Chinese books, and not understand any thing of the conver- sation of the people ; or he may be proficient in the collo- quial tongue, and not understand a word of what lie reads. In reading a book, the Chinese begin at the end (that is, at our end) and read backward ; they read from top to bot- tom instead of across the page, the lines running down- ward, and numbering from right to left. The running title of the book or page is at the side instead of the top of the page, and the contents of the chapter at the end instead of the beginning. The notes, w^hich with us are at the bottom or in the side margin, in Chinese books are at the top of the page. The Cliinese have a custom quite peculiar to themselves of ordering their coffins and having them sent home long before they have any thought of dying. They take pecul- iar pride in selecting the best materials, having them made good and strong, and, when they can afford it, in the most expensive style, and then they take great pleasure in show- ing them to their friends, keeping them where they may be seen by all who call. For the same reason, perhaps a mo- tive of pride, they preserve the bodies of their friends in the house sometimes for weeks and months after death, making a display of the costly receptacle. I might greatly extend this catalogue of contrarieties by speaking of tlie manner in M'hich their schools are con- CHINESE MANNERS AND CUSTOMS. \QC) ducted ; of the old men flying kites, and the boys looking on ; of wearing white instead of black for mourning ; of all classes whitening their shoes with chalk instead of black- ing them ; of mounting the offside of the horse when they ride, etc. But this is enough. China and the Chinese are a great mystery to the world at large, and scarcely less of a mystery to the dwellers in China than to those who never set foot within the Flowery Land. The people of the country are a study, but a study in which little actual progress is made. I have heard those who have been here ten years or more confess that they knew as little of Chinese character, and were almost as un- able to comprehend the national traits, as when they first came to this country. The Chinese are a very stolid, in- communicati^'e, undemonstrative race, so that a foreigner may be associated with them, or may have them in his house as servants, and constantly in his presence for years, and know no more about them at the end of this period than the first day he saw them. I have found one key wdiich, if it does not unlock the mysteries of the Chinese mind, explains the uniform and stereotype character whicli the nation has maintained for centuries, and which it seems determined to maintain foi* centuries to come. A Chinaman is a Chinaman in every part of the empire and the world over. He is nothing else, and can be made nothing else, and he has been the same for long ages. One explanation of this is to be found in the fact that the educated and ruling class of the country are all cast in one mould. The ideas of the nation were formed more than two thousand years ago ; and the only system of education which has existed since that time has, per force, not only compelled the people to adopt these ideas, but has ground them into their very natures, and made them a part of the national character, as much so as the peculiar features of the countenances of the people. All who have read any thing about China must have met with frequent i-eferences to the " Competiti\e Exam- 170 AROUND THE WORLD. iuations," which are the great stimuhis to education. The Chinese are eminently a literary people, a large portion of them being able to read and write, while the highly edu- cated class is very numerous. But this is not the result of any such system of general instruction as prevails in American or European countries. The schools do not com- prise the mass of the children, nor are they of a high class. The education of the people is in a great measure volun- tary, and, such as it is, is secured by its being the only road to position in society and to political preferment. The " Competitive Examination" is the ordeal through which all must pass successfully in order to secure any high stand- ing, and this examination is a sort of mould in which the Chinese mind is cast, and from which it comes out uni- form in shape and character. It is conducted on this wise : The empire is divided into provinces and districts, for each of which there is a separate examination — the dis- trict, the provincial, and the imperial. No one is required to go through an examination, but it is open to all, with the exception of a few classes, such as the children of exe- cutioners, jailers, prostitutes, etc. Before any oiie can be a candidate for the lowest, the district examination, he must have passed through a satisfactory examination be- fore a magistrate, and must present satisfactory testimo- nials as to his parentage, character, etc. At the appointed time, the candidates, who usually number many thousands, assemble at the capital city of the district, and have as- signed to them subjects for essays and a poem, which they are required to produce without assistance and with- in twenty-four hours. The most extensive arrangements are made for the accommodation of this vast number of persons, and also to prevent their obtaining any external aid. The essays are carefully examined by government officials, and so rigid is the ordeal tliat usually not more than one in a hundred passes the test. The successful competitors receive the degree of B.A. — not Bachelor of Arts, but " Beautiful Ability." And the point peculiarly CHINESE MANNERS AND CUSTOMS. \^\ noteworthy is, that all the themes are taken from the writ- ings of the Chinese sages. The essays are not only expect- ed to be a reflection of their teachings, but it is impossible that it should be otherwise, inasmuch as the previous train- ing of the candidate has been confined almost exclusively to their writings. Only those who receive the first degree in the district examination are allowed to compete for the second in the provincial. The provincial examination occurs once in three years at the capital of the province, where a large hall, as it is called, is devoted exclusively to this purpose. The one at Canton (the capital of the province of Quang Tung) which I visited is 1330 feet long, 583 feet wide, and contains cells, arranged in long rows like stalls for horses, for 8653 can- didates. The whole inclosure is surrounded by a high wall, and each row of cells is inclosed, and under the su- pervision of an officer, whose duty it is to prevent all com- munication between the candidates or with the outer world. Here they are shut up, after having been carefully search- ed, to prevent their taking in upon their persons any thing that might assist them in the preparation of their essays. Themes, taken as before from the " Classics," or " Four Books," are then given to them on several successive days ; the essays and poems, which must be produced within a given time, are carefully copied in red ink to prevent rec- ognition by the examiners of the source from which they come, and they are then subjected to the rigid criticism of literary men appointed by the imperial government. On the close of the examination, the names of the successful competitors are posted upon the outer wall, and are her- alded throughout the province. They bear about the same proportion to the whole as before — one to a hundred. They receive the second degree, A.M. — not Masters of Arts, but "Advanced Men" — and become candidates for the third and highest examination, which is held triennial- ly at Peking, and which is equally rigid with the pre- ceding. 172 AROUXD THE WORLD. Those who pass and receive the last degree become eli- gible to public offices, and enter into the most honored and ruling class in the empire. Only two or three hundred out of the thousands who have passed the lower succeed in the imperial examination ; but in this, as in the lower, they liave the privilege of trying again, and thus many present themselves triennially, term after term. In this way fifty or a hundred times as many as are successful in obtaining the prize, receive the training and become educated mem- bers of the communities to which they belong. There is no prize presented to the mind of a Chinese youth which is such a stimulus to unbending effort as the third degree. It comprises all that his ambition could de- sire — social position, office, honor, wealth. The successful candidate, on his return to his home from the capital, is feasted and feted, and frequently a pagoda or some other building is erected in his honor, and as a memorial of the honor which he reflects upon his native city. I have referred to this subject only as giving something of an insight into Chinese character, and as showing wh}' it is that the Chinese remain so much the same, while oth- er nations are undero-oino- chancre. Thev are educated in a system of ideas which have been handed down through twenty centuries ; the hoary-lieaded antiquity of these ideas makes them venerable in their eyes, and it is not strange that they wish future generations to travel in the same path which they and their fathers have trod so long. The teachings of the Chinese sages, Confucius, Mencius, and others, are the fountain of their ideas. Few natives live up to their own standards, and it is not strange that the Chinese practically depart from the wise instruction of those sages ; but this is the mould into which the educated minds are all poured, and it appears to account for many of their national characteristics. BELIGIONS OF CHINA. yj^ XII. EELIGIONS OF CHINA. The prevailing forms of religion in China are Confu- cianism, Buddhism, and Tauism. The former, which is the faith of the educated and influential classes, is more a sys- tem of philosophy and of morals than a religion. It is founded on the teachings of the great Chinese sage who flourished about Ave centuries before the Christian era, whose reputed writings contain a vast amount of practical wisdom and of pure morality. The Chinese owe much to Confucius, and they would be a much better people if they followed his precepts more closely. Buddhism is an im- portation from India, where it had its rise, and from which it passed over Eastern Asia and to the adjacent islands. It is now declining, and the temples devoted to its worship are in many places going into decay. Tauism lays claim rather to the vulgar and uneducated classes. It is a mys- tic sort of religion, deals in incantations and astrology, and, like spiritualism, pretends to intercourse with the departed dead as well as with acknowledged evil spirits. The priests are generally ignorant men, and, through mystic art and by playing upon the superstition of the people, maintain their ascendency over them. There is no more striking or more universal trait of Chi- nese character than its intense superstition. The religious element appears to be wanting; they are simply supersti- tious, and no nation is more so. The spirits of the air, the earth, and the sea are a constant terror to them, and their acts of worship are designed to ward off such influences rather than to pay homage to any exalted being. They use all sorts of charms to keep off from their persons, and houses, and farms the world of evil spirits whicli in their 174 AROUND THE WOBLD. belief are going liither and tliitlier. Ancestral worsliip is universal. No matter in what part of the world they live, the Chinese wush to be bi'ought home when they die, and buried with the generations that preceded them ; and while they live they pay great respect, a reverence amounting to worship, to their departed ancestors, making pilgrimages to their graves, adorning their tombs, erecting tablets to their memory in costly ancestral halls, burning incense, joss- sticks, and candles, and presenting offerings. They rever- ence their dead grandfathers more than their gods. One of tlie most common offerings that the Chinese make in their worship is exceedingly characteristic — a sort of counterfeit money, pasteboard dollars covered with tin-foil, resembling silver dollars, and marked accordingly. This is sometimes offered to a large amount, counting it at its nominal value, and a Chinaman will not only pride him- self on making an offering to his god or his ancestor of several thousand dollars, which cost liim only a trifle, but he will fairly chuckle over the thought that his stupid god or his dead ancestor, not knowing the difference between the counterfeit and the genuine, will give him credit for the full amount in good money. They have numberless inferior gods — the God of the Earth, the God of the Sea, tlie God of Wealth, the God of Letters, the God of Thunder, the God of War, the Kitchen God, etc., etc., which are represented by grotesque images or pictures. The thieves and the gamblers each have their god. They make their appeals to the gods by the use of the lot, every temple being provided with a box of sticks or straws for the purpose. This superstitious disposition to rely upon the lot is carried into all the affairs of life. The Chinese are all gamblers, gambling every where and for every thing. Even tlie little boys, as I have often seen, in going up to a fi'uit-stand, almost invariably cast the die to determine whether they shall have double or nothing for their money. The efforts to propagate Christianity in China have not RELIGIONS OF CHINA. 175 ,^^^' .^|-^#i .x^^>.. • V -^_ CASTING LOTS BEFORE A GOD. met with as much success as in some other countries, but they are far from being a faikire, and there are manifest reasons which, while they account for the want of enlarged success thus far, do not in the least degree discourage those who have undertaken the work. Nowhere have Christian missions had greater obstacles to overcome. The opening of the free ports did not open China to free intercoui'se with the rest of the world. The traditional seclusion of its inhabitants, and their hostility to foreigners and to all for- eign notions, exist to this day in all their force. The mass of the people regard all other nations as outside barbarians, and it is the interest of the educated class to keep alive this hatred. They salute missionaries, as well as others, in the streets with the title of foreign devils, not knowing or not appreciating the motives with which they come to teach a new religion. Foreign intercourse thus far has been carried on by force. The ports were opened, not by the free consent of the Chi- nese, but by the guns of foreign powers. The Chinese wished to live by themselves, neither interfering with oth- ers nor interfered with ; but for purposes of gain, and by 176 AROUND THE WOELD. force of arms, foreign nations compelled them to admit the commerce and the merchants of the world. This of itself was enough to prejudice the nation against missionaries who come from the same lands with the ships of war that battered down their forts and their cities. It is not strange that Christian teachers should find it hard even to gain the ears of those who have been thus treated. And, further- more, this force was employed to open China to commerce for the express purpose of compelling the authorities to ad- mit one of the greatest curses ever thrust upon any peo- ple. The Opium War and the present opium trafiic are a dark blot upon the history of the British government. No one can visit the cities of China and witness the debasing and destructive effects of opium on the multitudes of miserable victims which it is daily depriving of mental and physical vigor and consigning to the grave ; no one can read the piteous words in which the Chinese commissioners have besought the British representatives not to force this de- structive drug upon the nation ; no one can recall the heart- less manner in which such appeals were answered with threats, and then with broadsides from vessels of war, until the way was made open for the wholesale introduction of opium into all parts of the empire, and wonder, after such proceedings on the part of a Christian government, that the Chinese do not seem well disposed to accept the Christian religion. It is not strange that they should put the two to- gether, and regard them with the same hostility. When Sir Kutherford Alcock, the British embassador, was taking his leave of the government at Pekin to return to England on a furlough, Prince Kung said to him, " Xow that you are about to return to your ova\ country, we wish you to take with you your opium and your missionaries." Could any thino- be more natural ? And yet there are those who im- pute the slow progress of Christian missions in China not to the obstacles which have been placed in their way, but to the cause of missions itself. RELIGIONS OF CHINA. 17 I'RINCE KUNG. The Rev. J. R.Wolfe, a Churcli of England missionary of long experience in China, writes : " There is not a particle of truth, as far as my experience goes, in the statement that the Chinese people are opposed to tke propagation of Christianity, or dislike the missionaries simply because they are such. There is, however, one thing which the Chinese people dislike, and which has tended more than any thing else to produce hatred for foreigners, and cause misery and ruin to multitudes of the Chinese people them- selves, and that one thing is the act of the British government in compelling the Chinese people at the point of the bayonet to buy the opium, wdien they most virtuously and patriotical- ly protested against it. I have invariably found in my jour- neys through the country that this act of the British govern- ment is remembered with deep and lasting hatred by all class- es of the people, and is handed down from father'to son as one cause why the English should be held in everlasting ha- tred and contempt." While I was at Canton, one of the missionaries with whom I was crossing the river in a ferry-boat fell into con-, versation with two or three intelligent Chinese, and the first M 178 AROUND THE WORLD. reply of the person he addressed was, " You are bringino; opmm into the country to destroy us, and we do not want to have any thmg to do with your religion." In no other country has the personal example of irrelig- ious men from Christian lands done more to prejudice the people against Christianity. Too many of those who go to foreign parts lay aside even the restraints of morality by which they are bound at home, and set before the heathen an example of license in living which becomes a libel upon the religion of their native lands. The people of those countries can not make the distinction which is made at home between those who profess to be governed by the principles of Christianity and those who do not ; all are called Christians, and the name and cause of true religion must bear the burden of those immoralities. I could de- tail scenes which I have witnessed on these distant shores that were shocking to my own feelings as they would be to any Christian mind, and yet they were all laid to the ac- count of Christianity. The present attitude of the foreign merchants in China toward tlie Chinese is another hinderance to the success of efforts made to promote their conversion to Christianity. The spirit of the Opium War is still at work. Foreign mer- chants, with few exceptions, go to China without a thought of doing the Chinese any good, simply to make money. The opportunities for making large fortunes have gone by. The Chinese are o-ettino- a measure of the f oreio;n trade into their own hands. Trade with the interior is still restricted. These and other causes have awakened the hostilitv of foreio-ners toward the Chinese, and now it is difficult to say where the greater degree of hostility lies, ^vith the Chinese or the for- eign traders. While I was in China, the desire for another war was prevalent among the foreign residents; I might say it was almost universal, and the motive was to break down the restrictions upon trade, and give foreigners great- er opportunities for making money. After all the injuries the Chinese have sustained in the past, and with the feel- RELIOIOXS OF CHINA. I79 ings cherished toward them at the present time, I do not at all wonder that thev are ready to spew every foreigner, missionary as well as merchant, out of the land. I do not mean to intimate that Christian missionaries share in this anti-Chinese feeling ; they do not ; but the Chinese do not comprehend the different motives which actuate the two classes. The difficulty of acquiring the language so as to become familiar with it has been a ijreat obstacle. A sino;le fact will o-ive some idea of this. Throuo-h the instriunentalitv of the American Presbyterian Mission, metal types have come into use in printing Chinese. The Mission Press at Shanghai is the most extensive printing establishment in the empire. On entering it, I was confronted with a series of amphitheatres, in the interior of each of which stood a compositor, and I saw at a glance the immensity of the work which every one who learns to read, or write, or print the language has to encounter. Each of these amphithea- tres was what printers call a case, containing, not twenty- six letters, as in English printing offices, but more than six thousand different characters or types, and, with the combinations, more than thirteen thousand. The Diction- ary of Dr. Morrison contained forty thousand separate char- acters, which must become familiar to the eye, and various inflections must be given to similar words to express the ideas associated, or one may fail to express what he means. In no language are ludicrous errors more apt to be made by gi^'ing a wrong accent or inflection, and thus entirely chanffino; the sense. But, notwithstanding all these difficulties, a great work lias been already accomplished. Few even of those who are familiar with the current work of missions in China have any adequate idea of what has actually been done. Protestant missionaries are almost the only persons who have ever mastered the language. ISTot one merchant in a hundred, scarcely one in a thousand, makes even the at- tempt to acquire it either for reading or speaking. All 130 AROUND THE WOULD. the Chinese Dictionaries for English students have been made by missionaries. The only writers who have pre- pared books in Chinese designed to instruct and elevate the people have been missionaries. I have before me a cata- logue of nearly a hundred works in Chinese on various sciences, history, geography, medicine, law, etc., all of which have been prepared by Protestant missionaries. They have done more than any and all other men to promote a knowl- edge of Chinese literature. They have established and maintained in Chinese cities hospitals which have been a great blessing to the people, and which are doing much to prepare the way for the reception of the Gospel of Christ. At Canton a hospital was established in 1835 by Dr. Peter Parker, then a missionary, which has been a house of mercy to hundreds of thousands. During the year that I was at Canton there had been 26,457 patients, many of whom re- (juired skillful surgical treatment. During my stay in that 'S AT MAOAO. front of this church, and he fulfilled his vow. The church is called the " Sailors' Church," and a gentleman who has long resided at Macao assured me that it is a common cus- tom with the sailors to bring various parts of the rigging of their ships up the steep hill to this church to have them blessed. A beautiful though lonely spot is known as Camoens's Garden, where the great poet, the author of the Lusiad, walked, and mused, and Ma^ote. The grotto wdiich bears his name, and a monument to his memory, is a curious forma- tion of rocks in the midst of extensive grounds, that are laid out with great taste, and shaded with large Oriental trees. It is just such a spot as a poet would select for the indulgence of his fancy, and it has probably lost none of its beauty by the lapse of time. Camoens w^as born in 1524. lie came to the East in 1553, and for a satire upon 188 AROUND THE WORLD. the Viceroy of Goa was banished to Macao. Just at the entrance to the beautiful grounds of which I have spoken stands the Enghsh Chapel, and immediately behind it is the Protestant Cemetery, composed of a series of terraces, the whole very carefully and neatly kept. It is just such a quiet and beautiful spot as any one might choose to lie down in and sleep till the final waking. It is consecrated, not for, but by the graves of Morrison, the first and one of the noblest of the band of missionaries to the Chinese, and several members of his family. Other missionaries were also buried here. The last evening of our stay in Macao, Captain Endicott (a name well known in Kew York), who had resided here more than thirty years, and of whose death I have heard with sorrow since leaving China, drove us out to the Bar- rier, making the entire circuit of the island, a charming drive of several miles, much of it along the sea-shore. On our way we passed the temple in which the treaty with China was concluded and signed by the United States Commissioner, the Hon. Caleb Cushing, and the Chinese Commissioner Keying, the former not being allowed to en- ter China proper. The Chinese, like the Japanese, have no special reverence for their temples, and often use them for secular purposes. We returned to Hong Kong from Macao, and made our preparations for another voyage upon the restless, treach- erous China Sea, the worst of all seas on which I liave had occasion to sail. Before embarking for Calcutta we were assured that at this season of the year, the last of Novem- ber, we should have a delightful passage to Singapore, with only enough of the northeast monsoon to keep the air from stagnating, and the sea from becoming like mol- ten glass. But I have learned to put little faith in predic- tions of the weather, even by sailors, having been obliged so often to interpret prophecies by contraries. I now wait for the weather to come before building upon it any sub- stantial castles. We found the predictions in regard to MACAO, SINGAPORE, AND PENANG. 189 this voyage as much at fault as ever. But, before writ- ing out my log, let me introduce the reader to our ship, with its passengers and crew. There is no regular line of mail steamers between Ilong Kong and Calcutta direct. The English Peninsular and Oriental mail steamer (always called in the East " the P. and O. Line") leaves Hong Kong once a month, touches at Singapore, and then runs across to Point de Galle, the southern cape of the island of Ceylon, where the passen- gers for Calcutta are transferred to another steamer, which touches at Madras on its way up to the Hoogly. The Erencli steamers of the Messageries Im^eriales also touch at Singapore and Ceylon, but do not go to Calcutta. There are large, fine steamers, engaged principally in the opium trade, which take passengers back and forth, and, as there is no opium going to India, the voyage in that direction is made very comfortably. They touch at Singapore and Penaiig. In one of these, the Hindostan, Captain de Smidt, we took passage. Going on board, we stowed ourselves and our luggage away, and then began to look around for our fellow-passengers, who, with the crew, formed such a curious commingling of races, that I took the trouble to ask the captain for his part of the catalogue, which I found to be as follows : The captain was a Bel- gian by parentage, born at the Cape of Good Hope, a Brit- ish subject, and had spent all his life upon the sea, a true cosmopolitan. He was, by the way, a noble specimen of the sailor, well educated and well read, very affable and communicative. The first officer was a Scotchman, the others Scotch and English ; the quartermasters were Por- tuguese, the gunner half Malay and half Portuguese, the carpenter a Chinese, the firemen Chittagong Indians, who stand the heat better than any others ; the crew, a sa^'age- looking set of fellows, were Malays, Bengalese, Hindoos, Persians, Arabians, Bombay, Muscat, and Zanzibar men — one or two of them real African neo-roes. Among the passengers we mmibered eight Americans, 190 AROUND THE WORLD. who took possession of one side of the deck, which, in an- ticipation of hot weather, was to be onr home day and night for nearly a fortnight. On the opposite side of the deck were several wealthy Jews, the ladies in a blaze of dia- monds as they came on deck ; three Parsees, two of whom, a gentleman and his wife, were our fellow-passengers on crossing the Pacific Ocean. Two Armenians subsequently came on board. The deck-passengers were Chinese, Ben- galese, Hindoos, Mohammedans, and I do not know what all. We did not want for variety ; but, strange to say, not- withstanding the numerous nationalities, and the fact that the most of our passengers w^ere residents of Oriental coun- tries, the only language that was ordinarily spoken was En- glish. This enabled us all — Jews and Gentiles, Parsees, Hindoos, Mohammedans, and Armenians — to become well acquainted, and we had a very pleasant time during the voyage. Nor was religious conversation debarred. Ori- ental and Western politeness allowed us to speak freely of each other's views without any offense being given. It would be rare to find so many religions represented where such freedom of intercourse and of conversation was en- joyed. We had but fairly o;ot out of the harl^or and from under the shelter of the headlands when we caught the monsoon, blowing fresh and strong. It upset all our calculations in more senses than one, but the sweet assurance was given us that the wind would go down as we got farther south. On the contrary, the farther south we ran the more heavily the wind blew. There was one consolation — it was a fair wind, but as it increased, the huge waves came chasing us from behind, threatening all the while to overwhelm us. Not being able to move about much of the time, we sat or lay on deck watching the great seas as they towered above the stern, coming on with all their force, as if determined the next time to pounce upon us and wash us all from the deck ; but our ship never failed to obey the law of gravitation which gives the highest place to the lighter bod}', and just MACAO, SINGAPORE, AND PENANG. IQl at tliG critical moment she would lift her stern ffracefullv and allow the swell to pass nnderneath. This she contin- ued to do for five days, tlie monsoon increasing all the while, and tossing us up and down most inconveniently. In the evening of the fifth day out, when we were with- in about two degrees of the equator, dark clouds were seen gathering in the west, which soon overspread the sky and the sea, the blackness of which was relieved only by fierce flashes of lightning. Presently the rain came down in a tropical deluge; and while the elements were all in wild commotion, the engine suddenly stopped, the ship swung round into the trough of the sea as helpless as a log, and then commenced that awful rollino; of the vessel which is far more terrible than drivius:: before or even facing a storm. The heat was too great for us to go below, and we preferred to remain on deck, sheltered onl}- by an awning, and take the chances of the storm ; but as the ship rolled heavily from one side to the other, as if about to roll com- pletely over, we were thrown about or compelled to cling fast to whatever was within reach. Some of the passengers were overcome witli terror, expecting by the next lurch of the ship to be pitched into the sea. One poor Jewess, who came on board with a fortune on her person in the shape of diamonds and emeralds, shrieked aloud and called upon God to save her. It was to all of us more or less a scene of terror, aggravated by the absolute blackness of darkness that surrounded us. As soon as the ship began to recover lierself, a voice by my side commenced singing, '■ Tossed upon life's raging billows, Sweet it is, O Lord, to know Thou didst press a sailor's pillow, And canst feel a sailor's woe. Never slumbering, never sleeping, Though the night be dark and drear; Thou, the faithful, watch art keeping ; 'All, all's well,' thy constant cheer." The moment that the engine stopped I comprehended the cause. I had learned from the captain that we were drawing near a rocky part of the China Sea, in wliicli were 192 AROUND THE WOULD. sevei'al islands, and in the thick darkness and descending- torrents of rain it was impossible to see the course ; we might at any moment strike a rock or run ashore ; it was safer to let the ship drift than to drive her with the engine. The storm of rain became so severe that we were at length compelled to go below, but all night long the ship was start- ing and stopping, and when the morning came, instead of being to the west of Bintang Island, as we should have been, we had drifted with the currents thirty miles to the east. The morning light was very pleasant to the eyes, and so was the sight of Singapore, with its beautiful groves of palm, and its substantial buildings stretching along the t^hore for one or two miles. "VVe did not at all regret to say farewell to the China Seas. Three times had we tried them, and found them al- ways turbulent, although wq had taken them at the best season of the year. Often, while tossing on the waves be- tween Hong Kong and Singapore, was I reminded of a voy- age made over the same sea by a beloved fi'iend, Walter M. Lowrie, who subsequently perished by the hands of pirates near Shanghai. He came to China in 1842. On the 18th of June of that year he left Macao for Singapore in a sail- ino; vessel, and, after being driven hither and thither bv tempests for two months, the ship put in to Manilla. On the 18th of September he sailed again for Singapore, but on the 25th of the same month the ship struck a hidden rock far out at sea, and was wrecked. The crew and pas- sengers took to the boats, and after spending five days un- der a burning sun without shelter, and with little hope of ■seeing land, tliev at leno'th reached the island of Luban. There he found a vessel bound for Hong Kong, in which he returned almost to the point from which he started, hav- ing been gone just four months on a fruitless voyage. Five years afterward, as he was on his way from Shanghai to Ningpo in a native boat, he was attacked by pirates and thrown into the sea. While struggling in the water, he cast the Bible, which he had kept in his hand, into the boat, and MACAO, SINGAPORE, AND PENANG. J 93 then sank. This precious relic was saved and restored to his friends, but his body still sleeps in the sea. He was one of the noblest of that band who have devoted their lives to tlie service of Christ and his Church in the evan- gelization of China. A few miles northeast of Singapore we crossed the ISOth meridian west or east of Xew York, being then precisely on the opposite side of the globe to our home, l^either did we fall from the deck of the ship, nor did the ship fall from the sea, nor did the sea fall off from the land, but all tilings continued to gravitate as at home. We were just twelve hours in time from the friends whom we had left behind ; it was midnight with us, but high noon with them. This might have" been the proper time to drop a day in our reckoning; and right glad should we have been to drop four or five davs, if we could have avoided the tossino;s of the sea. This part of the voyage over, we sailed at length on a bright, beautiful morning into the harbor of Singa- pore. It was a delightful sensation, after five days and nights of incessant tossing, to feel once more at rest, and still more delightful were our sensations when we stepped ashore and found ourselves in an earthly paradise, the most enchant- ing spot that I have looked upon in any latitude or in any clime. As I wandered among the groves of spice, and palm, and every form of tropical and Oriental vegetation, I caught myself continually repeating the words of the old Mogul inscription, " If there be a paradise on earth, it is this, it is this !" Singa|X)re is situated on an island of the same name, just at the extremity of the Malacca peninsula. It is an English colon V, havino; been ceded to Great Britain in 1824. Some one has explained the name as meaning " the place of lions," rather an extraordinary name for a place where lions never were known. The island once abounded in tigers, which are still occasionally met with. In former times, it is said, tliev carried off and ate one man a dav on N 194 AROUND THE WORLD. an average. A resident of more tliaii thirty years, who had made the languages of the East a study, informed me that the word Singapore means a place to touch at, a very ap- propriate name. It is, in reality, the touching-place for all steamers which pass eastward or westward, from whatever quarter they come. Constant communication is kept up with the rest of the world, and scarcely a day passes with- out a visit from one or more of the grand fleet of steamers which are driving sails from the Eastern waters as they have driven them from the Atlantic. Singapore is not an undesirable place for residence, being on the great high- road of the nations east and west. But its chief attrac- tions consist in its delightful climate and its rare produc- tions. Situated only one degree north of the equator, it enjoys perpetual summer, and the atmosphere being moist from the vicinity of the sea, and the frequent showers with which it is visited at all seasons, the heat is never oppress- ive, the thermometer seldom rising above 90°. I have be- fore me the meteorological record of an entire year, in which the greatest heat was 88° and the lowest 73°. In general attractiveness it is very similar to the island of Ceylon, just across the Indian Ocean, with this exception^ that \vhile in Ceylon, according to Bishop Ileber, " only man is vile," in Singapore the horses are equally vile. On going ashore, w^e were met by the first crowd of hackmen that ^^•e had seen since leaving the Western continent, and they seemed, from their exorbitant demands, to be in correspond- ence with the fi-aternity in New York ; for when we came to settle accounts, they always had some plea on which the original demand was increased. The horses, too, were mere rats, scarcely able to draw an empty carriage. More than once, in ascending a slight hill, I was obliged to alight and assist them up, or leave the carriage and its other occupants in the interior of the island. But the island itself sur- passed, in the variety and richness of its vegetable growth, all that I had conceived of the natural grandeur of the tropics. MACAO, SINGAPORE, AND PENANG. 195 Before reaching the harbor, we saw from the steamer, first with the glass and then with the naked eye, large plan- tations of banana, cocoannt, and other varieties of the palm, stretching along the coast for miles. The cocoannt grows liere with great luxuriance, the fruit of enormous size, and the leaves attainina: the leno-th of twelve or fifteen feet. It is cultivated for the sake of the oil, Mdiich is used for illu- minating purposes. The bananas, although considered very fine, are not so large nor so highly flavored than those from the "West Indies. I hesitate not to record the general re- mark, that the fruits of the East Indies, with very few ex- ceptions, are much less rich in flavor than those of the West. It is in spices of all kinds that the East has the superiority, and of these we had a fine specimen at Singapore. At the invitation of the proprietor, we took a morning walk into a grove of nutmegs occupying several acres. The tree grows to the height of about twenty-five or thirty feet, resembles a pear-tree in its general appearance, and bears a fi'uit about the size and shape of an ordinary Seckle pear. The grove was in full bearing. Every morn- ing a man walks through, carefully examining each tree to see if the fruit has opened, the cracking of the outer shell being an indication that the nutmeg is fully ripe. This opening of the shell reveals an inner case of the brightest vermilion, the ordinary mace of commerce ; and when this is removed the nutmeg is found inclosed in a third shell, much harder than the outer one. I gathered several speci- mens, preserving some of them in their original tri-fold envelopes. Mr. P. Yoakim, a wealthy Armenian merchant, who was our fellow-passenger from Singapore to Calcutta, and to whom I was indebted for much information in regard to his beautiful island home, has an extensive spice plantation a short drive from the town. It will abundantly repay any one who touches at Singapore, and has the time to make the excursion, and the gentlemanly proprietor will give him a hearty welcome. This plantation has on it 196 AROUND THE WORLD. 12,000 cocoaimt-trees, 1500 nntmeg-trees, with cinnamon, clove, and all kinds of si3ices. The clove grows in large clusters upon the extremities of the branches of a large tree, and was in season when we were at Singapore. Mr. Yoakim has an orchid house of great extent. The Rev. Mr. Keasbury, who has spent more than thirty years as a missionary at Singapore, and who, although not connected with any society, is still prosecuting his work vigorously — preaching, teaching, and superintending a printing establishment that is sending out among the va- rious classes of natives, and into other regions along the Malacca coast and among the islands, a knowledge of the Gospel, has reclaimed from the jungle, about two miles out of town, a small plantation, which yields all the fruits and spices of the tropics, with a profusion of shade, made more delightful by its fragrance. Among the trees and shrubs that I saw in his grounds were the following: pine- apple, cocoanut, bread-fruit, orange, mango, jack - fruit, mangostine, durian, custard-apple, coffee, chocolate, nut- meg, clove, cassia, etc., together with a large variety of shade and ornamental trees, among wdiicli was the banyan. The drive to Mr. Keasbury's was one of the most beauti- ful imao-inable, the road being lined with buno;alows and plantations laid out with exquisite taste, and adorned with all the luxuriance of tropical vegetation. One of the most conspicuous trees upon the island was the fan-palm ; not the palm from which fans are made, but a large tree hav- ing the symmetry and shape of a fan, as flat as if it had been placed in a press, although the circle of the leaves alone is at least twenty feet in diameter. The tree resem- bles the tail of a peacock when fully spread. This singu- lar tree is also called " the traveler's fountain," on account of the large amount of water secreted b}^ it, which flows out when the tree is punctured, affording to the trav^eler an abundant supply. There is at Singapore a botanical garden or park, over the entrance to which is an inscrip- tion, " Open only to subscribers and strangers." It is well JUACAO, SINGAPORE, AND PENAN G. 197 laid out and well kept, with a large variety of trees and plants from different climes. Ilouqiia's Garden, some miles from the town, is in the stiff Chinese style, distorting instead of cultivating nature — a process which neither in itself nor in its results has any attractions for my eye. One can not go amiss at Singapore in looking for the beautiful. The whole island is covered with what seems a spontaneous growth of all that is graceful and attractive in vegetation, and animal life is not wanting to enliven the scene. The jungle and forest abound in birds of the richest plumage, tribes of monkeys chatter among the liranches of the trees, and occasionally a tiger makes his appearance when hard pressed for something to eat. The second morning of our stay we spent in company with Rev. Mr. Grant, a missionary representing the Plym- outh Brethren, and Major Malan, of the British army, sta- tioned here (a grandson of the depai'ted patriarch of Gene- va, Dr. Csesar Malan), in visiting the Gospel-house, the school for young girls established by Miss Cooke, now in England, which is supported chiefly by the work of the pu- pils. The embroidery is sold at a public annual fair, and is quite equal to that found at the Oriental bazars. Singapore was once a very important missionary station, not so much in its relation to the permanent population of the place as on account of its affording an opportunity to exert an influence upon China and other neighboring countries. It was ttou arCj, a standing-place on which to operate while the Celestial Empire was closed against for- eigners. For a long period there has been a large Chinese population on the island, so large as really to afford a broad field for the missionary to work. If I am not mistaken, there were at one time as many as thirty missionaries here ; but just as soon as the Chinese Empire was thrown open, the force moved on, and now the station is almost aban- doned. Mr, Keasbury and Mr. Grant are the only mission- aries whom I met. There are in the town of Singapore four Protestant churches, two of them Chinese ; four Ro- 198 AROUND THE WORLD. man Catholic, of which two are also Chinese ; one Arme- nian ; one Jewish synagogue ; three Mohammedan mosques ; one Hindoo temple; one Chinese Buddhist temple, and some minor places of worship. For its size, Singapore has the most conglomerate popu- lation of any city in the world, almost every nation being represented. The variety in costume and general appear- ance strikes the stranger at once. It was the more notice- able to us, coming from Japan and China, where the ordi- nary dress of the people is perfectly uniform, a dull blue cotton. The wharf, as we were leaving, was one of the gayest scenes that we have met with. A large crowd, in all the colors of the rainbow, occupied the bund. There were Jews and Jewesses elegantly dressed and glittering with jewels ; Armenians, the ladies fine-looking and splen- didly dressed ; Mohammedans with large red turbans ; Bengalese ; Malays in all sorts of bright colors, and many of them in plain dark color, that in which they were born ; then there were English, and French, and other Europeans in their own national costumes. Besides the people, there was a grand display of gay-colored birds for sale — parrots in green, crimson, scarlet, yellow, white, etc. " While we were waiting for the steamer to be off, boys, who seem to belong to some amphibious tribe, amused the passengers by diving from boats for pieces of money thrown into the water, invariably catching them before they reached the bottom, which was six or eight fathoms below. In the midst of this variegated scene the order was given, and we were once more upon the sea. We entered the Straits of Malacca, and had a quiet and pleasant voyage to Penang, which we reached early on the morning of the second day. As it was Saturday, the Jews and Jewesses on board had a long discussion in regard to the propriety of going ashore to spend the day, as it was their Sabbath. Some of them were really conscientious, but others were disposed to treat the question in a very Rabbinical way. One Jew maintained that they might go MACAO, SINGAPORE, AND PENANO. 199 ashore, but not go out in carriages, as that would be con- trary to the command, '■'■Seven days shalt thou labor," etc., this being the form in which he repeated it, and according to which he had probably been most accustomed to observe the day. Another thought it right to ride on an elephant on the Sabbath, but not in a carriage. The result of the discussion was that some went on shore and spent the day as they chose, while others, more conscientious, remained on board and played cards for money. Having a note of introduction to the Rev. Mr. Macdon- aid, an Independent missionary at Penang^ I went ashore to present it. Calling at the bungalow of the chief com- missioner of police to make some inquiry, we were very courteously received. lie immediately ordered his car- riage and sent an officer to take us to the residence of the missionary, where we spent the morning in very pleasant intercourse with those whom we had met as strangers. It was truly delightful to enjoy their Christian society on this other side of the world, and as pleasant to them, they as- sured us, to have a call from travelers who felt an interest in them and in their work for the Master's sake. Mr. Macdonald is the only missionary now at Penang, and his labors are distributed among the various races which com- pose the population of the town, among which, very strange- ly, the Chinese appear to be the most numerous. They oc- cupy a separate portion of the city, forming a distinct com- munity. The Celestials, indeed, are scattered through all the cities east of India. Even Calcutta has a large Chinese population. They are possessed of great enterprise, and, the population of China being so dense, the motive to em- igration is strong. A few years since a fearful riot oc- curred among the Chinese at Penang, growing out of some of their clannish ideas. The whole community became in- volved in it, and it was not quelled until nearly a thousand lives were lost. As our steamer was to lie all day at Penang, Mr. Mac- donald proposed a drive through the town and into the 200 AROUND THE WORLD. country, a proposition which we were nothing loth to ac- cept. The city itself is even more beautiful, at least some portions of it, than Singapore, and the country has the same luxuriant, tropical appearance, abounding in cocoanut groves, the cocoanut and betelnut being among the chief productions. During our drive we called upon a wealthy Mohammedan, Mahomet Noordin, the head of the Ivlings, who owns a large part of the native city of Penang. It was just after noon, and as we di'ove up to the doorway tlie servant said his master was asleep, and " no man was so brave as to disturb him between the hours of twelve and three," We insisted on his announcing our arrival, but he was resolute until I produced my card, and Mr. Macdon- ald, writing his own name on it, told him to take it to his master. We waited a few moments, expecting him to return with- out having presented it, but some one had been brave enough to present the card, and we were shown into the private rooms of the chief, where he received us not only with cor- diality, but with Oriental flattery. He expressed great de- light at seeing us, and when we apologized for having dis- turbed his slumbers, he said " it made him very much hap- py to have a visit from us, but that if the lieutenant gov- ernor had called at that hour he would not have received him." He then led us into his public reception-room and ordered cheroots and wine, of which, being a Mohammed- an, he could not partake, but he had it placed before us, each glass on an elegantly-chased silver salver. Mr. Mac- donald at first declined to take wine, saying, " I am very much like the Mohammedans in one respect — I take very little wine." Mahomet Noordin immediately retorted with a hearty laugh at his own wit, "And I am very much like the Christians — I drink plenty of brandy and water." He talked very intelhgently about America and of different Europeans whom he had met at Penang. He asked how long we were expecting to stay, and said if I would come to Penang and live he would give me a bungalow, with ev- MACAO, SINGAPOBE, AND PENANO. 201 ery thing that could make us comfoi'table, and that if I would stay for only a week he would have a house made ready for us, and that his horses and carriages should be at my command, all of which generous offers I was obliged to decline. The old gentleman (for he was quite advanced in years) took us around his extensive house, pointed out one large building after another which he had gradually added to his home, and then pointing to one small house in the centre, in which he had first received us, a low and comparatively mean-looking building, said, " That was my father's house:" Although he had added house to house, he still retained the paternal roof for his own home. A mountain lying back of the city affords a magnificent view of the town, the country around it, and of the sea ; but it requires the greater part of a day to make the as- cent, and we had not time for the excursion. Besides, a lieavy rain came on, in the midst of which we were obliged to make our way back to the steamer in an open boat, the boatmen embracino; the occasion to demand an exorbitant fare. Soon after we had reached the steamer the wind in- creased, and, as the tide was running with great velocity, it was with immense difiiculty that some of the passengers reached the steamer and got on board. These tropical regions are as prolific of animal life as of vegetable. The most venomous snakes are quite at home in all these beautiful places, and they do not disdain an in- vitino; buns-alow for a residence. As we were drivino; through the city of Penang a house was pointed out to me in which the proprietor found, on coming home one day, two boa constrictors occupying his parlor and waiting to give him a warm embrace ; but he declined the compli- ment, and chose to have them put out of the w^ay. We resumed our sail through the Straits of Malacca. On the third day out from Penang we passed a chain of islands which crop out occasionally from the sea, evidently a con- tinuation into the ocean of the mountains of Burmah. This 202 AHOUND THE WORLD. chain runs down to the island of Sumatra, and separates the Andaman Sea and the Gulf of Martaban from the Bay of Bengal, which we presently entered. The Andaman Isl- ands are a penal settlement, to which the mutineers from India were sent to the number of sevei-al thousands. Some portions of the islands are said to be inhabited by cannibals, into whose hands and jaws some of the mutineers fell in making an attempt at escape. The Bay of Bengal was like a mirror, and scarcely was the dying swell from a wave to be seen. The air was de- lightfully warm, and in the calmness which settled down over the sea great numbers of flying fish, tempted fi*om their native element to try their wings in a lighter atmos- phere, skimmed along the surface in flocks. Immense sea- turtles also came to the surface to sun themselves, and were not roused from their slumbers until we were just upon them. These waters are inhabited by snakes which some- times reach a large size, very inconveniently making their way into cabin windows, or on deck when a stray rope liangs over the side by which they can work their way on board. We saw them, but happily had no visit from them on board. Some of our passengers took the precaution to close their ports, lest they should find in their cabins these unwelcome visitors. While sailing up this sea we were often tantalized like the travelers in the desert, only they are decei\'ed by what appears to be water, while we had the promise of land which never came in sight. I had never before seen a marine mirage, but for days the state of the atmosphere was such that we seemed to be approaching shores which loomed up in the distance. As we sailed on and on, the shores were ever as far off as at first, and ever as near, and finally they would fade away into air. As we were drawing near the mouth of the Hoogly we beffan to meet the East Indiamen, homeward bound. Their occupation will soon be gone, now that steam is monopoliz- ing not only the passenger, but the carrying trade of the CALCUTTA. 203 ocean, especially if the Suez Canal should prove a success ; but with all the speed and the modern appliances for lux- ury on the steamers of the present day, I do not doubt that there was more of comfort in some of the large East India ships which made the voyage around the Cape. The great drawback to comfort was the length of the voyage, but even this enabled those who had weak stomachs to become ac- customed to the sea, and as " hanging is nothing when one gets used to it," so it is of the ceaseless rolling of the sea. CALCUTTA. Cllcutta is about a hundred miles fi'om the mouth of the Hoogly, one of the outlets of the Ganges. The greater part of the distance up fi'om the sea the banks of the river are a wild jungle, through which are scattered, sometimes in groves, the cocoanut and other palms, the whole vegeta- tion having a strictly Oriental aspect. The banks of the stream are as flat as those of the Lower Mississippi. Xear the mouth of the Hoogly stands a monument, sad as a me- morial, and strikingly suggestive of adventures which are still to be met with in all parts of India. It marks the spot where a young lad}' once disappeared in the grasp of a tiger. A vessel from home was detained by the tide, and a number of passengers concluded to go ashore and while away the time by a stroll among the palms. One of the party strayed a little from the rest, when a scream was heard ; they ran to her assistance, but only in time to see her carried off by one of tlie tigers that still infest the j un- gles, even in the vicinity of the towns. As we approached the city of palaces, the signs of culti- vation, and at length of Eastern wealth, became more fre- quent. For several miles the river on either hand was 204: AROUXD THE WORLD. EiiTEANOE TO THE IIOOGLY. lined with rich plantations and costh' residences. The palms, acacias, and other tropical trees were as fresh and vigorous as if it were not the third day of winter. About two miles below^ Calcutta, among many of the choice trees of the tropics, stands one of the finest specimens of the banyan tree in all India. I do not know the number of its trunks, but one of these trees is described as having three hundred and fifty large branches that have shot down and become rooted, forming three hundred and fifty large trees, and more than three thousand smaller ones, making from one tree, still joined together by its branches, an im- mense grove. On the opposite shore is the palace of the ex-King of Oude, who was dethroned by the East India Company and CALCUTTA. 205 brought to Calcutta as a sort of prisoner of state. He was allowed to retain a large portion of his wealth, and still has a princely, if not a royal revenue. His buildings are very beautiful, extending a long distance upon the river's bank. Among them was a temple, the dome of which was burn- ished gold, dazzling the eyes in the bright sunlight. "We were detained several hours opposite his grounds waiting for orders from the Custom-house, and had abundance of time to study all the beauties of the place. Nothing in the ample grounds of the dethroned monarch attracted my at- tention like a small but beautiful kiosk wliicli stood di- rectly upon the river's bank. It was about twelve or fif- teen feet square, with a dome-shaped roof ; its sides were open, but grated with iron bars, and witliiu was a royal Bengal tiger pacing up and down in all his majesty. I do not know whether the royal owner of the grounds designed this as a satire upon the power which had dethroned him and taken possession of liis territory, but if so, it was, in- deed, a biting satire. The order from the Custom-house came at leno-th, and we steamed up to the anchorage directly opposite Fort Wil- liam, which stands upon a vast open plain, known as the Maidan, quite to the south of the city. As we approached the ghaut, or landing-place, we found gathered on the shore one of the most curious crowds that we ever beheld. All nations and all costumes appeared to be represented, the crimson garments of tlie Bengalese and Hindoo women pre- dominating, while turbaned, and gowned, and trowsered men and women of all complexions and styles of dress filled up the picture. Awaiting ns was a large fleet of native boats, manned by the most voracions cormorants that we have met with in any part of the world. Their shoutings and fightings, one with another, to secure the landing of our persons and our baggage (we were not fifty yards from the shore), would have silenced the builders of the towers of Babel. It became necessary for us to shout and fight as vigorously as they, in order to prevent our bag- 2U6 AROUND THE WORLD. gage from being carried off into a score of separate boats ; but at length we were landed. Then came another tug of war, Not one of the boat- men Avoiild carry the baggage up the bank to the gharries or carriages, about fifty feet distant, and the same process of fighting and shouting was renewed, the army of the Philistines in the mean while having increased as we reached the shore. I steadfastly refused, in the most ve- hement Orientalisms I could command, to pay one of them a single copper pie until I saw every thing on the gharries, by which time the number of clamorous creditors had still farther multiplied, and each one demanded enough for all, whether he had touched our baggage or not. Never be- fore or since have I found it so hard to pay an honest debt, only because it was im^^ossible to select from a crowd of rapacious Hindoos, who all looked as much alike as if the}' were the same man, those to whom the debt was actually due. At length, seeing that all was ready, I selected the one who was most violent in his demonstrations, handed him what I thought was right, motioned to the rest to get their dues from him, and, leaving him to be torn in pieces by the crowd, sprang into the gharry and was off for the hotel. I never learned whether the man survived the com- bined charge, but I could do no better. The longer I par- leyed in English, the larger and more imperious the crowd of Hindoos became, and there was neither native nor En- glish police to whom I could appeal. Arrived at Spence's Hotel, we were provided with rooms after stipulating to give them up for the Duke of Edin- burg and suite, who had engaged them for the following- week. They were immense quarters. Oriental in style and accommodations. AVe were abundantly supplied with serv- ants — four, and sometimes five, who seemed gifted with omnipresence, were always at hand to wait on two of us. With their dusky forms clothed from head to foot in white ; moving about without shoes, noiselessly, and without ut- tering a word, they were like so many lost sjDirits, or like CALCUTTA. 207 Hindoos in grave-clothes. When waiting on us at our table they wore white muslin hats, with immense brims covered with the same material, and, excepting that they were clothed in white instead of drab, we should have fancied om-selves served by the spirits of some of the fol- lowers of George Fox or William Penn. As the shades of night came on, and we grew anxious to try the effect of sleeping on shore, we found it next to impossible to relieve ourselves of their presence. AVe signified to them, as well as we could, that their duties for the day were over, and that we were about to retire. We motioned them out of our quarters, and fancied that we had seen the last of them for the night, but scarcely had we turned around when the same dark ghosts in white stood before us. They had stolen, without a sound, through another door into the room, and were waiting for our orders, which were that they should disappear, and at length they did. We were enjoying our first sleep on land, after many davs and nio-hts of tossino; on the China Sea and the Bav of Bengal, when, just after midnight, we were roused by the most hideous screams that ever assailed our ears. The cries were not altogether human ; they were inhuman, in- fernal. It seemed as if a legion of demons had broken loose from their confinement, with a commission to drive sleep from the pillows of Calcutta. As often as we at- tempted to quiet ourselves to rest, the same shrieks would startle us from our incipient dreams, until we gave up in despair, if not in terror. We could not form a conception of the nature of the beings fi'om which they proceeded. In the morning we learned that it was the nightly sere- nade of jackals, which have the run of the streets after midnight, and which, if not protected by law, are perfect- ly safe from all harm, on account of the valuable service they render as public scavengers. They are quite harm- less themselves, excepting their cries, which rob all new comers of sleep. They are never seen by day, skulking away into sewers and dark recesses, where they lie until 20S AROUND THE WORLD. tliey are summoned to make their round of the city. Nor was it in Calcutta alone that we heard them, but in every city in India that we visited during the winter, with the single exception of Bombay. Their cries, especially when a whole pack join together, approximate so near to the hu- man, that I have heard it interpreted thus: A large pack of jackals start upon their nightly round in search of their appropriate food. Suddenly one in advance of the I'est breaks out into a shrill, hideous scream, " Here's a dead Hindoo." The whole pack immediately scream, " Where ? where ? where ?" A score of the ghouls answer with a short, shrill bark, " Here ! here ! here !" and then the whole crowd of jackals send up, in the otherwise still night, a howl over their discovery that may be heard for miles. This was the serenade that awakened us, and scarcely a night that we were in the country did they fail to send a thrill of horror through our souls. The jackals are the night-scavengers of Calcutta. Those of the day are the crows, the kites, and the adjutants. The crows, as in all parts of India that I have visited, swarm throughout the city by myriads, keeping up an in- cessant " caw, caw, caw." They spend the night quietly on the trees, not much less than a thousand sometimes se- lectinof a sino-le tree, and takino- an hour of fighting and shouting in concert before they become fairly settled for the night. Even after they have become quiet, and you imagine that at last their noise is over for the dav, some dispute arises among them, and the whole thousand start up from the tree in violent altercation, and again go through the same course of figliting before they are settled again. Tsor are they satisfied with the refuse of the city for a living ; they come boldly into the open windows and lay their beaks upon any food that is within reach. The first morninsf that we were in Calcutta our breakfast had been set in the anteroom, but before we could lay claim to it the crows had entered, and, supj)osing it was intended for them, had made way with a good share of it. Once CALCUTTA. 209 they took it before our very eyes, without sa much as say- ing " By your leave." The kites, a species of large hawk, are not so numerous, but they are numbered by thousands, or tens of thousands, and are continually sailing over the city or along the streets, excepting when they see some tempting provisions, in w^hicli case they do not hesitate to swoop down and bear it off, even from the midst of a crowd of pedestrians or carriages. They have the free- dom of the city in common with the crows. The adju- tant, an immense stork, standing, in his stockings, as high as a man, belongs to the same army, and enjoys the same freedom, but he is a gentleman, carrying himself with as much dignity in his daily walks as if he were a major general instead of a mere adjutant, and never intruding where he does not belong. Much of the time he stands on one leg, with his neck drawn do\vn into his body and his immense visor closed, in a meditative mood, and so per- fectly motionless that you might easily mistake him for a bronze statue. The snakes form a part of his rations. The residents of Calcutta seem as unconscious of the existence of the crows, the kites, and the adjutants, and even of the jackals, as if such specimens in natural history were never heard of within a thousand miles of the city. Calcutta may be called the European capital of Asia. It has been the seat of British empire for more than a cen- tury, and the centre of British influence for the w^liole East. Its commercial supremacy is probably well-nigh ended since steam and the opening of the Suez Canal have changed the route of commerce between Europe and the East. Bom- bay is now the port of India, as Calcutta is thrown more than ever off the great liighway to China. But no other city will ever have such a combination of Oriental and Oc- cidental grandeur as the " City of Palaces," the name it bears in the East. The name is not unmerited, although we do not find either the architectural beauty of the West, or the lavish expenditure of the old dynasties of the East. It was founded by the East India Companv near the close 210 AROUND THE WORLD. of the seventeenth century, on the site of a small village called Kali-kutta (the village of the Goddess Kali), from which the present name of the city is derived. A temple of the goddess, south of the city, is still frequented by mul- titudes of devotees at the period of the annual worship. The official name of the city, from which public documents, I believe, are dated even to the present day, although exe- cuted at the Government House a mile distant, is Fort Wil- liam. The fort was erected in the reign of William III. of England, and named from this sovereign. It is an ex- tensive fortress, standing in the midst of the Maidan, a vast open plain extending more than two miles uj) and down the Hoogly, south of the city. The northern portion of the Maidan, known as the Esplanade, is occupied by the gov- ernment buildings, w^hich front upon a well-kept park known as the Eden Gardens. The viceroy's palace occu- pies the most conspicuous site, and, although possessing no great architectural beauty, is an imposing pile. The portion of the Maidan bordering on the river for a mile below the Government House is the great fashionable drive of Calcutta, answering to the Prater of Vienna, or Rotton Row in Hyde Park. Every evening, just before sunset, when the heat of the day has passed, all Calcutta turns out for an hour's drive up and down the strand. The sight is one of the gayest to be seen in the suburbs of any city, and one of the most peculiar. Nowhere in the East is there any thing to equal it, and nowhere in the West any thing like it. Europeans with gay equipages, from the vice- roy's scarlet and gold, with his Sepoy outriders, down to the unpretending gharry, move on in a steady line, three or four abreast, until nio-ht comes on. Notwithstandino; the occu- pants of the carriages are chiefly Europeans, the scene is decidedly Oriental. Coachmen and footmen, some of them splendid specimens of the various tribes of India, are all in Eastern costume, the colors and style of which are as varied as the races of Hindostan. The wealthy Baboos have their place in the grand procession, and when we CALCUTTA. 211 were in Calcutta there was a grand gathering of Rajahs and native princes from all parts of India, who had come down to meet the Duke of Edinburg and take part in the durbar at Government House. One who would study Ori- ental life should not fail to be on the strand at Calcutta an hour before sunset. The residences of the merchants, and those connected with the civil and military service, are east of the Maidan, the whole of this part of Calcutta being known as Chow- ringee. The dwellings, many of which may in truth be called palaces, though not architecturally beautiful, are iso- lated, standing in the midst of squares, and surrounded by a profusion of the ornamental trees and shrubs of India. The suburbs of the city toward the south, in the direction of the palace and grounds of the ex-King of Oude, stretch out into the region of the palms, acacias, mango, bamboo, and peepul trees, which grow with great luxuriance of foli- age. In tropical countries leaves often take the place of branches. The stately palm, the glory of the tropics, is as destitute of limbs as the mast of a ship, but a single leaf is fifteen or twenty feet in length, and each tree is crowned with a drooping mass. Such a tree has no need of branch- es. In the palm-clad suburbs of Calcutta stands the coun- try house of Warren Hastings, where that brilliant though erring statesman, the governor general of India, maintained a splendid hospitality. The place is now among the his- toric scenes of the East ; but one can not recall the events connected with his rule and conquests, even in the midst of the prosperity of India, without a long-drawn sigh. There are few public buildings of much note. The Gov- ernment House, built by the Marquis of Wellesley, and the new government offices on the Esplanade, are the most im- posing. The post-office is a large and fine building, erect- ed in part on the site of one more memorable in history than any other within the limits of the city or in this part of India. It is the " Black Hole of Calcutta." In the year 1756 Fort William was taken by Surajah Dowlah, Nabob 212 ABOUND THE WORLD. of Bengal, a feeble garrison being left to defend it after the governor and others had escaped to the ships. The pris- oners, 146 in number, were thrust into a room only eighteen feet square, with two small, obstructed windows, where, in the intense heat of a Calcutta night, on the 18th of June, they were shut up without water or any means of relief. With heat, and thirst, and suffocation, many of them became maddened, and the horrors of that night never can be de- picted. Bribes, and prayers, and the raging of despair were all ineffectual to move the hearts of the guard. In vain the prisoners, in the agonies of thirst and of suffocation, entreated to have the nabob informed of their condition ; they were told that he was asleep, and could not be dis- turbed. In the morning twenty-three ghastly fonns had just life enough left to crawl from the room when it was opened ; the rest, 123, were piled upon the floor, putrid corpses. ]^o scene connected with Calcutta is more indeli- l)ly graven on the memory of the world than this ; but all traces of it are obliterated f I'om the spot by the erection of new and stately buildings. The new Cathedral, the seat of the bishopric which has been held by such apostolic names as those of Heber and Wilson, is a line building, it may be called elegant, finished as it is with such admirable taste and in such beauty. It is already becoming filled with monumental marbles, among which the statue of Bishop Heber is the most striking. There are several fine churches, Eno-lish and Scotch. The college buildings of the Free Church, and the Scotch lurk, are worthy of note for their extent, if not for their beauty. The Bishop's College, on the right bank of the Hoogly. two miles below the city, makes more pretension to taste and elegance. The nati\e and the European quarters of the town are distinct, the former having very narrow streets and more or less of squalor in its whole extent, but the portion occupied by foreigners (Europeans have no native-born descendants of pure blood in India) is laid out upon a broad scale, and built up with appropriate magnificence. CALCUTTA. 213 The city is supplied with water from immense tanks, res- ervoii's of one or two hundred feet square sunk into the ground, but left entirely open. The natives walk down into them, bathe their bodies and wash their clothes, and then fill their jars or goatskins with the water for drinking and other domestic use. This is a specimen of native cleanli- ness.* The streets are watered by a truly Oriental method. Each waterman lias, instead of a cart, a goatskin taken ofi entire, and forming an immense bottle, left open at the neck. This is suspended by a strap over the shoulders of the coolie, who seizes the neck with one hand, and, as he walks along, deftly throws the water hither and thither. Large numbers of these coolies are kept constantly em- ployed spirting the streets, which are as well watered by this method as by our own. Of the institutions of Calcutta, one of the first that claim- * The following, from an India paper, is a specimen of Hindoo metaphys- ics, and also of the stress that is laid upon ceremonial nncleanness above act- ual filth. " At the last meeting of the Sanatana-Dharma Rakshami Sabha, the presi- dent. Rajah Kali Krishna Deo Bahadoor, read an opinion on the water sup- plied to the Calcutta residents from the municipal water-works. He says that the water, being destitute of the sanctity of the Ganges, can not be used for religious purposes, but can be employed for drinking or domestic use with- out prejudice to caste. Rice, milk, turmeric, and other things become pure by boiling, and can be used by virtue of the authority that says that edible arti- cles become purified by purchase. The water-rate may be considered in the light of value paid, and the water become drinkable. Besides, it is written in the Satatapa vachana that articles prepared in a cow- shed by a shopman or by a machine, though not purified, are not considered unclean : also that fluid, as in a running stream, is considered pure. The Shruti says that health is most important, and that religion comes next ; and as water is called j(ca- «a, or life-giver, and as good, pure water preserves health, the fluid can be used without detriment to caste. The great bulk of water is also a test of purity in the same way, as a number of persons in a boat does not affect pu- rity. The president farther states that he visited the water-works in compa- ny with several respectable Hindoos, and examined the machinery, and found that India-rubber, and not leather, as was supposed, is used in certain parts of the machine ; cocoanut oil is used to lubricate the works, and that no forbid- den substance is used in connection with the pumps. He concludes by sub- mitting to the other members of the Sabha his opinion tliat the water is wholesome, and that it would be unwise to remain in doubt and sustain loss by not using the same."' 214 AROUND THE WORLD. ed a visit was Dr. Duff's College, as the great Free Cliurcli of Scotland Institution is called. Although it is many years since Dr. Duff was compelled to leave India by the failure of his health, his indomitable energy and ardent spirit having worn out his comparatively feeble frame in that trying climate, his name still adheres to the college which he founded and brought to a high state of prosperi- ty. He came to India in 1830, and began his educational work with a class of five scholars, which, in a few days, in- creased to more than a hundred. It soon became neces- sary to have permanent accommodations for those who were comino- in such numbers to receive instruction in Western science, wliich is quite as different from Oriental science as the fact that the earth revolves around the sun is in advance of the idea that the sun revolves around the earth, or that the earth stands on a tortoise. A site for a college was selected on Cornwallis Square, one of the pleasantest quarters of the city, extensive buildings were erected, a corps of teachers was supplied by the Church at home, and as many as eight hundred scholars were going through a course of instruction. When the institution had reached this advanced stage, the disruption took place in the Church of Scotland, and the Free Church was organized. The result was that the missionaries, to a man, decided to go with the Free Church. They followed the example of the Free Church ministers at home, who gave up churches and manses, and began their work anew. They abandoned the mission property, and every thing connected with the college, to lay another foundation. It was but a few years before the new col- lege numbered nearly fourteen hundred pupils, while the old, which had, in the mean time, been supplied with fresh men from the Kirk of Scotland, had nearly as many. The number has fallen off considerably within the last few years, owing perhaps to the founding of other schools by the government and by private munificence. These insti- tutions are open to students of all religions, and the mass CALCUTTA. 215 uf them are Hindoos or Mohammedans. Only in rare in- stances have they renounced the faith of their fathers, while fewer still have become real Christians. It is not the desire to become acquainted with Christian truth, much less to become Christians, that induces so many youth to crowd these foreign seminaries of learning. They are anxious to become qualified to fill the various lucrative posts which, in connection with the civil service, and the commerce and business of the country, are open to the na- tives. This is the great stimulus to study, and a successful course and an honorable graduation in the missionary, as well as in the government colleges, is usually a passport to a good situation. But this army of educated men may yet be brought into the Church of Christ, in that o-reat relio-- ions revolution that is to pass over India, the promise of which we have in the Word of God, and the signs of which are to be seen all over the land. The Bishop's College, occupying a fine Gothic building, beautifully situated on the botanic garden or park, on the banks of the Hoogly, two or three miles below the city, has a more limited class of students. It was founded by Bish- op Middleton in 1820 for the purpose of training up, un- der the discipline of the Church of England, a corps of preachers and teachers, to be employed by that Church in disseminating the truths of the Gospel in India. The number of students is small, but the arrangements for their education in the languages of the East, and in general liter- ature and science, are very extensive. Besides the institutions I have named, there are several others of a high order. Among these are Doveton College, founded, I believe, by a man whose name it bears ; the Martiniere, founded by General Martin, who amassed a large fortune in the East, and who established a college at Lucknow; the Sanscrit College; the Hundu College; the Mohammedan, etc. There is also a medical college, \yith a large corps of able professors, at the head of which is Dr. Joseph Fayrer, a distinguished surgeon of the British 216 AROU^^D TRE^YOliLD. army, who was at Lucknow dui-iiig the memorable siege, and in whose arms the commanding oi^cer, Sir Henry Law- rence, breathed his last. A large hospital, which I visited in company with Mr. Duff, an eminent merchant of Bom- bay, and son of the Rev, Dr. Duff, is under the charge of this facnlty. Dr. Fayrer has been engaged, by a series of experiments npon animals, in endeavoring to discover an antidote to tlie venom of the snakes that abound in India, by which thousands of lives are lost annually, but thus far without success. Tlie Asiatic Society, located at Calcutta, was originated and established by that eminent scholar and Christian, Sir William Jones, who went out to India in 1783. Having been appointed to the bench of the Supreme Court of Ben- gal, he devoted himself with intense ardor to the study of the languages of the East as the means of fitting himself for usefulness in India. He is said to have acquired in the course of his life twentv-eia-ht different lano-uao-es, and to have become familiar with the literature of each. It was he who ffave the noble testimonv to tlie Bible, all the more weighty because coming from one whose professional pur- suits were not theological, and who was also so well quali- fied by his eminent learning to bear such testimony : " 1 have carefully and regularly perused the Scriptures, and am of opinion that this volume, independent of its divine origin, contains more sublimity, purer morality, more im- portant iiistory, and finer strains of eloquence than can be collected from all other books, in whatever language they may be written." The Asiatic Society, which he founded, and of which Warren Hastings was the first president, was formed for the purpose of preser\ang the history and the memorials of India and the East generally. It has now an immense collection of volumes, and manuscripts, and speci- mens in natural history, and relics of all sorts. The large building in which they have been kept was long since over- flowing, so that it was found necessary to store the addi- tions elsewhere. An extensive range of buildings on the CALCUTTA. 217 Chowringee Road was approaching completion when I left Calcutta, and when it is opened it "will be one of the most interesting museums in tlie world. I made the acquaint- ance of the scholarly superintendent, who expressed an earnest desire to establish some system of exchanges with similar institutions in this Western world. Excepting in what is known as the Zenana Mission, the Americans are not represented among the institutions of Calcutta ; but that work is one of great importance, and in India is absolutely essential as the complement of Christian missions. It is not altogether new, but in its specific form was undertaken only ten years since by the " Woman's ^Union Missionary Society of America for Heathen Lands," whose head-quarters in India are at Calcutta, under the superintendence of Miss Hook, a lady of rare culture and refinement, and of great energy of character. Their field of operation is the zenanas, the homes of the women of India. Of course I was not able personally to observe the prosecution of this work, but I became familiar with its character and prospects, and was happy to learn that it is full of promise. The ladies of the mission, who go out daily among the zenanas, are cordially received, and many of the wealthy natives express an earnest desire that theii" \vives may be instructed. There is no spot in India more sacred in the eyes of the Christian world than Serampore, beautifully situated on a bend of the Iloogly, about fifteen miles from the city of Calcutta. Every one who is at all familiar with the his- tory of missions in the East knows how intimately this place is associated with the names of the earliest and some of the best men that have gone out to preach the Gospel in Asiatic countries. In the beginning of the present century it was the cave in which the prophets were hid when they were forbidden to preach in British India. Being a Danish pos- session, it was not under the control of the East India Com- pany, and here Carey and Ward set themselves down to study the languages of the East. Here they planted their '218 AROUND THE WOULD. printing-presses, and from this spot tliey sent forth millions of pages of Clu'istian truth into all parts of Asia and the Islands of the Sea. Here, too, the apostle Jiidson, several years later, found a temporary refuge when he was forbid- den to land at Calcutta, as if he and his companions from America had conspired against the peace of the country. The history of Carey and his labors is known the world over. He was born in a small interior town in England. His parents, being poor, apprenticed him at the age of four- teen to a shoemaker, whose trade he seems never to have mastered ; for, in after years, when dining at the governor general's in India, as he overheard some supercilious En- glishmen speak of him as a shoemaker, he turned and cor- rected him, saying he was only a cobbler. (On his death- bed he was ministered to by the wife of the Governor Gen- eral of India, and the Bishop of Calcutta came to ask his dying blessing.) While learning his trade in England, he indulged his thirst for knowledge by a course of reading, and at length turned his attention to languages, and en- larged his field of study, until he became a well-read Bib- lical scholar, and at length was licensed to preach the Gos- pel in the Baptist connection. In reading the accounts of Cook's voyages around the w^orld he was deeply moved in heart toward the heathen, and stirred up his brethren with his own zeal until they resolved on a mission to the pagan world, and Carey himself was sent. On arriving in India he was obliged to conceal himself from the knowledge of the East India Company, whose policy was altogether op- posed to efforts for the conversion of the natives. For many years he labored in great seclusion, supporting him- self by working on an indigo plantation. In the year 1800 he was joined by Marshman and Ward, from England, when they established themselves under Danish protection at Se- rampore. They seemed almost to be endued with the gift of tongues, so successfully did they devote themselves to the acquisition of languages and to the translation of the Word of God into the numerous tongues of the East. They CALCUTTA. 219 established presses on which the Word of God was printed in languages spoken by at least half the pagan world. They laid the foundation for a college of a high order, and erect- ed for it a building which even now is regarded as one of the finest structures of its kind in India. They procured a choice and extensive library, which is still a rich repository of learning and a monument to their own enlarged ideas and acquisitions. A gi-eat part of the expense of these enterprises they bore themselves. It is wonderful that a few poor mission- aries could do such a work ; but they were earnest men of genius, and they lived not unto themselves. Dr. Carey re- ceived for thirty years more than a thousand rupees a month (equal to $6000 a year) for his services as professor m the College of Fort Wilham, at Calcutta, and translator to the East India Company ; Mr. Ward received as much more from the printing-office, and Mr. and Mrs. Marshman about the same from teachuig ; and yet, while they were receiving these princely sums, they ate at a common table, and drew from the common fund only twelve rupees each, or four dollars a mouth. The remainder was devoted, by a mutual contract, to the pui'poses of the mission, and was employed in spreading the Gospel. The cost of the Chi- nese version alone, which they prepared and printed, was :20,000 pounds sterling, or $100,000. The words of the agreement which they signed when they entered on their work were, " Let us give ourselves up unreservedly to this glorious cause. Let us never think that our time, our gifts, our strength, our families, or even the clothes we wear, are our own. Let us sanctify them all to God and his cause." Now that life's labor is over, these devoted men sleep together on the spot consecrated by their many yeai-s of toil in the service of the Master. Here, too, Henry Martyn, of blessed memory, lived for a time and studied, fitting himself for his short but important life-service in India and Persia. Xor is this spot without special interest for Americans. When the first band of 220 ABOUND THE WORLD. missionaries from our ovn\ country to tlie East reached India, this M'as the only spot in all the land in which they could find a resting-place even for a day. All these associations were so many powerful attractions, and I gladly accepted an invitation from Dr. George Smith, the accomplished and learned editor of the Friend of In- dm, to visit him at his home at Serampore. I found him awaitino; me at the station, and we drove first to the ceme- tery, known as the Westminster Abbey of India, where Carey, and Marshman, and Ward were buried. Carey wrote his own epitaph, which is inscribed on a plain ceno- taph : WILLIAM CAREY : BORN I7TH OF AUGUST, I761, DIED 9TH OF JUNE, 1834. "^ wretched, poor, and helpless ivorm, On Thy kind arms I fall." I visited the college where those prophets taught ; I stood in the pulpit where Carey preached, and saw the room in which Marshman died. Dr. Smith pointed out to me the site of the pagoda in which Henry Martyn devoted himself with such assiduity and success to the study of the languages in which he afterward preached the Gospel. The college building is still in excellent repair, and the li- brary was most tempting in its choice collection of books, among which I would fain have lingered. But, as else- where, I suffered from the bane of travelers, w^ant of time, and I could not linger in any of the many interesting- scenes in which I found myself. We drove out to the grounds of a wealthy Baboo to wit- ness a Hindoo festival that had been in progress two or three days, and which was then at its height. It was in honor of some one of the multitude of gods which the Hin- doos reverence, but m the form of an entertainment for the people, w^ho had come together in great numbers in holiday attire. In various places by the roadside and in booths, or under canopies, were groups of statuary formed GOVEBNMENT OF INDIA ; EUROPEANS, ETC. 221 from the plastic mud of the Ganges, Avhich is superior to the finest statuary clay. Some of the groups were in cari- cature, but others were perfectly life-like, evincing real ge- nius in the extemporaneous artists. In a large inclosure, separated from the crowd of natives, a sort of musical drama was in progress, the music and the words appearing improvised, but falling on the ear with pleasing effect. Every thing was conducted with strict decorum, and the whole scene, as I witnessed it for a few moments while the shades of evening were falling — its perfect novelty, its strictly and strangely Oriental features, and its surround- ings of bamboos, and palm-trees, and other tropical vegeta- tion — formed a picture which can not easily be forgotten. Crossing the Hoogly to Barrackpore, and passing through tlie grove of an immense banyan-tree, I" reached the station of the East-side Eailway, and was shortly in Calcutta again. GOVERNMENT OF INDI^ ; EUROPEANS, ETC. The Hindoos claim for their countr}- and nation an an- tiquity which ought to satisfy the most enthusiastic advo- cates of the long geologic periods. They make it out that things have been going on somewhat after the present or- der for indefinite ages — four or five thousand millions of years ; that in the early days of their race people used to live a hundred thousand years ; that the}' were the matter of thirty-five or forty feet in height, etc. ; but the records of those ancient times are not very authentic. Nothing satis- factory is known either of the country or the people before Alexander the Great crossed the mountain barrier on the north and extended his arms onward toward the peninsula. Tliis was a little more than three hundred years before the Christian era. From that time to the present we have rec- 222 AROUXB THE WORLD. ords more or less aiitlientic, first of the Hindoo rule of about thirteen centuries, and then of the Mohammedan, in- ehiding the reign of the Mogul emperors, exceeding in splendor all that the world has seen out of Hindostan, and reaching down to the complete occupation of the country by British power. It was the wealth of the Mogul dynasty which fu'st led European cupidity to turn its eyes toward the East. The discovery of the passage to India around the Cape of Good Hope, six years after the discovery of America by Colum- bus, opened up the whole of India to the commerce of En- rope. In the year 1600 a commercial company was char- tered in England under the name of the East India Com- pany, which continued to increase in power, and to extend the objects and limits of its sway, until it had taken posses- sion of all India, and at length was compelled to turn it over completely to the crown of Britain. The East India Company, which had been a mine of wealth and an engine of almost unlimited power to its corporators, was abolished by act of Parliament in 1858, the year after the great mu- tiny, having been gradually shorn of its privileges and pow- er by the same authority in successive renewals of its charter. Its immense wealth and power may be inferred fi'om the fact that its gross revenue for the year 1850 was £135,000,000, or neariy $675,000,000. Its expenditures were at a corresponding rate. The Empire of India, which inchides a number of prov- inces or presidencies such as Bengal, Bombay, Madi'as, etc.. and extends over a territory of a million and a half square miles, with a population of two hundred millions of people, is now administered by a viceroy, or governor general, who has under him, in the several provinces, governors, lieuten- ant governors, and commissioners, some of the native prin- ces retaining a semi-independent position in their own ter- ritories. All the great native rulers were dethroned and their territory appropriated in the conquests made by Brit- ish arms. GOVERNMENT OF INDIA; EUROPEANS, ETC. 223 For two centuries and a half India was ruled for the ben- efit of the East India Company. This was a commercial enterprise, undertaken for the sole purpose of making gain ; it did not pretend to establish itself for the purpose of do- ing good to the inhabitants of India ; trade, and gold, and diamonds were the objects sought, while the welfare of two hundred millions of people was among the last things con- sidered. Even the claims of religion, humanity, and justice were too often treated as if they had no binding force in that longitude. Not the splendors of successive conquests of territory from native kings and princes, nor the brilliant administration of such men as Warren IIastino;s, can blind the world to the wrongs and crimes which marked the prog- ress of British empire in the East. It is in many respects a dark record, unworthy of a Christian or a noble people. But that is all changed since the East India Company was abolished, or, if not all, the purpose and the general admin- istration of the government is changed. India is now ruled, not for the sake of extorting money from an unwilling, sub- jugated race, but for the good of the people of India. It is with great pleasure that I bear testimony to the high character of the men who have the administration of affairs in that empire, as well as to the promising aspect of the country in its material, educational, social, and religious in- terests, as being full of promise. I doubt if any country has more conscientious and intelligent public officers con- trolling its destinies. There are reforms yet to be consum- mated. The extreme caution of the rulers prevents them from taking the bold stand assumed by the home govern- ment in favor of Christianity and against some of the enor- mities of idolatry and heathenism ; many evils growing out of the peculiarities of the people, the variety of races, the inveterate nature of hoary prejudices, yet remain to be re- moved or remedied; but, judging from the promise of the present, India bids fair to become again a mighty empire in the East, and to outshine in real glory the splendor of the old Moguls. 224 AROUND THE WORLD. The viceroyaltj of India is the highest office under the British crown, and, considering the extent of its sway, and the population over wliieh it is exercised, is the most im- portant delegated office in the world. The power is not as absolute as was that of the governor general in the palmy days of the East India Company. Being directly respon- sible to the home government, the viceroy is under statu- tory checks ; general legislative power also is in the hands of councils, provincial and general, so that a uniform and complete system of government, and one which might be called constitutional, extends over the whole of India. The outward dignity of government is maintained by a liberal provision for its support. The viceroy has a salary of £25,000 (five times that of the President of the United States), with as much or more for incidental expenses ; an extensive palace and complete establishment at Calcutta, with provision for a country residence and a summer cap- ital on the Himalaya Mountains, to which the governor general and the supreme council remove during the hot season. The salaries of officials in India are generally large, and the immense army of office-holders employed in all the de- partments of government, the revenues for their payment being drawn from the country itself, makes this possession one of incalculable value and importance to Great Brit- ain. It is the source from which a large representation of the higher and middle classes obtain their support. The younger sons of the aristocracy who can not be maintain- ed in affluence, and a large force of others who are able to obtain appointments, are sent to India to fill the offices in the various branches of the military or civil service. There is a charm about Oriental life which makes it at- tractive. The pay is liberal. Some officials receive enor- mous salaries, with the promise of pensions after the term of service has expired ; and at the end of seven years, as a rule, officers high and low have a furlough of a year on half pay, with the expenses of a journey homeward paid. GOVERNMENT OF INDIA; EUROPEANS, ETC. 225 This rule, in the form of a custom, extends even to clerks in ])anks and other private corporations. It is not strange, therefore, that India is regarded at home as a sort of El Dorado. I have spoken of the great change which has come over the administration of affairs in India since it became more dirlectly dependent upon the British crown. The change is noticeable every where, but in no respect more than in the extent and thorono-hness of the educational work car- ried on by the govermnent. I was aware that a system of public instruction had been organized, and that institutions of learning had been established at various points, but I was not prepared to find that these institutions were of such a high order ; that so many of the youth of India, Hindoo and Mohammedan, ^4ere enjoying and profiting by these advantages, or that such liberal provision was made by the go\ernment for their support and for general edu- cation. "Within the last ten years the progress of the work has been rapid. The appropriations for this object by the government for the year previous to my arrival in the country amounted to nearly nine millions of rupees, or more than $4,000,000. This was distributed over the whole of the empire, so that every school conforming to the requisitions of government received its share. A University is established in each of the three presi- dencies of Bengal, Bombay, and Madras. These are ex- amining bodies only, but colleges and schools of various grades are established in all the different provinces. In Calcutta alone there are eleven colleges of a high order, including the institutions of the Kirk and Free Church of Scotland, the students of which, on completing their course of stud}', appear before the University on examination for their degrees. In Lower Bengal there are five colleges, and in the northwest provinces and the Punjaub, seven. There are, besides, similar institutions in Bombay and Mad- ras. These colleges are all thoroughly equipped with pro- fessorships filled by scholars who have had a university P t-) 226 ABOUND THE WORLD. education at home, some of tliem men eminent for their attainments, and have all the appliances for a complete ed- ucation in the arts, sciences, and languages. In the year above referred to there were, in the colleges and schools taught, aided, or inspected by the state, 6(32,537 scholars. These were, with very few exceptions, natives. Too much attention and too large a proportion of the appropriations have been devoted to the higher institu- tions, without suitable provision for the education of the masses. One reason for this is, that it has been the policy of the government to educate native youth for its own ser- vice in the various departments of civil life, and for this purpose mainly the colleges were originally founded ; but, now that so large a number have enjoyed these advan- tages, it would accord with the general policy of the gov- ernment to elevate the people by diffusing the blessings of a sound education. Such a course, I believe, is to be pur- sued. A general system of schools for the country, ap- proaching our own public -school system, has been under / consideration, and will probably soon be adopted. The standard objection against the government schools and colleges of India is that they are not Christian in their character ; that the course of instruction has tended rath- er to favor than to oppose idolatry. There is too much ground for the objection; but, after becoming more famil- iar with the character of the people, and with the peculiar circumstances of the govermnent, I could better appreciate the difficulties of establishinrr a svstem which should be avowedly hostile to the religious convictions of the people. It is not considered as the province of our own govern- ment to teach religion in its public schools, and there are difficulties in India in the way of teaching Christianity throuo;li o-overnmental institutions of which we know noth- ing. Since being in India I look with more hope than l)e- fore to the results of the work of education which is car- ried on by the government. It must aid in the overthrow of idolatry, and of other forms of false religion which GOYERNMEXT OP IXDIA ; EUROPEANS, ETC. 227 liave so long prevailed in the land. Many, it is true, be- come infidels on becoming convinced of the absurdity of the science w'hich has formed a part of their own religions svstems, but this mav be onlv a transition state, not nnnat- nral as the effect of correct scientific instruction without the pervading and prevailing influence of Christian con- viction. This conviction must come from a higher source than mere human instruction. The general attitude of the government toward the sys- tems of idolatry has nndergone an entire change. The time was, and not many years ago, when the East India Company derived a large revenue from the temples and places of pilgrimage for devotees ; when English soldiers were compelled to bow down and do reverence before the false gods for the sake of securino; the favor or avoidino- the hostility of the natives. A long indictment was re- corded against the former rulers of the land, and they were convicted not only of wickedness, but of folly, when, in the great mutiny of 1857, the very men whose favor they had courted became their deadliest enemies; and when, from the beginning to the end of the rebellion, not a single Chris- tian convert in the land was known to lift his hand or give any information against the English. The authorities have learned wisdom and righteousness by this terrible experi- ence.* * Meadows Taylor, in his History of India, speaking of tlie administration of Lord Auckland, says : "All connection between the English government of India and Hindoo temples and their idolatrous ceremonies was abolished under imperative or- ders from the Court of Directors and the Board of Control. All revenues derivable from these sources were abandoned, and the temples and their en- dowments placed under the management of their own priests. It will hardly now be credited how much honor had used to be accorded to idols and their worship before this most necessary exactment of .\pril 20, 1S4(). Up to this time troops had been paraded at festivals, salutes tired, and otferings by the Company presented to idol deities, and the European functionary of the dis- trict was obliged, often most unwillingly, to take a part in heathen ceremo- nies originally conceded to conciliate the people, but which had grown by usage into a portion of the ceremonies themselves. It is still stranger to record that it was not till the lapse of years that a final disseverance from and abandonment of pilgrim taxes was effected." 228 AROUND THE WORLD. The European population of India, of whom the natives of the British Isles form by far the largest part, is about 160,000. They are chiefly engaged in the public service, military and civil, although in the principal cities there is a large mercantile population. There are very few Euro- peans in India who were born there, and scarcely one whose parents were natives of the country. From a remote period the children of English or Scotch parents have been sent home, not merely to be educated away from the evil associations of the land, but to be raised in a more health- ful climate. Children of foreign parents are more exposed to the injurious influences of the .climate than those who come to India in adult years. It was mentioned to me also as a singular fact, that women born in India of European parents seldom become mothers, a proof of the deleterious effect of the climate uj^on the constitution ; consequently one rarely sees children in the families of the foreign resi- dents, or much more rarely than in other countries. They have either not been born, or they have been sent home. The trial which missionaries have been called so often to endure in sendino; their children from the home circle and from parental care is one which is shared by a large part of the foreign residents, who are engaged either in the pub- lic service or in mercantile business. There is another class, the children of European fathers and native mothers, called Eurasians, East-Indians, Half- castes, etc., numbering about 80,000. Being a sort of con- necting link between the two races, they are commonly ac- quainted with the foreign and the native languages ; many of them have had special advantages of education, and many of them occupy positions of usefulness, as clerks or agents of the government. They are easily distinguished by their European features from the natives, and, being almost as dark as the natives, are never confounded with Europe- ans. They are not reputed to possess the same mental or physical vigor, or to have as much enterprise of character as foreigners. GOVERNMENT OF INDIA; EUROPEANS, ETC. 229 During the hot season all business requiring active exer- tion is crowded as much as possible into the early morning, especially if it makes exposure to the sun necessary. The army-drill is over by eight or nine o'clock, traveling is done by night, and during the middle of the day the struggle for existence is most wisely managed by ceasing the struggle altogether, and giving one's self up to perfect quiet. The slightest exercise instantly produces violent perspiration, and the same eifect follows the suspension of the jju/Jm. The jJunA'a is a broad fan suspended overhead, and usually stretching across the room ; in the dining-room reaching the length of the table. It is moved by coolies in an ante- room, who, by means of a cord attached to the _pu7ika, draw it back and forth. Every private house, every place of business, and every assembly-room is supplied with this in- dispensable requisite. The churches have hnmemc jni?ikas suspended over the heads of the congregations, which wave back and forth majestically during the entire service. The first time that 1 was called upon to address a congregation through such a medium, I found it far less suggestive of ideas and suitable emotions than if I had been speaking to the people face to face. But even the heat ol a church would be unendurable without thepimkas. They are quite as essential at nio'ht in the homes durina; the hot season. Xo sleeping can be done without them. JS'or are they such a severe tax upon the coolies as might be supposed. The coolies are paid for the service ; it is their only support ; they luxuriate in the heat as do the natives of Africa, and they have their time for rest. Few natives of any country in the East die of hard work. Europeans in India live much more freely in respect to eating and drinking than is generally supposed to be con- sistent with such a climate, but it may be that the waste of the human system demands a generous supply to repair it. 1 have never been in any land where free indulgence with- in the bounds of temperance Avas more generally the rule. Foreign residents rise early all the year round, and take a 230 AMOUXD THE WOIiLB. cup of tea, with toast, or some light food, immediately on rising. This is called chota Aaznl, or the little breakfast. About nine or ten o'clock comes the real breakfast, usually an elaborate meal of iish, eggs, and some preparation of rice, with meats. At one o'clock tiffin, a still more hearty meal, is taken, and at seven or eight o'clock dinner, which is the meal of the day, and which is much after the pattern of an English or American dinner. This generous style of living seems to agree with the people ; for, instead of the yellow or dark-skinned, shrunken, liver-diseased race that I expect- ed to see, I found the gentlemen robust and rosy -faced, to my great astonishment, and the ladies equally well favored. (I speak of health, not of beauty, for in this respect the la- dies always and every where bear the palm.) They assured us that we found them at their best, in the midst of the cool season, when they were luxuriating in a genial temperature ; but, from the general aspect of the foreign residents, I felt convinced that India had been greatly belied, or that for- eigners had learned how to adapt themselves to its climate better than in years past. The subdivision of labor is carried in India to its vers' utmost limit. Every servant has his own sphere, and it would be about as difficult to move him from it as to turn one of the planets from its orbit. It almost reaches the point that one servant who takes up an article must have another to lay it down for him. This necessitates the em- ployment of a large number to do the work of a household. Fortunately, the rate of wages is very low, or it would re- quire a fortune to live at all. A family, however small, living in any style, must have a I'ansuma, a butler or stew- ard ; Jtitmutgar, a head table-servant, besides a table-serv- ant for every member of the family ; hohagee, or cook ; mee- ^fl^, man-sweeper; metrane, ie\n2i\Q sweeper; tnusaiche, to clean knives and wash dishes ; surdar, head bearer, with eight common bearers if he keeps a palanquin, to pull pun- ka, etc. ; durwan, gate-keeper; <:)?c»^e//, washerman ; bhees- tie, to bring water ; abdar, to cool the water ; chiijprasse, a GOVERNMENT OF INDIA ; EUROPEANS, ETC. 231 confidential messenger; coolies, to cany marketing and other burdens ; chohedai\ watchman ; if he keeps a carriage he must have a gharry-ivalla, or coachman, with a syce, or groom, for each liorse, who runs with the horse ; and so on, ahnost without end. Some of the servants must be Mo- hammedans, for the Hindoos will not touch certain dishes, and the Mohammedans, on the other hand, liave their an- tipathies in household service which must be consulted. Among the chief objections to a residence in India is the extreme heat during the greater part of the year. Frost seldom occurs south of the Nerbudda, and even in the far north the winter season is known as such only by tlie cool nights. This season is very short, and from March to June the heat increases with great intensity. Hot scorching winds prevail, the earth becomes parched, and vegetation withers. Nor is the degree of heat gradu- ated by the latitude, excepting that it is more intense in the extreme north tlian in the central or southern parts. The great plain of Hindostan suffers most. I was inform- ed by a gentleman who has resided near the Himalaya Mountains, on the plain, for thirty years, that he had often seen the thermometer for weeks standing at midday in the shade at 110, 120, and 130, and at night it seldom falls, during the hot season, below 90 or 100, This would be al- most insupportable but for the punkas, which are kept mov- ing nio-ht and dav. The mountains and the high table- lands afford a refuge, like " the shadow of a great rock in a weary land," to those who are able to remove. In June, when the heat is at its greatest, the clouds pile up, and the southeast monsoon bursts upon the land, attended with ter- rific storms of thunder and lightning, and torrents of rain. Every thing becomes saturated or swollen with moisture, as it was parched and warped with heat before. This rainy season is not of long continuance, and under the influence of the succeeding heat the land bursts forth into vegeta- tion, which advances, under occasional rains, with wonder- ful rapidity and beauty. Tlie southeastern coast is not reached by the monsoons until late in the year. 232 ABOUND THE WORLD. Tlie quantity of water that falls in the rainy season va- ries greatly in different localities, according to distance from the coast and the mountains, the sea and the low marshy lands supplying moistm"e which the mountains condense. Sometimes a short distance makes a vast differ- ence in the rainfall. At Bombay the average fall in the year is about To inches ; on the Ghauts, south of Bombay, it is 254 inches ; while a little farther inland, at Poonah, over the mountains, it is only 23 inches. According to the same authority, the fall of rain on the Khasia hills is 600 inches, fifty feet. This immense fall of water is attributed to the passing of the air from the sea over 200 miles of swampy country, by which it becomes surcharged with moisture, that precipitates itself when it strikes the mountains, and falls in torrents as long as the monsoon prevails in that di- rection. Only twenty miles farther inland the amount is 200 inches. I met in India a veteran army officer who had spent twenty years in Assam, the eastern part of India. He gave me an extract fi'om the meteorological record that he had kept in that country for many years which contain- ed some remarkable statistics. In one year, 1862, there fell at Chorra - poongee 725 inches of rain, a little more than sixty feet, probably the heaviest rainfall ever noted at any place on the earth. The sand-storms of India are even more remarkable than the rain. They are violent whirlwinds, occurring occasion- ally in the dry season, gathering up the dust and carrying- it over the country in such volumes as actualh' to make midday as dark as midnight.* * Lady Baker, in her Letters from India, gives the following description of one of these sand-storms : ' ' Scarcely had the servants fastened firmly to the ground the large curtain which formed our tent door, and which was generally festooned back with green wreaths of mango-leaves, when the tent shook and swayed back^vard and forward, and in a few moments every thing was covered more tlian an inch deep with the finest dust, which had filtered through the immerous folds of the canvas. It was impossible to read or work ; the candles only gave a little gleam of light through the thick atmosphere, and all we touched was gritty. For four long hours our imjjrisonment lasted, and it was not until sunset that the servants pronounced it safe to release us. As soon as the GOyERNM£NT OF INDIA; EUROPEANS, ETC. 233 M- A 8AJD MOSQUE. ence of others. Every now and then we come to a land- ing-place devoted to the burning of the Hindoo dead. We pass pile after pile made ready for the cremation. From some the smoke and flames are ascending to perfume the city, making this quarter of the town almost unendr.rable excepting to a Hindoo. Leaving the river, we climbed one of the ghauts by a flight of more than a hundred steps, and re-entered the city, threading our way through the narrow streets. Pres- ently we encountered one of the Brahminy bulls, a race of animals held sacred as the gods, and, knowing the fanati- CALCUTTA TO BENARES. 2G3 liUKNlNd THE DEAD. cism of the Brahmins, who adore them, and the imperioiTS nature of the bulls themselves, we gave him a wide berth. These animals, from time immemorial, have enjoyed the freedom of the city, no one being allowed to molest them in any wise, or even to interfere with their predatory hab- its. If they choose to enter a china-shop, no one must say nay, and if a grocer's stock happens to strike tlieir fancy, the proprietor would not dare to interfere w^ith their claims. 264 AROUND THE WORLD. Tliey are, consequently, always in good condition, living on the fat of the land. A few years since they had multiplied to such an extent, and had become so imperious in their exactions, that the English local authorities determined, if possible, to rid the city of the nuisance, or at least to thin them out. But how to do this without exciting the horror of every Hindoo, and, perhaps, raising a rebellion, was the problem. To kill the Brahminy bulls would be a thousand times worse than to behead so many princes. At length the problem was solved ; it was decided to turn them out to graze in the jungle, where the tigers, who have no Brah- miiiical scruples, made short work with them, and the city was relieved. We had ordered our can-iage to meet us at the bazar, near the residence of the Kajah Sir Deo Naraiii Singh, a distinguished native prince. During the tei-rible mutiny of 1857 he had remained faithful to the British govern- ment, and had rendered important service, for which lie was made a Knight Commander of the Star of India. The queen had made personal acknowledgment of his services by sending an elaborate piece of silver plate bearing an ap- propriate inscription. The gentleman who accompanied us, a resident of Benares, being on terms of familiar ac- quaintance with the rajah, proposed a call, and, nothing loth, we complied. Passing through an outer court-yard, in which several elephants were in waiting, we entered a large flower-gar- den, rather stiffly arranged, but admirably kept, and, as- cending a flight of steps, were met by the rajah's eldest son, who has since succeeded to the title and honors of the father. Giving us a cordial welcome, and inviting us to the reception-room, he ordered refreshments and enter- tained us with conversation in English, expressing great re- gret that his father was absent on his estates in the coun- try. He gave an order to one of the servants, who pres- ently returned with two ghttering silver garlands called malas, and the young rajah, throwing them over our necks. CALCUTTA TO BENARES. 265 said, " This is the way we express hospitality in our coun- try." We retained them and wore them away. Another servant brought perfumery for our handkercliiefs, and, as we were leaving, we were presented with bouquets of flow- ers from the garden. The next morning, as we were at breakfast, word was brought that the rajah's servants were entering the com- pound with baskets on their heads, and they appeared with presents from the young pi'ince. There were all sorts of vegetables, a box of Cabool grapes, raisins, nuts, a large cir- cular cake of rock cand}", etc., etc. About two o'clock he called upon us in a carriage, with his attendants. Being a high-caste Hindoo, we were unable to show him the usual rites of hospitality, but we entertained him according to the best of our ability, and gave him a hearty invitation to visit our country, where we might reciprocate his atten- tions. As he was leaving, he informed us that one of his ele- phants should be at our service if we would like to make an excm-sion into the country. Soon the elephant, with mahout and another attendant, appeared. He was a noble specimen of his species, and, somewhat peculiar, mottled or spotted on his breast. Obedient to command, he came down upon his belly, and even then we required a ladder to mount to the howdah, the tower upon his back. This was our first experience in elephant riding, and, although the excursion was one of great pleasure, the motion was just about as agreeable as that of a boat in a short chop- ping sea, or, to draw a comparison from the land, it was very much like making aji excursion upon the back of a small mountain. I find that in the East the elephant, while he has full credit for his sagacity, does not bear the high reputation for fidelitv which is current in the West. Even the best of the race, and those which have been long domesticated, are liable to freaks which have the appearance of insanity, m which thev sometimes attack their most tried friends. 2(56 AROUND THE WOULD. The year before, au old schoolmate of my own, who has beeu many years in Siam as a missionary physician, and whom I expected to visit on my way, Dr. S. K. House, hav- ing occasion to go out several days' journey from Bankok to perform a sui-gical operation, took the usual mode of con- veyance for a long journey, with suitable attendants. One morning, having spent the night in his tent, as he was pre- paring to start, he passed by his elephant, which, for some unaccountable reason, struck him down with his trunk and tore him fearfully with his tusks. He was obliged to per- form for himself the office of a surgeon, sewing up his own wounds, and it was several days before he could be moved from the scene of his injury. This treachery on the part of elephants may be owing to the fact that they are usually taken wild and subdued by severe disciphne, and probably are not thoroughly tamed. They may lay up the remem- brance of their subjugation and injuries, and watch for an opportunity to avenge themselves. But to return to the rajah. I was pained, on reaching home, to receive the intelligence of the death of the noble Hindoo, the father, through the following tribute to his worth which appeared in the Friend of India : "The death of Rajah Sir Deo Narain Singh, K. C. S. I., which occurred at Benares suddenly on Sunday evening, Au- gust 28th, is a great loss, not only to the city, hut to India generally. During many years he occupied a foremost place among the natives in all matters connected with the prosper- ity of the country. He was a man of very liberal views. His mind was noble and benevolent, and he had no sympa- thy whatever with those mere party questions which injure one class of the people by benefiting another. Of good nat- ural intelligence, frank and courteous, enthusiastic and enter- prishig, his opinions on all matters that came before him were those of a thoughtful, fearless, and honest man. Sin- cerity — valuable every Avhere, and especially so in India- was his distinguishing characteristic. He has been cut olFin the prime of life and in the maturity of his powers. On sev- eral occasions of difficulty and danger he rendered invalu- able assistance to the government, and, indeed, he was ever a CALCUTTA TO BENARES. 267 Stanch and loyal friend. In the year 1857 he was the chief native adviser of the English othcials in Benares, and it is not too much to affirm that the safety of the city and neigh- borhood daring those perilous times was, to a large extent, secured by his devotion and counsel. For the imjjortant services he then rendered, the government conferred upon him the title of rajah. He was one of the first native mem- bers of the Legislative Council of India. The part which he took in tlie debates of the council, during his term of office, proved him to be a man of independent thought, of clear judgment, and of earnest sound convictions. No man in Benares was for a moment to be compared with him in zeal for public welfare. His house was open to all comers who visited him for consultation and advice. For eight years he presided over the Benares Institute, and was the life and soul of that society. His death gave a sudden shock to the city, and both Europeans and natives alike felt that they had lost their truest and most faithful friend." I subsequently received a copy of the Friend of India containing an account of the investiture of the son with the titles and dignities of the father, " in recognition of the faithful and eminent services of the late rajah." He is now the Eajah Sumbhoo Narain Singh. May he long wear his honors as worthily as his father ! The last morning that we spent in Benares we devoted to visiting some of the Hindoo temples, in which the cit}' abounds. They are erected in honor of all sorts of gods ; many of them by private munificence, in fulfillment of vows or under some religious impulse. Some of the tem- ples of Benares are costly, and have a show of splendor about them, especially the Golden Temple ; but it is more in show than reality. Even the Golden Temple, which is the pi'ide of the Hindoos of Benares, and which more than all others is resorted to by pilgrims from afar, is not at- tractive either in its external or its internal appearance. The pointed dome, which is characteristic of this style of buildings, is not without beauty of outline, but there is usu- ally nothing in the surroundings of these temples to make them pleasing, and they are far from being neatly kept. 203 AROUyi) THE WORLD. A UIJiDOO TEMPLE. In almost all respects they are in striking contrast with the magniiicent mosques of the Mohammedans in the same cities, and there is a good reason for the contrast. When the Mohammedans subdued and took possession of India, the J destroyed the monuments of the ancient religion, using the material for building their mosques, and at the same time prohibiting the erection of temples, excepting of very limited dimensions. Throughout the Xorth of India, tlierefore, the Hindoos scarcely have any thing that can l^e called temples; they are all diminutive structures — mere shrines. Out of the hundreds or thousands that I saw, I CALCUTTA TO BEXARES. 269 think there was not one that would measure more than twenty -five feet in its greatest diameter. It is different in Southern India, where some of the most extensive struc- tures in the world are to be found. The ordinary services at the temple are not elaborate. The worshipers present offerings of flowers, fruits, jewels, money, etc., which become the perquisite of the priests. The life of a Hindoo is one of ceaseless devotion to his re- ligion, and the visit to the temple may be only the last act in a long service or pilgrimage, or the initial step to some such enterprise, and consumes but little time. There are, indeed, occasions of grand ceremonial when the gods are taken out for an airing, but the shrines themselves afford no room for any gathering of the people. The assem- blages take place at some consecrated spot, like the banks of the sacred rivers. As we approached the Golden Tem- ple, we found it occupied by a small party of distinguished pilgrims from the up-country ; and when they had retired it was flooded with the water of the Gano;es, which had been poured upon their offerings to sanctify them. The temple, within and without, was in a very filthy condition. Benares has a distinction in Asiatic liistory as the spot where the founders of Buddhism co-mmenced the propaga- tion of that religion. At one period it was flrmlj' estab- lished in various parts of India, but at length was driven out to seek its home in more Eastern countries, M^here it is still exerting its sway over hundreds of millions. The ru- ins of Sarnath, an extensive Buddhist establishment near Benares, and the monasteries cut into the rocky mountains in the west of India, which I subsequently visited from Bombay, bespeak the firm hold wliich it once had upon tlie people among whom it originated. The gold brocades of Benares are among the most costly and elegant fabrics of the world, rich and exquisite beyond description, and as costly as they are beautiful. As the merchants took them out of the safes and displayed them to us, we could almost imagine that the Mogul dynasty, in 270 AROUND THE WORLD. KUIN'e KEAE BENAEES. all its gorgeous splendor, was to be re-establisliecl ; we could not imagine liow otherwise there could be a demand for such fabrics. Some of them were held at 900 rupees, or §450, the square yard. BENARES TO ALLAHABAD. 271 BENARES TO ALLAHABAD. The night is the time for travel in India at all seasons of the year. As there was little that was attractive in the scenery throngh which we were to pass, we left Benares at the same honr of the evening at which we had entered it. We crossed the Ganges in the beautiful moonlight, which spread a wondrously weird sheen over the massive monu- ments to the false prophet, upon its thousand diminutive Hindoo temples and shrines, and along its magnificent ghauts. Were we in the mystical land of the Arabian Nights, or in the dream-land of Hindoo mythology, or in the midst of the splendor of the old Mogul dynasty ? We could scarcely say until we had crossed the Ganges, and entered the depot to take our seats in the railway cars. This was a modern reality. At Chunar we passed a fortress celebrated alike in Mo- liammedan history and Hindoo mythology, near which, upon a lofty eminence, the Supreme Being is supposed to be seat- ed personally, though invisibly, a portion of every day, and the remainder of the day at the sacred city of Benares. Near Mirzapore, a few miles farther north, is the temple of the Goddess Kali, which in former times was the resort of the Thugs, the discover}^ of whose existence as a com- plete and extensive organization not many years since struck terror into the hearts of all the residents of India. To this temple they came to worship, and to present their offerings to their tutelary divinity before entering on any murderous expedition — a fearful instance of the power of a false sys- tem of rehfjion to blind its devotees to the natui-e of crime. The goddess is represented in Bengal with a hideous black face and mouth streaming with blood, a very fury in ap- 272 AROUND THE WORLD. peai-anee. Tlmggism, if not a religious organization, was the next thing to it. The fraternity, while living by mur- der and robbery, were scrupulous in all their religious ob- servances. They were even more pious in their way than the banditti of Italy, who would not for all the w^orld eat meat on Friday, while they would not hesitate to cut off the ears of a refractory traveler, after robbing him, on any dav in the week. The Thugs never undertook a criminal expe- dition until they had propitiated their Goddess Kali, with whom they afterward divided the spoil ; and, being intense- ly superstitious, they were easily deterred from the commis- sion of a crime, not by any enormity which it involved, but by the slightest evil omen. If one of their number hap- pened to sneeze as they were starting upon an expedition, or if they met a w^oman with an empty pitcher, or heard an ass bray, the expedition was abandoned. Tliey were not ordinary robbers. Their depredations were made only upon travelers, natives as well as foreigners, and murder was al- ways the first step in the robbery. This is the explanation of the secrecy that they maintained so long. The pirate's maxim, " Dead men tell no tales," was one of their funda- mental principles. They invariably put their victims to death, usually by strangling with a cord, and then buried them out of sight. Each gang had its jemadar, or leader; its guru, or teacher ; its sothas, or entrappers ; its hhuttotes, or stranglers; and its lughaees, or grave-diggers. These would usually meet at some town, often as pretended stran- gers to one another, select their victims, fall into company with them, and travel for days before seizing the opportu- nity for their meditated crime. The discoverv of this extensive orsi-anization was made in the year 1829. Individuals, and even gangs, had been de- tected from time to time, and, on being convicted of mur- der, had been executed, but it had never been known that all over India a secret association existed, with officers, and regulations, and pass- words, which had been devoted to this species of crime. One evening in the year named above. BEXARES TO ALLAHABAD. 273 as Major Sleeman, the Deputy Commissioner of the English for the Sangor District, was seated at the door of liis tent, a native came up to him in great haste, threw himself at his feet, and begged to make a commmiication of great im- portance, but to his ear alone, Mrs. Sleeman, who was present, retired, and the man then confessed that he was the leader of a gang of Thugs, who were near, and that the grove in which Major Sleeman's tent was pitched was fill- ed with the o-raves of those who had been murdered from time to time. A search was made, and his words proved to be true. The gang was apprehended, information was ob- tained from one and another source until the proof of the existence of the organization in nearly every province and district of India was obtained. A knowledge of their pro- ceedings, their regulations, their secret signs, and of the fearful extent of their crimes, was obtained and laid before government. The most thoi'ough measures for their sup- pression were adopted, and carried out, it is now believed, with perfect success. Every known Thug throughout India was apprehended, and although the number was so great that condign punishment could not be meted out to all, the organization was broken up. The least guilty were formed into a sort of penal colony at Jubbulpore, where they were kept employed at various trades, secluded from intercourse with their former companions and with the community gen- erally. It is hoped that, in the course of time, the traditions of this iniquity will so die out as to preclude the possibility of its revival. No statistics of the number of its victims duriufic the ages in which it has had an oro-anized existence could possibly be obtained, but the number must have been very great. The following case, which I find in the records of Colonel Sleeman, will give an idea of the course which these mur- derers pursued, and of the remorseless perseverance vnih. which they followed up their victims. It is drawn from the confessions of a Thug who had been apprehended and convicted of the crime. S 274 AROUND THE WORLD. " A stout Mogul officer, of noble bearing and singularly handsome countenance, on his Avay from the Punjaub to Oude, crossed the Ganges at Gurmuktesur Ghaut, near Mee- rut, to pass through Meradabad and Bareilly. He was mount- ed on a fine Turkee horse, and attended by his Mtmutgar and groom. Soon after crossing the river he fell in with a small party of well-dressed and modest-looking men going the same road. They accosted him in a respectful manner, and attempted to enter into conversation with him. He had heard of Thugs, and told them to be off. They smiled at his idle suspicions, and tried to remove them, but all in vain ; the Mogul was determined; they saw his nostrils swelling with indignation, took their leave, and followed slowly. " The next morning he overtook the same number of men, but of a different appearance, all Mussulmans. They accost- ed him in the same respectful manner, talked of the dangers of the road, and the necessity of their keeping together and taking the advantage of the protection of any mounted gen- tleman that happened to be going the same way. The Mo- gul officer said not a word in reply, resolved to have no com- panions on the road. They persisted ; his nostrils began again to swell, and, putting his hand to his sword, he bid them all be off, or he would have their heads from their shoulders. He had a bow and quiver full of arrows over his shoulder, a brace of loaded pistols in his waist-belt, and a sword by his side, and was altogether a very formidable- looking cavalier. " In the evening another party that lodged in the same se- rai became very intimate with the butler and groom. They were going the same road, and, as the Mogul overtook them in the morning, they made their bows respectfully, and be- gan to enter into conversation with their two friends, the groom and the butler, who were coming up behind. The Mogul's nostrils began again to swell, and he bid the stran- gers be off. The groom and butler interceded ; for their master was a grave, sedate man, and they wanted compan- ions. All would not do, and the strangers fell in the rear. " The next day, when thay had got to the middle of an extensive and ixninhabited plain, the Mogul in advance, and his two servants a few hundred yards behind, he came up to a party of six poor Mussulmans sitting weeping by the side of a dead companion. They were soldiers from Lahore on their way to Lucknow, worn down by fatigue in their anxi- ety to see their wives and children once more after a long and painful service. Their companion, the hope and prop of BENARES TO ALLAHABAD. 275 his fomily, liad sunk under the fatigue, and they had made a grave for him ; but they were poor unlettered men, and tena- ble to repeat the funeral service from the holy Koran ; would his highness but perform this last office for them, he would, no doubt, find his reward in this world and in the next. The Mogul dismounted. The body had been placed in its prop- er position, with the head toward Mecca. A carpet was spread ; the Mogul took off" his bow and quiver, then his pis- tols and sword, and placed them on the ground near the body ; called for water, and washed his feet, hands, and face, that he might not pronounce the holy words in an unclean state. He then knelt down and began to repeat the funeral service in a clear, loud voice. Two of the poor soldiers knelt by him, one on each side, in silence. The other four went off a few paces to beg that the butler and groom would not come so near as to interrupt the good Samaritan at his devotions. All being ready, one of the four, in a low under- tone, gave the shirnee (the signal), the handkerchiefs were thrown over their necks, and in a few minutes all three, the Mogul and his servants, were dead, and lying in the grave in the usual manner — the head of one at the feet of one be- low him. " All the parties they had met on the road belonged to a gang of Jumaldehee Thugs, of the kingdom of Oude. In despair of being able to win the Mogul's confidence in the usual way, and determined to have the money and jewels which they knew he carried with him, they had adopted this plan of disarming him — dug the grave by the side of the road in the open plain, and made a handsome young Mussul- man of the party the dead soldier. The Mogul, being a very stout man, died almost without a struggle, and his servants made no resistance." It was past niidniglit, but a night almost as bright as the day, when we rolled over the magnificent bridge that spans the Jumna at Allahabad, just above the miion of its waters witli those of the Ganges. The bridge is one of the most costly railway structures in or out of India. It is built of iron imported from England. The foundations of the high stone piers on which it rests were laid in the ooze of the river, which, in laying the foundations, seemed to be almost without bottom. The rise of water in the rainy season, which sometimes reaches forty feet, made it 276 AROUND THE WOMLD. necessary to have elevated piers, and the bridge, which is three qnartere of a mile in length, makes a fine appearance in the ordinary stages of the river. We were delighted, on reaching the station at so late an hour of the night, to find the Kev. Mr. Walsh awaiting us. I had known him when a boy, but long ago he turned his steps eastward to preach the Gospel in the land of the Hindoos and the Mohammedans. Since the death of an- other friend and classmate, the Rev. Dr. Owen, Mr. Walsh has been the father of the American Mission at Allahabad. Takino; us in his p-harrv, we drove mile after mile through the broad streets of this capital, until it seemed that the streets had no end ; and when under these quiet Eastern skies, in the beauty of the night and in our j)leasant con- verse, we almost wished they were endless. At length we reached the bungalow of the American Mission, and found a resting-place in an American home. Allahabad (which means the City of God), a name given to it by the Mohammedan conquerors of India, is one of the sacred places of the Hindoos. It has been a point of much importance in all the changes which have occurred among the rulers of Hindostan, and has been fortified from time to time under different dynasties. The present for- tress, a mile and a half in circuit, situated at the junction of the Ganges and Jumna Rivers, was built by Akbar, one of the Mogul emperors, three hundred years ago, on the site of an ancient Hindoo fortification. It has been re- modeled and strengthened by the English, and has been of incalculable value to them. During the mutiny of 1857 it proved the salvation of many of the English residents at Allahabad, and contributed greatly to the final recovery of British power in India. It has acquired much importance within a few years by the removal of the capital from Agra to this place. A new city, with broad avenues and spa- cious squares, has been laid out, and large public buildings, including some of the finest barracks in India, have been in coui*se of erection. Manv beautiful bunfjalows have BENARES TO ALLAHABAD. '211 been bnilt, and are surrounded by extensive grounds ; and although, like our own Washington, Allahabad, for the pres- ent, " is a city of magnificent distances" rather than an im- posing capital, it bids fair to become one of the finest towns in the peninsula. In the mutiny, every foreign residence was destroyed, with every public building, excepting the Masonic Ilall, which the natives did not dare to attack on account of the spirits that were supposed to guard it. This building was pointed out to me in a remote part of the town, a lonely monument of the terrible scenes which it survived. Allahabad has long been one of the most important mis- sion stations of the American Presbyterian Church. It was selected not only on account of its large population, but as a centre of influence for the whole north of India, and in one respect it has a peculiar importance. It is the chief place of pilgrimage, and through the multitudes that gather here every year an influence may be sent out into every part of the land. Situated at the confluence of the two most sacred rivers of Ilindostan — the Ganges and the Jumna — the spot is regarded by all Hindoos as one of the holiest places in the world. They come to it from all parts and at all times of the year to bathe where the two rivers meet, and thus to wash away their sins. There is an annu- al mela or gathering at this place in the month of January, when hundreds of thousands come together; and every twelfth year, owing to some propitious conjunction of the stars, there is a special gathering, when the number of the pilgrims is sometimes counted even by millions. I first reached Allahabad in December, on my way to the north ; but, after visiting the Himalaya Mountains, I returned to be present at the opening of the great mela on the 12th of January. It is held on a vast plain — a tongue of land lying between the two rivers, which in the rainy season is completely overfiowed. Wlien the pilgrims as- semble they pitch their tents upon the plain, and for the space of a month it is the most populous city in India. I 278 AROUND THE WORLD. learned afterward, from one of the missionaries, that two milhons were present at one time, and I could easily com- prehend it from what I had seen. I took my stand, one day, in a thoroughfare leading to the grounds, to see the people pouring in by crowds, many of whom came from hundreds of miles up and down the country, I had seen them far np to the north, the week before, coming down in large companies. They continued to arrive at all hours of day and night for days and even for weeks, like a continuous procession. Some of the wealthier people came on elephants, others on camels, many of them, especially the aged and feeble, in carts drawn by bullocks or cows, but most of them on foot, mtli the dust and dirt of their long pilgrimage upon them. In the vast crowd were thousands of faquirs or devotees, who were almost naked and covei'ed with dirt, their hair matted with filth, more disgusting in their appearance than swine, and accounting themselves all the more holy be- cause of the excessive filth in which they had chosen to live. Bathing in muddy streams and living in abominable filth seem to be the two prominent articles in the creed of the Hindoos, at least of those who pretend to eminent holi- ness — the very reverse of the Christian maxim that " clean- liness is a part of godliness," More abominable or more horrid specimens of human nature than these faquirs can scarcely be conceived ; and the more painful part of it was, that the poor ignorant peof>le had been taught to re- gard these filthy, depraved brutes in human shape as pre- eminently holy. Some of the devotees had made their pil- grimage all the way upon their hands and knees, others by dragging themselves along the ground, and one man, per- haps more, by measuring his length like an inch worm, ly- ing down, making a mark at his head, and then lying down with his toes at the mark, and so making his slow progress toward the consecrated spot. One man whom I saw at the mela had held his right hand above his head eleven years, and was, of course, accounted an eminent saint. BENABES TO ALLAHABAD. 279 The Brahmins keep up these festivals for the sake of inakiug money out of the pilgrims. Each one is required to pay his tax as he comes to bathe, and so a large revenue comes to the coffers of the Brahmins of the district. The faquirs, too, extort money from the people on the ground of their sanctity, but a more transparent set of knaves 1 never looked upon. They showed it in their countenances ; but long practice and established custom had given them an ascendency and power over the people. One of the first acts of a pilgrim {the Jriquirs excepted) is to have his head shaven by regularly appointed barbers, under the as- surance that for every hair he loses he secures to himself a million of years in Paradise ; a favor for which he is com- pelled to make a return in money according to his means. By this operation the pockets of the pilgrims are as well fleeced as their heads. Then comes the bathing ; and a sorrowful sight are those tens of thousands of poor, sin- burdened heathen, going down into the water and devout- ly washing themselves, in the vain hope of washing away their guilt. All classes and all ages go down into the wa- ter ; even the women of the higher class being exempt, for the time, from the law of custom which compels them to live in seclusion. I longed for the gift of speaking, not only to their ears, but to their hearts, of that fountain for sin and for uncleanness which has been opened by a dying Saviour, and which is free and near to all, without any pain- ful pilgrimage. But this is done by faithful missionaries, who have their tents pitched at various points among the crowd, and who improve this occasion for imparting relig- ious instruction, and not without success. After the pilgrims have been shaven, and have bathed and performed other religious services, they devote them- selves to social intercourse, to traflSc, and often to all man- ner of wickedness, so that the mela becomes a mixed scene, the religious part bearing but a slight proportion to the whole. I believe that the whole system of idol- atrv in India is now sustained more bv the avarice of 280 AROUND THE WORLD. Brahmins, who become wealthy from their perquisites and by the incidental gains connected with it, than by the re- ligious feelings of the people. Priestcraft has a mighty power in keeping up rites which, if left to the choice even of ignorant people, would speedily come to an end. At the great mela at Allahabad I heard many confess that Christianity was better than their religion, but they are bound by education, and custom, and caste. It is not a shght evidence, though only one of many, that the religion of Christ has taken hold of the people of India, to see preaching-tents established by the Hindoos, with readers and preachers, who endeavor to counteract the j)reaching of the Gospel by drawing away and holding the attention of the people. I had seen the same thing in China. In the city of Canton the Chinese have built a beautiful chap- el, in all respects like the Christian, where they have regu- lar preaching. Amid the melancholy scenes connected with this great aggregation of heathenism at Allahabad, there is much that gives promise of a bright day^at hand, when the gross darkness that has so long cohered the peo- ple will be dispelled. The only witness against the British government for its complicity with the idolatry of the Hindoos that I saw re- maining in India was at Allahabad. In the fort there is a passage leading to extensive subterranean vaults, which from time immemorial have been regarded with great ven- eration by the natives. They pretend that the passage leads to Benares, nearly a hundred miles distant, and that a third sacred river once coursed through it. The multitudes who come on pilgrimage to Allahabad all enter this vault, pay their devotions, and make some offering, on which they pom* the water of the Ganges and the Jumna to consecrate the gift. There are numerous shrines, all, I believe, of the Lingam, the obscene object of Hindoo woi"ship, which are constantly covered with flowers and kept wet with the holy water. Formerly the pilgrims who entered were required to pay a tax of one rupee each to the government, which THE MUTINY; CA WNPORE AND L UCKNO W. 281 became an immense revenue. The tax has been abolished, but I saw these obscene pagan shrines still standing, and the devotees in crowds presenting their offerings and pay- ing their worship before them with the British flag flying over their heads on the fort. It is a reproach and a shame to a Christian government, and the more so because con- nected ^vith a fortress whicli belongs exclusively to the government. XX. THE MUTINY; CAWNPORE AND LUCKNOW. After I had been several weeks in India, the question was asked me, by one who naturally enough wished to know how I had been impressed with the country and its people, " What, of all that you have seen, has struck you most for- cibly V ■ I replied, " The fact that no two persons seem to entertain the same ideas with regard to any subject." I was never in a country where there is such a diversity of sentiment in regard to questions of public policy, the right mode of dealing with social problems, or even in re- gard to many matters of fact. Scarcely any thing appears to be settled in the general opinion of the people — the Eu- ropeans, I mean. The very names of places and things are without any established rules. Every writer has his own orthography, and every speaker his own pronunciation of native words. The languages of the country have never yet found their equivalents in the English tongue. I M^as told that there are sixty-four different ways of spelling the name of Lodiana, a town in the north of India, and that each one has good authority for it. I have seen the name of the beautiful valley of the Dehra Boon, that I visited among the Himalaya Mountains, written Dehrah, Deirah, Deira, Deyra, Deijrah,Dera,Qin& so on cid lihitum. But in no respect was I more struck with the diversity 282 AROUND THE WORLD. of sentiment among intelligent and well-informed persons than in regard to the cause of the terrible mutiny of 1857, which came so near extinguishing the power of the English in the East. I not only felt a strong desire, in going over the ground where its fearful scenes were enacted, to learn more than I had known before of the causes which led to it, tlie impelling motives which tired the natives, but I im- agined that I should be able to obtain such knowledge by personal intercourse with the residents, many of whom had been there during its progress and suppression. But al- most every intelligent man in India seemed to have his own theory in regard to the matter, and very few-, on com- paring notes, would be found to agree. It certainly speaks well for the independence of thought in that land, but it shows also that this awful episode in the history of the British occupation of India is still involved in much mys- tery. And this is just about the truth in regard to the matter. I doubt if any rebellion of equal extent and im- portance ever before occurred which could not be traced more directly and more clearly to its origin. The nearest approximation that I made to a definite opinion of my own, after careful investigation of all the sources of information, and all the opinions current, is, that the mutiny was a sort of blind movement on the part alike of Mohammedans and Hindoos (though more the former than the latter) to cast off the foreign yoke which had been placed on their necks by a series of usurpations, too often attended with the very crimes of which the natives them- selves had been guilty in past ages. One monarch after another had been dethroned by the agents of the East In- dia Company, and his territory added to the Company's possessions, or made tributary. It had become clear that the same power, unless absolutely destroyed, must cover the whole land, and the opportunity was seized, when the En- glish military force was reduced to its lowest limits, to rise and attempt to annihilate the foreign element. In the spring of 1857 there were only about twenty thousand THE MUTINY; CA WNPORE AND LUCKNU W. 283 British troops in all India. The army was composed al- most altogether of native troops. There was not a Euro- pean regiment at Calcutta, nor at Benares, nor at Delhi, nor at many other important points. There must have been conference or conspiracy for some time previous, for the mutinous spirit manifested itself almost simultaneously from one end of Ilindostan to the other. The train had been laid, and the explosion passed with frightful rapidity from one city and district to another. The occasion for such a rising, too, was opportune in more respects than one. A prophecy had long been in cir- culation amono; tlie natives that on the hundredth anniver- sary of the battle of Plassey, which secured the supremacy of the English in India, their power would be destroyed. That battle took place June 23, 1757, and the eventful day was drawino- nio-b. The success of such a revolt seemed the more assured by the defenseless state of the English in the country at the time. The introduction of greased car- trido-es was another coinciding element. This has been re- garded by some as the actual cause of the mutiny, but it was simply a coincidence, and was made use of as an incite- ment to revolt. Artfully was it seized upon, and success- fully was it employed. To make use of the new cartridges according to regulation, the soldiers must bite off the end before inserting them in the musket. The report was cir- culated through the whole army that they had been greased with a composition of tallow and lard- — the former an abom- ination to the Hindoo, and the latter to the Mohammedan. The Hindoo would as soon draw a razor across his throat as put a particle of the fat of the cow to his lips, and a Mo- hammedan would perish before he would have any thing to do with the fat of the swine. The report was circulated that by this means the English intended to compel both classes to abjure their religion, and it was effectively used as one of the instruments by which the troops, Hindoos and Mohammedans, were stirred up to revolt. It is a very remarkable fact that no satisfactory evidence 284 AR0U2W THE WORLD. lias ever been found that the rebellion had any real head or leader, or that it Avas designed to re-establish any one of the old dynasties, or to found a new one. Conspiracy there must have been, but there were no arch-conspirators, and there was no well-executed plan of action. Some have im- plicated the effete family of the old King of Dellii ; some Iiave regarded the ex-King of Oude, a sort of state prisoner at Calcutta, as being its moving spirit ; some have given the same position to the monster Xana Sahib ; but I do not think there is any proof that any one of these, or others who have been named, played any such ambitious part in the terrible drama. The mutiny was more Mohammedan than Hindoo in its origin and in progress ; but this, perhaps, was owing to the fact that the Mohammedans had been so long the ruling race. Equally mysterious with its origin were the means used in preparing for a concerted movement throughout India. At the commencement of the year 1857 it was noticed that a peculiar kind of small cakes of unleavened bread, called chupatties, were distributed through the whole country. A messenger appeared at a village with these cakes, he sought out the head man of the place and gave him six, with the charge that he was to send six more to the next villao;e, and so they passed from one end of the land to the other, and exerted a talismanic power which has never been ex- plained. Just about the same time lotus flowers were sent to the native soldiers at the various cantonments, and they, too, passed from hand to hand with the same effect. Strange to say, tlie peculiar significance of these tokens has never transpired, so profoundly have the secrets of the mutiny been preserved. The history of the world will scarcely furnish a parallel to the anomalies and mysteries connected with this whole matter. The first serious signs of disaffection appeared at Dun- dum, near Calcutta, in January, 1857. The Sepoys object- ed to the greased cartridges, but they professed to be satis- fied when they were excused from using them. The same THE MUTINY; CAWNPOEE AND LUCKNOW. 285 disaffection showed itself, and from the same ostensible cause, soon after at Barrackpore, opposite Serampore, on the Hoogly, where incendiary lires also occurred. A gen- eral order for the whole army was then issued allowing the soldiers to tear off the end of the cartridge instead of biting it, but it had no good effect. All this time the English au- thorities slept, as it were, in profound security, ignorant of the storm that was so soon to burst upon them. Other and more serious disturbances took place, but without awaken- ing apprehension. It was not until April that the country was roused. Scenes of insubordination and violence oc- curred at Meerut, far to the north, extended to Delhi, and spread with fearful rapidity until the whole army was in revolt. Forts and towns were seized by the rebels, the En- glish officers and residents slaughtered without mercy, or subjected to the most horrible outrages that fiends could in- flict. The magazine in the great fort at Delhi, which con- tained a vast amount of stores of all kinds, guns, and am- munition, was defended by a small force of English against a horde of rebels until the unequal contest could no longer be maintained, when, instead of surrendering to the enemy, the feeble garrison applied the torch to the train, and thou- sands of the assailants perished with the besieged in the explosion. Straggling Europeans escaped destruction at Delhi and other places to wander for months in the jungle, some to be preserved almost by miracle from all horrible forms of death. Incidents of this character occurred which are too harrowing to be repeated. At Allahabad, a native regiment stationed in the town suddenly revolted ; shot down the superior officers and bay- oneted the younger ; attacked the residents, men, women, and children, cutting them in pieces while alive ; children were tossed on the bayonets of the native soldiers before the eyes of their mothers, and atrocities committed which the pen can not record. The remnant of English who es- caped took refuge in the fort, which was besieged by the Sepoys. A ti-ain of powder was laid, and the besieged 286 AROUND THE WORLD. were prepared to blow tliemselves up and perish in the ex- plosion, as at Delhi, the moment the fort should be taken. But English troops arrived from below, and they were pre- served. All through the mutiny the fort was a rallyintr. point for the English. From Delhi, and from other cities where the English families were congregated, women and children made their escape from the general massacre— sometimes in small com- panies, but generally alone— and wandered for days ex- posed to the intense heat of the summer sun, when they could scarcely exist in the shade, and at night lay down in the jungle without shelter, and at last perished from hun- ger, fatigue, terror, the stroke of the sun, or the wild beasts. At Agra, the foreign population, with few exceptions, suc- ceeded in reaching the fort, where they had time to shut themselves in before the bursting of the storm ; and here they endured a voluntary but fearful imprisonment more than four months, not knowing any thing of the fate of their friends or what might be going on in other parts of India. I met at Delhi a lady who passed through this long siege, enduring the agony of suspense in the fear that all the rest of India was in the hands of the Sepoys. But the chief horrors of the mutiny centred at Cawn- pore, and were perpetrated under the orders of the mon- ster Nana Sahib. This station was occupied by Sir Hugh Wheeler w^itli a small body of English troops, who had un- der their protection several hundred women and children belonging to the families resident in the city and the neigh- borhood. Having no fortress, they hastily intrenched them- selves by throwing up earth-works on the open plain. The space they occupied was about two hundred yards square, and included a few small buildings. There were nine hundred persons in all within this narrow space. A mur- derous fire was opened upon them by the Sepoys, which, with famine, the burning sun of June, the close confine- ment, and other causes, told fearfully upon their numbers from day to day. Many died, and some went raving mad. THE MUTINY; CAWNPORE AND LUCENOW. 287 At length the enemy began to pour upon them red-hot shot, which tired the buildings, the sick perishing in the flames. The soldiers would have cut their way through the multi- tude of Sepoy soldiers, even at the risk of all perishing in the attempt, but for the hundreds of women and children who were under their protection. While in this extremity, they received an offer from the rebel leader, Nana Sahib, that if they would abandon the intrenchments and the treasure which they had been guard- ing, the survivors should be furnished with boats and an escort to take them down the Ganges to Allahabad. It was not until Nana Sahib had signed the contract and con- firmed his promise with a solemn oath that the offer was accepted. Conveyances were provided for taking the wound- ed, the sick, and the feeble to the river, about a mile dis- tant. They were in the act of embarking, when, by the or- der of Nana Sahib, a battery opened upon them and num- bers were slain. A few boat-loads hastily rowed across the river, but they were seized by the Sepoys, the men all sa- bred, and the women and children carried back to the camp of the monster who had thus violated his pledge. For weeks they were incarcerated in a building at Cawnpore, where they were subjected to the brutality of the Sepoy troops. A rumor having reached the rebels that a military force was on the march from Allahabad to rescue the cap- tives, an order was given that they should be slain — not an unwelcome order to those who were suffering a thousand deaths. At sunset on the 15th of July, volleys of musketry were fired into the doors and windows of the buildincr, after which the bayonet and the sword did their work, until all were supposed to be dead, and the building was closed for the night. The next morning it w^as found that a number were still alive, who, upon being brought out, either threw themselves or were thrown into a large well in the com- pound, with the dead of the night before. Thus perished all who had survived the slaughter of the ghaut, nearly two hundred in all. The whole number of victims at Cawn- 288 AROUND THE WORLD. pore was about one thousand. The army, under Havelock, entered Cawnpore the day after the massacre, driving out the rebels before them ; and when they reached the build- ing which was the scene of the massacre, found it strewed with the relics of the departed ones — remnants of clothing, ladies' and children's shoes, locks of hair, and other memen- toes — and the floor covered deep with their blood. The brave soldiers were almost maddened by the sight. On the plain at Cawnpore is one of the most beautiful parks in the East, laid out in exquisite taste, and planted with trees, and shrubbery, and ever-blooming flowers. In the midst of this park rise the marble walls of a sacred in- closure, in the centre of which, over the fatal well, stands a marble statue — an angel having in his arms the palm- leaves, emblematical of martyrdom and victory. This park was laid out and planted after the mutiny, and called the Memorial Garden ; but it seemed designed as much to mit- igate with its beauty, as to preserve by its monuments, the memories of the spot. The pedestal, on which stands the angel, bears the following inscription : " SACKED TO THE PEEPETUAL IklEMORY OF A GEE AT COM- PANY OF CHRISTIAN PEOPLE — CHIEFLY WOMEN AND CHILDREN — WHO, NEAR THIS SPOT, WERE CRUELLY MASSACRED BY THE FOLLOWERS OF THE REBEL NANA DHOONDOPUNT OF BITHOOR, AND CAST, THE DYING WITH THE DEAD, INTO THE WELL BE- LOW, ON THE 15tH day OF JULY, 1857." While General "Wheeler and his command, with his pre- cious charge, were still in their frail intrenchment, the mu- tiny broke out at Futteghur, higher up the Ganges. This has long been one of the chief stations of the American Presbyterian missions to India. All the Mission buildings, including a valuable printing-offlce, were destroyed. The foreign residents were put to the sword, the English ofiicers and civilians being the first to sufi^er. The survivors, in- cluding four American missionary families, attempted to escape in boats, hoping to reach Allahabad. The Ameri- cans were Rev. Messrs. Freeman, Campbell, Johnson, and THEMUTiyY; CAWXPORE AXD LUCKXOW. 289 McMulleii, with their wives, and two children of Mr. Camp- bell. Mr. Freeman had been my classmate and intimate friend at Princeton Seminary. The large party, one hnndred and thirty in all, floated down the Ganges, all the while in terror of the natives. Twice they were fired on by tlie Sepoys, and a lady, nurse, and cliild were killed. Once, as they landed at evening to cook some food on the shore, they were surprised by a zemindar, who made them his prisoners ; but they were re- leased on the payment of a large ransom. On the fourth day the boats ran agi'ound near an island a few miles above Cawnpore. The whole party went ashore and concealed themselves in the long grass, where they remained in con- stant apprehension of discovery, and with little hope of es- cape. In this hiding-place they assembled for prayer and preparation for death, the missionaries leading them to the throne of God's mercy to seek grace for the hour of greater trial tliat awaited them, and exhorting every one to stead- fast trust in Him who would bring salvation even in death. The record of those solemn scenes was derived from four native Christians, who were the only sur^'ivors. Xear the close of the fourth day the}' were discovered by a body of Sepoys, who came upon the island, made them prisoner, and, deaf to all aj^peals for mercy and offers of ransom, took them across the river on the way to Cawnpore. Though exliausted with long fasting and anxiety, they were tied to- gether with ropes, and men, women, and children compelled to take up the line of march on foot. ISTight overtaking them, it was spent on the plain in the open air, the Sepoys keeping guard over them to prevent their escape. Early the next morning they were taken into Cawnpore to Xana Sahib, who ordered them to be drawn up in line on the parade-ground, where they were indiscriminately shot down. Those who Survived the volley of musketry were dispatched with the sabre. When they were first seized by the Sepoys, the missionaries dismissed the four native Christians, ad- vising them to seek their own safety, but in no circum- T 290 AROUND THE WORLD. stances to deny their Lord and Master. One of them, a man who had been a servant to the Maharajah Dhuleep Singh, disguised himself, followed the captive party, and was a witness to the last fearful scene in which their lives were offered up. From him the knowledge of their fate was obtained. The remarkable fact tliat from the breakins; out of the mutiny to its close not a single Christian convert took any part in the fearful outbreak, is the most emphatic condem- nation of the blind and fatal policy of the East India Com- pany in discom-aging the propagation of Christianity among its dependent population in India, and especially in the army. The chaplains of the army, Christian ministers, were strictly forbidden to interfere in any manner with the religion of the native troops. This tenderness was repaid by the revolt of those who had been dealt with in such mistaken policy. The whole conduct of the native troops during the rebellion was strikingly characteristic of Ori- ental and Indian character. The most of them joined in the mutiny at the very commencement, many of them ex- hibiting the ferocity of wild beasts. Some hesitated for months, and at length joined the mutineers. Some regi- ments remained loyal to the English during the rebellion, resisting all inducements to engage in the revolt, even when it promised to be successful, and at the very last mutinied when it was evident that it must be suppressed. Some, though comparatively few, remained faithful to the end. So made up of contradictions and mysteries is the native character. What became of the monster Nana Sahib is one of the mysteries of the rebellion. Whether he perished in the suppression of the mutiny, or escaped to die in exile, no one knows to this day. It was evening when we reached Cawnpore. By twilight we drove across the parade-ground where so many bra^'e and tender hearts had ceased to beat. It was late before we were all arranged for the night at Xoor Mahomed's THE MUTINY; CAWNPOEE AXD LUCENOW. 291 hotel in a distant part of the town ; but the moon came out to look upon the scene once so fearful, now so placid, and I could not resist the impulse, even at that weird hour, to visit the places so full of interest to all who have read the story of the Sepoy rebellion. I wandered down to the Ganges, to the Suttee Chorora Ghaut., where General Wheeler's force was treacherously slain. It was a lonely spot, and the stillness of the grave reigned over it, broken only by the ripple of the flowing river, the cry of the night- birds, and an occasional howl of a jackal. In that quiet hour, witli the personal and the historic recollections which came thronging upon the heart, the interest of all India seemed to centre in Cawnpore. The next morning, after spending an hour in the Memo- rial Garden, we took leave of Cawnpore and went on to Lucknow, the scene of the memorable siege. Luclvuow is about forty miles to tlie northeast of Cawn- pore, with which, and with the East Indian Railway, it is connected by a branch road. The Cawnpore Station is on the opposite side of the Ganges, whicli we crossed by one of the usual bridges of boats, which are much better adapt- ed to these swift-flowing and rapidly-rising streams than one might suppose. As we crossed the bridge early in the morning, I looked up the stream for the island on which one of the large companies that had been massacred by the orders of Nana Sahib had been seized on their flio-ht down the river from Futteghur, after lying concealed for three days in the grass. The same river on which they iiad float- ed still flowed on in its course ; the same landmarks were scattered along its shores, but tlie fearful scenes which they had witnessed were among the things of the past. It was near noon when the domes and minarets of Luck- now rose into view, and grand was the sight. Few of the cities of India could compare in outward splendor with the capital of Oude as it was before the mutin}^, or even as it now stands. It lays claim to great antiquity, dating far back in tlie shadowy periods of Hindoo history ; but the present city has all been built within the last century. 292 AROUND THE WORLD. The King of Oude, whose possessions were the last to be seized by the East India Company, reigned here in great splendor. He had just completed the Ivaiser Bagh — the extensive palace which forms the most striking feature in the view of the city, having expended in its construction and embellishment eighty lacs of rupees (about four mill- ions of dollars) — when the British authorities informed him that they required his extensive and rich dominions, and that he must lay down his sceptre and his crown. Lord Dalhousie, who was then governor general, proposed to settle on him a large pension ; but the king, very natu- rally, was reluctant to resign his authority and his reve- nues, and steadfastly refused to put his hand to any deed of conveyance. When compelled to retire, he sent his queen to England to plead his cause before another queen, Victoria ; but before she returned the mutiny of 1857 broke out, and his fate was sealed. He now resides, a sort of prisoner, on his own purchased estate, two or three miles below Calcutta, on the Hoogiy. By many this seizure of the territory of Oude and the sale of the personal property of the king is regarded as the immediate cause of the re- bellion. There is more of show in the city of Lucknow than of solid grandeur, such as we see at Benares, or of the exqui- site taste and almost inconceivable costliness that we find at Agra and the old Mogul capital at Delhi ; but with its domes, and minarets, and imposing structures, it is a real- ization of all one's dreams of Eastern mao^nificence. The palace, gorgeous in its style of architecture, and colored to resemble a vast structure of gold, with its lofty dome of real gold, looms up before the eye; \hQ JJoseinabad Imaum- hara, built by Ali Shah, and elaborately ornamented ; the Jumma 3fusjid, the Grand Mosque ; the magnificent mar- ble tombs of former kings, more beautiful than the pal- aces ; the Great Imaiimhara, the architects of which were commanded to produce a building which should be unlike any others ever built (in whicli they succeeded), and which THE MUTINY; CAWNPOBE AND LUCENOW. 293 should surpass them all in beauty and niagniiiceuce (in which they failed) ; the DiWwosha palace, where the he- roic soldier, Sir Henry Havelock, breathed his last; the Martiniere, from the dome of which the mountains of Ca- bool are seen, though a hundred miles distant — these, and many other striking buildings, set like gems in the midst of Oriental foliage, give a grandeur to the \dews of the city Avliich can not be transferred to the written "page. A drive through Lucknow and its suburbs is one of rare beau- ty and of indescribable interest. Notwithstanding all this Eastern splendor, I felt won- derfully like entering a familiar city when entering Luck- now. Years before I had become familiar with its appear- ance and localities in reading the history of the memora- ble siege, in which the garrison of British soldiers, protect- ing hundreds of women and children, w^ere surrounded by 50,000 Sepoys, and subjected to a murderous fire day and night, without any communication with the outer world for 113 days. I had followed the noble Havelock and his brave troops in their long march under the burning sun of India, and as they cut their way through the multitudi- nous Sepoys into the Eesidency, only to find that their force was still too feeble to compel the enemy to raise the siege. I had read with the same intense interest the story of the final relief of the besieged, by Sir Colin Campbell, w^ith his Highland brigade ; of their going forth by night, leaving the city in the hands of the rebels ; and of its final capture the following year by the most heroic fighting recorded in the annals of war. All these scenes were so familiar that I did not feel like being in a strange city. After finding quarters at the Imperial Hotel (it bore about the same relation to a genuine republican hotel that a marble tomb, with its one lonely couch, does to a cheer- ful home), our first visit was to the Eesidency, the scene of the siege. It was the former residence or palace of the British commissioner, and occupied a slight elevation, an area of a few acres, within the city. At the breaking out ^94 ABOUND THE WORLD. of the mutiny, the Muchee Bhoioan fort, being found un- tenable, was blown np, and the garrison retired to the Res- idency, where they threw up earth- works, and endured the long siege. By the kindness of Dr. Fayrer, of Calcutta, former sur- geon at the Residency, I had been furnished ^A\\\ diagrams and notes made during the siege, which greatly aided me in reviewing its memorable history. The original garri- son, as it left the fort, numbered about 1700 men, of whom nearly half were native troops. At the rehef there were left, including sick and wounded, only 350 Europeans and 133 natives. Several hundred women and children spent the five months of the siege chiefly in the cellars of the buildings, where they awaited their rescue in anxious and protracted suspense. It was a mystery I could not solve, excepting in the re- flection that the Almighty had thrown a shield over this company of imperiled souls, that for so many months they not only could endure the privations, and suspense, and anxiety, and heat, in such quarters, but still more that they could survive the storm of iron hail which day and night was poured upon them by tens of thousands of infuriated native troops. Their numbers were greatly reduced by death, but the preservation and final escape of any seemed the next thing to a miracle. At any hour within the many months of the siege, the enemy, by mere force of numbers, might have carried the wdiole place by storm, and put the entire garrison, with the women and children, to the sword. But they had no leader of sufiicient courage, and the hand of God held back the mutineers. With melancholy interest I went into the Dilkhoosha Palace, where General Havelock, after escaping uninjured the perils of war, sank under an attack of dysentery, and died while the British forces were making their success- ful escape from the city. I visited also the summer pal- ace of the king. Alum Bagh, two or three miles out of town, to which the body of Havelock was carried, and THE MUTINY; CAWXPOBE AND LUCKNOW. 295 where a force was left to hold the place until the recap- tui'e of the city the following year. The tomb of the hero stands in the centre of the garden, and bears a long and very inappropriate inscription. The inscription on the stone that marks the grave of Sir Henry Lawrence, in the cemetery of the Residency, seem- ed equally infelicitous : " Here lies Henry Lawrence, who tried to do his duty. May God have mercy on his soul." The explanation should be made thg,t these were words which this excellent man uttered as he was sinking into the arms of death. Like Havelock, he w^as a man of de- cided Christian character. After being struck by the fa- tal shell, as he was lying in the open veranda of Dr. Fay- rer's house, to which he w^as carried, and while exposed to the constant fire of the enemy, he asked to have the holy communion administered to him, many of the officers join- ing in the service. He expressed his firm trust in the atonement of Christ for the pardon of his sins, and his hope of heaven through the merits of the Savior. He spoke in words of deepest tenderness, and with bitter tears, of his absent wife and daughter, whom he should not see again on earth. Lie then earnestly entreated all around him to prepare for the realities of another world, remind- ing them of the vanity of all earthly distinctions, and, re- ferring to his own honors, asked, " What is it all worth now ?" and died. It is an ungracious task to spoil a romantic story, but the thrilling incident connected with the siege of Luck- now, read the world over with such intense interest — the hearing of the pibroch of the Highlanders under Sir Colin Campbell by a Highland girl long before any sound or tidings of the approaching army reached any other ear, re- lated as an instance of the Highland second-sight or hear- ing — was a pure fiction. Two or three weeks after I was at Lucknow, and while I was still in the country, I received by post a copy of a newspaper in Persian, printed at Lucknow, which contain- 296 AROUND THE WORLD. ed the following notice of our visit at that place. I have the original now before me, but I give a translation made by a Hindoo friend who had not jet attained to a vei'y ac- cm-ate use of the English language : " VOYAGE ROUND THE WORLD. "Dr. rrinie, with few of his friends, left New York in August, 18G9, and, after visiting few phices in America, came to Pacific ; from thence on a steamer to Japan and China, and, after seeing some famous cities, he left for Calcutta, and reached in December. From there he came up country to Lucknow via AUahabad. He has now left for Agra and Delhi, and after- wards he intends to visit Egj^it, Constantinople, and Turkey, and then direct to his native land. We think that this will take about fourteen months. "What a nice thing is this, that people can journey throughout the world with great ease and comfort. And from this we find a strong proof that. the earth is round." XXI. AGRA AND THE TAJ. From Lucknow we returned to CawTipore, and took the cars of the East India Railway for Agra. At Toondla Junction, where we were to make a change, we had the only rain that fell while w^e w^ere in India, and this was out of season. We reached Toondla after midnight, and, while waiting for the train, the heavens grew black, and shot f ortli shafts and sheets of lightning, accompanied with heavy thunder. It rained heavily until morning. On reaching Agra we made our w\ay to Beaumont's East Indian Hotel, pleasantly located in the midst of a charming compound outside of the native town, and we flattered ourselves that we had reached a delightful retreat, in which we could spend a few da3^s luxuriously in this old capital of the Timoui's. But, alas ! — We had a bungalow all to ourselves, but the bungalow was nearly all that we had. Our sleeping-rooms were without furniture except- ing a bedstead and mattress. We found that we were ex- AGBA AND THE TAJ. 297 pected to furnish the bedding ourselves. In India Euro- peans have been in the habit of traveling with tents, taking with them all the comforts and necessaries of life. When I first reached Calcutta I wrote to an old friend in the extreme north, informing him of my arrival, and asking him to secure accommodations for our party at a hotel or government bungalow in the city in which he was residing. I received in reply a hearty welcome to the country, with the assurance that, as there was no hotel in the place, he would arrange for the accommodation of the entire party at private houses provided we brought our own beds and bedding with us. AVhen we reached Agra we had not laid in a supply of linen, and inquisition was at once made at the principal hotel in the city, but, after the most diligent search, only four sheets could be mustered for seven persons, not all mated. Of course, no one could have more than a single sheet, and not every one could have even that. We found it almost as difficult to make a living at the table, the commissariat being as poorly supplied as the wardrobe. The servants were all natives who had never found it convenient to cultivate the Eno-lish lano;ua2;e, and we had no time to cultivate the Hindustani, Persian, Mah- ratta, or any of the numerous dialects of the region, so that we fared ill while we were guests at the East Indian hotel. After a vain attempt to gather up the fragments of the sleep which we had lost on the rail and at the stations dur- ing the night, we sallied forth to visit the renowned fort and palace of the emperors. Agra, or, as it was once called, Akbarabad, first rose to importance in the beginning of the sixteenth century, and from 1526 to 1658 it was the capital of the house of Timour. Here, for more than a century, the Moguls lavished their wealth on costly buildings to be occupied while they lived, and erected still more costly structures in which to repose after they were dead. The fortress, which is a mile and a half in circumference, and which contains the palace, was built by the Emperor Akbar. It stands upon the banks of the Jumna, the mass- 298 AROUND THE WORLD. ive walls on the river side being sixty feet in height, and commanding a magnificent view of the river and conntry. When it was built it was a fortress of immense strength, but the mode of warfare has changed in modern times ; it would not now be regarded as impregnable. It served, however, as a shelter to the European families during the four or five months of the mutiny in which they were shut up and shut out from all communication with the rest of the world, but kept secure f]'om the hordes of mutineers that swarmed around them. Xearly six thousand refugees from the city and the neighboring country were thus pro- tected. As a specimen of the manner in which the old emperors were accustomed to fortify their palaces, it may be mention- ed that when Agra was taken by the British in 1803, among the spoils found within the fort was a cannon of twenty- three inches bore, the metal eleven and a half inches thick at the muzzle, fourteen feet and two inches in length, and weighing ninety-six thousand pounds. It carried a ball of cast-iron weighing fifteen hundred pounds. This stupen- dous piece of ordnance was blown into fragments by the orders of a British officer, who perhaps had some fear that he might live long enough to feel the weight of one of its balls. The entrance to the fortress is strongly protected by tow- ers and passages elaborately consti'ucted, such a gateway as none but a powerful assault could force. We drove through it into the grand court, and alighting, entered the Diwan-i-maum, the ancient judgment-hall in which the Mo- gul emperors dispensed justice after the manner of the times. Strange as well as splendid scenes had passed with- in those walls, when an empire rich beyond all precedent yielded its immense revenues to fill the coffei-S and swell the state of those despotic monarchs. The palace stands in the same inclosure, one portion of its walls, with its stone balconies, overhanging, at a dizzy height, the walls of the fort itself. It was built by Shah AOSA AND THE TAJ. 299 Jehan, grandson of Akbar, and, like every thing in archi- tecture that he nndertook, was executed at immense ex- pense and in exquisite taste. This emperor celebrated his accession to the throne by a festival which, according to Khafi Khan, cost more than fifteen millions of rupees (a sum equal to $7,500,000) ; and although he expended hun- dreds of millions on costly structures and their adornment, and hundreds of millions more npon his army, he had in his treasury, when he died, more than $100,000,000 of coined money, besides a vast accumulation of the precious metals in bullion, jewels, and precious stones. The palace was laid out upon a scale of great magnifi- cence, designed alike for the entertainment as well as the luxurious living of its inmates. One of the court-yards was arranged in mosaic for a game resembling chess, in which the men, living persons, made the moves according to the order of the emperor and his guests, who were seat- ed in the fretted marble balconies above. The bath, a suite of marble rooms, was set with thousands of convex mirrors, which multiplied the artificial lights by myriads, making it a scene of splendor indescribable. The Motee 3Iusjid, or Pearl Mosque, standing near the Judgment Hall, is an exquisite specimen of architecture and of the sculptor's art, of the finest marble, the interior carved in flowers and vines, chaste and simple, but sur- passingly beautiful. It is not alone the Pearl Mosque ; it is the pearl of mosques, unequaled in purity and beauty by any similar structure. But all that we had seen in the forts of Akbar and the palace of Shah Jehan M^as eclipsed by another structure, the most sublime and beautiful that now stands upon the face of the earth. This, I believe, is the unqualified testi- mony of every one who has seen the Taj. About a mile to the south of the fort at Agra, upon the right bank of the River Jumna, lies a beautiful park, about a quarter of a mile square, planted with the choicest trees, and shrubs, and flowers of the East. More than eight}' 300 AMOUND THE WORLD. fountains, scattered along the avennes of this park, throw their jets into the air, which sparkles with the falling drops as with a shower of diamonds. It is surrounded by a high wall, and guarded by a magniiicent gateway, a building fifty or sixty feet in height, which, with any other surround- ings, would be studied and admired for its architectural grandeur, and the beauty of its carving and mosaic orna- mentation. Ko one would imagine it to be simply the portal to greater beauty and grandeur, but such it is. We enter beneath this majestic arch, and find ourselves within the park. A broad avenue, skirted with lofty cy- presses, acacias, and other Oriental trees, and tanks of aquatic plants and jets cFeau, reveals, at its extremity, an object which at once rivets the eye, and steals over the heart like a strain of delicious music, or like the melody of sublime poetry. It is the Taj, the peerless Taj, the mauso- leum erected by the Emperor Sliah Jehan as the tomb of his favorite begum, Noor Mahal, in which they now sleep side by side. She died before him in giving birth to a child, and it is stated that, as she felt her life ebbing away, she sent for the emperor, and told him she had only two requests to make : fii'st, that he would not take another wife and have children to contend with hers for his favor and dominions ; and, second, that he would build for her the tomb he had promised, to perpetuate her memory. The emperor summoned the medical counselors of the cit}' to do every thing that was in their power to save her life, but all in vain. Shah Jehan, who was devotedly attached to her, at once set about complying with her last request. The tomb was commenced immediately, and, according to Ta vernier, who saw its first and last stones laid, it was twentv-two vears in building, with twenty thousand men constantly occupied upon it. It cost, in actual expense, in addition to the forced labor of the men, more than three hundred lacs of rupees, or about fifteen millions of dollars. Such a build- ing, including the cost of materials, could scarcely be erect- AGE A AND THE TAJ. 301 od by paid labor at the present time, even in India, for $50,000,000. As this building is acknowledged by every traveler to be imrivaled, and the sight of it declared by many to be worth a journey round the w^orld, I will give a more minute de- scription of its situation and its prominent features. At the extremity of the beautiful park or Oriental garden of which I have spoken, on the river side rises a terrace of red sandstone twenty feet in height, and a thousand feet broad. The walls of the terrace on all sides are of hewn stone, and its surface is paved with the same material. At the extreme left of this terrace stands a magnificent mosque, an appendage to the main structure, the Taj. It is the place of prayer for the faithful, who come to visit the tomb of the favorite of the Mogul emperor. This building alone must have been very costly, but as it would destroy the symmetry of the grand mausoleum by occupying one side of the central building, the emperor had another mosque, a perfect counterpart, erected on the opposite extremity of the terrace, a thousand feet distant, of no use excepting as ajotvah, or answer to the first. The one is held as a sacred place ; the other, in the eyes of a Mohammedan, has noth- ing sacred about it; it is simply the complement of the first. On the lofty terrace of sandstone rises another terrace of pure white marble, its walls of cut stone laid as regular- ly as the courses of a marble building. This terrace is three hundred feet square. At each of its four corners there stands a circular marble minaret, about twenty-five feet in diameter, diminishing in size until at the height of a hundred and fifty feet it is crowned with an open cupo- la, commanding a magnificent view of the Taj with its sur- roundings, of the River Jumna, the city and fort of Agra, and of the adjacent country. I ascended to the top of one of these minarets, and had photographed upon my memory a view which I am sure no time can dim. In the centre of this marble terrace, equidistant from 302 AROUND THE WORLD. the four lofty and graceful minarets, stands the building which for more than two centuries has been the admira- tion of every eye that in all that period of time has rested on it. It is an octagon, or it might perhaps be more cor- rectly described as a square with each of the four corners slightly cut off, and is crowned witli a high swelling dome, having the gracefulness of outline which seems to have been an inspiration in the Mohammedan and Oriental styles of architecture. The building is one hundred and fifty feet in diameter; the crescent upon the summit of the dome nearly two hundred feet above the pavement. Tlie structure is built from foundation to topstone of the purest marble, so perfect in its preservation and so unspotted in its whiteness that it looks as if it might have been erected only yesterday. Standing upon its marble pedestal, it vies in purity with the clouds that are floating by. A cupola of the same material rests upon the roof on each side of the dome. The exterior of the building is carved in grace- ful designs, the front elaborately wrought, but in such per- fect taste as to fill the eye like a picture in colors. No de- scription will convey to the mind any idea of the effect of the engraving on the arched doorway. It is elaborate, but not florid, giving to the solid marble almost the lightness of a cloud. Indeed, the whole building, as you look upon it, seems to float in the air like an autumn cloud. Let us enter — but breathe softly and tread gently as you step within. It is the sleeping chamber of Noor Mahal, the cherished wife of the Mogul emperor, Shah Jehan, and here, beneath this magnificent dome, they lie side by side, each in a couch of almost transparent marble, set with pre- cious stones, and wrought exquisitely in tracery of vine and flowers. Nowhere else has human dust been laid away to slumber in such superb repose — so beautiful, so silent, so sacred, so sublime. In such perfect, exquisite taste is every thing within as well as without, that it is more like a creation than the work of man. The whole interior, which is lighted only from the lofty doorway, is open from AGBA AND THE TAJ. 303 wall to wall, and from the pavement to the summit of the dome, with the exception of a high marble screen standing abont twenty or thirty feet from the outer wall, and ex- tending entirely around the building. This is cut in open tracery, so as to resemble a curtain of lace rather than a screen of solid marble. One who has seen the veiled statue of a master artist can appreciate the deception, if decep- tion it can be called where none was intended. The sarcophagi containing the remains of the empress and of her faithful lover, the Mogul emperor, lie in the cr}^t below, which is reached by a marble stairway. That of the former has inscribed upon it, in the graceful Arabic characters, "Moontaj-i-Mahal,Ranoo Begum" (Ranoo Be- gum, the Ornament of the Palace), with the date of her death, 1631. The other has inwrought the name of the emperor, with the date of his death, 1666. To this day they are covered with fresh flowers, strewed by faithful hands, in recognition of the fidelity w- hich reared the struc- ture. Upon the main floor, directly over these marble slabs, and under the canopy of the open dome, stand the ceno- taphs, designed simply as the representatives of those be- low, but carved in tracery and set with gems in no osten- tatious or gaudy style, but so beautifully and tastefully that one lingers around them as he stands before some masterpiece of art, never satisfied with looking. Upon the cenotaph of the queen, amid wreaths of flowers, worked in gemmed mosaic, are passages from the Koran, in Araljic, one of wdiich reads, " Defend us from the tribe of unbe- lievers." This inscription was made by the Emperor Shah Jelian, who seemed to think no w^ords too sacred to be re- corded upon the tomb of one whom he loved so devotedly ; but his ovni son, Aurungzebe, who placed the marble in memory of his father, in accordance with Mohammedan custom regarded the words of the Koran as too holy to be engraved — the difference between conjugal and filial love. In the same devotion to his wife, Shah Jehan caused the 304 AROUND THE WOULD. Koran to be inscribed npou the interior of the Taj, in mo- saic of precious stones, jasper, lapis lazuli, heliotrope, chal- cedony, carnelian, etc. The whole of the Koran is said to be thus inwrought, and yet it has the appearance of a light and graceful vine running over the walls. With the sen- tences of the Koran, thus traced upon the marble in such costly material, are intei'spersed fruits, and flowers, and running vines, all of precious stones inlaid, designed to represent one of the bowers of Paradise in which the em- peror had laid the light of his life to sleep her last sleep. While we were standing beneath that loft}^ dome, the silence of the tomb reigning even over its exquisite beauty and grandeur, voices at my side commenced singing : "In the hour of pain and anguish, In the hour when death draws near, Sutter not our hearts to languish, Suff'er not our souls to fear. And when mortal life is ended, Bid us in thine arms to rest, 'Till, by angel bands attended, We awake among the blest." The singing ceased, but far up in that snow-white vault, as if among the fleecy clouds of heaven, an angel band caught up the strain, not as an ordinary echo of reflected sound, but as if prolonging the notes. It continued as long as the original song, and at length gradually died away, only as the song of angels would cease to be heard when they en- ter the portals of heaven. This echo is as marvelous and as celebrated as the Taj itself, and I know not in what building or in what part of the world another like it can be heard. All this description may seem to the reader simply ex- travagant, but not if the reader has ever looked upon the building described. Every one who has seen it will simply say that words are powerless to express the ideas which its sublimity and beauty inspire. I could only compare the emotions which it excited to those awakened by list- ening to exquisite music, and the building to some sub- AGSA AND THE TAJ. 3O5 lime poem, whose words transport the soul out of itself. The very first glimpse of the structure, as I entered the gateway a quarter of a mile distant, and looked down the long avenue of acacias and cypress, was overpowering, and I felt at every step as I drew nearer that I must withdraw- my gaze or be overcome. Often, as I stood within the Taj, its silent grandeur was equally overpowering. Moonlight is said to add greatly to the effect of the whole scene, giv- ing to the building the appearance of a cloud-castle built in air. According to the records, Shah Jehan had planned an- other structure precisely similar to this for his own tomb, on the opposite side of the Jumna, to be connected with it by a bridge, but he wisely concluded to sleep by the side of his beloved begum. As we left the Taj and lingered in the park, we found it vocal with the song of birds. Kichly-colored paroquets made their homes alono; the cornices of the surrounding buildings and upon the gateway, and, by a singular though somewhat sentimental coincidence, the only turtle-doves that I saw or heard in India were two mates that sighed their melancholy notes upon the evening air as a requiem over Shah Jehan and his beloved Xoor Mahal. On Christmas morning we rode out several miles from Agra to Secundra, a station of the English Church Mission- ary Society known as "the Christian Village." "We heard, long before reaching it, the sound of the church-going bell, a strange sound in a heathen land. This missionary sta- tion, which comprises a considerable communit}^, has been organized on the principle of separating the native Chris- tians from their ordinary associates in order to protect them from the evil influences by which they are surround- ed among their own people, and also to give to the natives at large an illustration of the influence of the Gospel of Christ upon a community, important ends to be accom- plished, but only at the expense of losing the leavening and aggressive power of religion working through the relations U 306 AROUND THE WORLD. of society. It has too much of the community principle about it to commend it to general adoption. But in this case a great and beneficent work has been done, and this Christian community has become a light in the land. Be- fore we reached the place the congregation had assembled at the neat English churcli, whither we at once directed our steps, and where an interesting and impressive sight greeted our eyes and moved our hearts. The building, which w^as well filled, had no benches, the whole congrega- tion, according to Oriental custom, being seated upon the fioor, each one clothed in pure white, the women and girls with their long muslin garments drawn over their heads as veils. All devoutly engaged in the service, joining in the responses, and in prayer bowing their foreheads to the pave- ment. The services were conducted in the Hindustani tongue, and were unintelligible to us, but before us was a congregation of people who had been called out of the grossest idolatry, now devoutly engaged in celebrating the birth of the Saviour of the world, joining with Christians of all lands in the song of the heavenly host, " Glory to God in the highest, and on earth peace, good will toward men." As I looked upon them in their devotions, the vision of the Apostle John in the Isle of Patmos came up before me, and I seemed to hear the inquiry, " What are these which are arrayed in white robes, and whence came they ?" and then the response, " These are they which came out of great tribulation, and have washed their robes and made them white in the blood of the Lamb." Tliis was one of nu- merous scenes witnessed in India, which sliow that the Gos- pel of Christ, througli the power of the divine Spirit, is making its conquests and giving promise of a day when it shall completely triumph over idolatry and superstition. The tomb of Akbar, one of the Mogul emperors, stands near Secundra, in the midst of a quadrangular court a quar- ter of a mile square. A heavy wall suri'ounds the square, making the inclosure a fortress. The mausoleum in which lie the remahis of the great emperor is tliree hundred feet AORA AND THE TAJ. 397 square, and vies in raagniiieence, though not in beauty, with the Taj, rising to the height of a hundred feet in five ter- races, with cloisters, galleries, domes, and cupolas elaborate- ly wrought. The roof of the highest elevation is fiat, one hundred feet square. In the centre stands a cenotaph of pure marble, elaborately carved with the I^ow Nubbey Nmn^ the ninety -nine names of God, from the Koran. It is covered with a cupola, not for the protection of the ceno- taph, but to guard the names of God from the storm. The roof is surrounded by a lattice of carved marble, and at each corner is a beautiful marble cupola, light and grace- ful. The sarcophagus wdiich contains the dust of the em- peror, on the ground floor, is reached by a descending pas- sage similar to that of the great pyramid of Egypt. The whole structure is almost as massive as the pyramids. Akbar was the most powerful sovereign of his da}^, and a man of independent if not enlightened views. He open- ed the places of honor and responsibility to all races and all religions, and by his liberal and tolerant policy secured to a greater extent than most Oriental monarchs the affections of his people. His sons having all died in infancy, he made a pilgrimage to the shrine of a celebrated saint at Ajmere to sue for an heir. He w^cnt with his wliole family on foot a distance of three hundred and fifty miles, at the rate of four miles a day. Walls of cloth were put up on each side of the road, and carpets spread for the royal pilgrims the entire distance. On reaching the shrine, he was referred to another saint still living at Secree, where he was prom- ised an heir that should live to a good old age. The em- press afterward gave birth to a son, who became the re- nowned Jehangeer. Akbar then took up his residence at Futtehpore Secree, about twenty miles from Agra, where he founded a summer capital, covering the hills with mag- nificent buildings, the very ruins of which are among the most impressive testimonies to the grandeur of the Mogul court. When he died, the treasures that he had heaped to- gether — coin, jewels, plate, brocades, etc. — were estimated 308 AROUND THE WORLD. at seven Inmdred inillions of rupees (about $350,000,000). His crown, studded with jewels, was valued at twenty mill- ions of rupees. One of the historians of India thus de- scribes the splendor of his reign : " The greatest displays of Akbar's grandeur were at the vernal equinox and on his birthday. They lasted for several days, during which there was a general fair, and many pro- cessions and other pompous shows. The emperor's usual place was in a rich tent, in the midst of awnings to keep off the sun. At least two acres were thus spi-ead with silk and gold, carpets and hangings, as rich as velvet embroidered with gold, pearls, and precious stones could make them. The nobility had similar pavilions, where they received visits from each other, and sometimes from the emperor. Dresses, jewels, horses, and elephants were bestowed upon the nobles. The emperor was weighed in golden scales against gold, silver, perfumes, and other substances in succession, which were dis- tributed among the spectators. Almonds and other fruits of gold and silver were scattered by tlie emperor's own hand, and eagerly caught by the courtiers. On the great day of each festival the emperor was seated on his throne in a noble palace, surrounded by his nobles, wearing high heron-plumes, and sparkling with diamonds like the firmament. Many hun- dred elephants passed before him in' companies, all most rich- ly adorned, and the leading elephant of each company with gold plates on his head and breast set with rubies and eme- ralds. Trains of caparisoned horses followed, and after them rhinoceroses, lions, tigers, panthers, hunting leopai'ds, hounds, and hawks, the whole concluding with an innumerable host of cavalry glittering with cloth of gold." Intending to leave for Delhi in the afternoon, we short- ened our stay at the tomb of Akbar, and hastened back to- ward Agra. But, alas for human calculations in Oriental lands ! our horses were factors or tractors in the calcula- tion which we had not taken fully into the account. One of the miserable beasts gave out, and, after walking about two miles, we impressed an eJcka, one of the rough carts of the country, and so reached our hotel. Here a new mis- fortune awaited us, revealing visions of the Black Hole of Calcutta, or some idle prison, not at all agreeable to our fancy in that land of the Moguls and the Hindoos. AGRA AND THE TAJ. 3()9 Hav-ing hastily arranged our baggage, our bills duly paid (with the usual necessary abatements), our luggage all upon the gharries, we stepped in and gave the order to start, on w'hich I settled back into my seat in the vain ex- pectation that it would be obeyed. Again I looked out and repeated the order, using the strongest Hindustani words that I could command, but it was of no avail. Step- ping out to see what was the matter, I was confronted by a native policeman, whose orders had been more forcible than my own, and I at length learned that the w^hole party were under arrest for stealing one of the four sheets that we had been able to muster on the day of our arrival. Of course we were very indignant, but police officers the world over seem to have a common understanding not to regard indignant looks and high words as conclusive proof of in- nocence, and our warm expressions were received with great coldness. I had once, in a strange city in my own country, been arrested for passing counterfeit money, but then I was near enough to my own friends to communi- cate with them, and establish my innocence. Now we were ten thousand miles away from those who would cer- tify to our previous good character in regard to thieving, and the circumstantial evidence was decidedly against us. When our party of seven arrived at the hotel, there were four sheets distributed among us as the extent of the ac- commodations of the first hotel in Agra. As we were about to depart, only three sheets could be found, and what sup- position was more reasonable, wliat proof could be more positive than this, that we had stolen the fourth, and that it had been secreted somewhere in our baggage. Of course it was not to be thou2-ht of for a moment that one of the dozen Hindoo servants, or one of the traveling merchants or mendicants who had been coming and going through the bungalow all the day long, had taken it. We were the culprits beyond all question, and must submit to an exami- nation. Cooling dowm in a measure, we ordered the trunks to be taken from the ofharries, and full search to be made : 310 ABOUND THE WOULD. but, wiien we consented to have it done, tliey did not wish to do it, like the Frenchman who, in a financial panic, made haste to draw out all his deposits from the bank, but when he found the teller ready to hand it over, he declined to take the money ; he wanted it only in case the bank was not willing to pay. The next order of the police was to have the ladies' satchels searched. By this time matters grew somewhat serious, and we made inquisition for the host, Mr. Beaumont, who had not appeared on the scene, whether privy to it or not. To him we could talk in round English, and we improved the opportunity. He became our bail, notwithstanding we gave him the assurance that after such treatment we certainly should not stop at his ho- tel the next time we came to India. The whole affair was undoubtedly a ruse on the part of the servants, who had secreted the sheet, thinking they could extort money from us, in payment for the loss, by calling in the police to ar- rest us. After the affair was all over, there came an ap- prehension on our part that, as the sheets had been folded in the morning in anticipation of our departure, one of them might possibly have been packed unnoticed with our baggage. We reached the cars in season, and at midnight, by moonlight, crossed the lofty iron bridge over the Jumna at Delhi, and entered the renowned capital of the Mogul emperors, more than a thousand miles from Calcutta. We made deliberate inquisition, but not a trace of the missing sheet which had occasioned our arrest at Agra was found, and we had the proud satisfaction of feeling that we had not only escaped the prisons of Agra, but were guiltless of the felony. DELHI. <^W XXII. DELHI. The vicinity of Delhi is a field in which the antiquarian may revel in endless delight. Within a circle of less than twenty miles, one dynasty after another has established its capital and ruled in splendor, and then passed away, leav- ing the field to the conqueror, who, instead of occupying the same site, has founded a new city, and left the old to crumble into ruins. In this way numerous cities have been scattered over the plain, the monuments of some remaining to this day, while the very history of others has been lost. One monument, the loftiest single column in the world, stands about ten miles from Delhi, in the midst of magnifi- cent ruins, of which there is no satisfactory account in the records of India. Old Delhi, as it is called, the last forsa- ken site, is in greater perfection ; the walls remain, and much of the city is yet standing, but its halls are deserted ; vagabonds and beasts of prey share its hospitality alike. But if the region is a field for the antiquarian, the present city, for a long period the capital of the Mogul empire, is the home of fancy and the field for romance. Delhi was founded by Shah Jehan about two centuries and a half ago. When his golden sun arose he determined to mark the day by erecting a monumental city. Leaving Agra, which had been built chiefly by his grandfather, the renowned Akbar, altliough greatly beautified by himself, he came to Delhi and laid the foundations of the gorgeous capital. It is inclosed by a wall of granite five and a half miles in circuit, and is entered by twelve strongly fortified gates — the Calcutta, the Cashmere, the Lahore, etc. One of these, the scene of an heroic and successful assault by 312 AROUND THE WORLD. the English during tlie mutiny of 1857, like the fort and the city itself, has a modern tragic history of the deepest interest. One principal street, the Chandnee Chowk, 120 feet wide, divides the town, and is daily the scene of more strictly Asiatic display than any other street in India. It is alike the Boulevard and the Broadway of Delhi. On either side are shops and wareliouses of the wealthy mer- chants ; the centre is a broad terrace or promenade, shaded with acacias and other ornamental trees. During the day the Chandnee Chowk is a busy mart of trade, but toward evening the loaded trains of camels and other beasts of bur- den disappear, tlie hum of business dies away, and a scene of Oriental leisure and display ensues. The promenade is thronged w^ith persons in all the varied costumes of the in- terior of Asia, while richly-caparisoned Arabian horses, ele- phants with gayly-dressed riders, and not a few English car- riages belonging to natives, pass up and down the broad street. Other parts of the city are equally curious in their way. The grain markets are one of tlie sights. Camels and buffaloes, with their heavy freights, come and go like ships entering and leaving port, and a noisy multitude, scarcely less bewildering and far more entertaining than the crowd of a Western produce exchange, almost fascinate a stranger. The people of the city at all hours of the day, but still more toward evening, may be seen at home on the flat roofs of their houses, apparently unnoticed by and im- noticing their nearest neighbors. One feels, in treading the streets of Delhi, that he has reached the heart of Asia, and every thing is so intimately associated with the old Mogul dynasty that its ancient scenes of barbaric splendor are continually rising up before him. The fortress, built by Shah Jehan for a palace, extends nearly a mile along the river, and is protected on all sides by a strong wall forty feet in height, flanked with bastions and turrets. The main gateway, the Lahore, is a tower of great strength. Entering through the archway, whicli once was richly ornamented with flowers in mosaic and with in- DELHI. 313 scriptions from the Koran, and passing into the grand court, we came to the Diwan-a-im, the hall where the emperor gave free andience to all who had any petition or cause to present. It is an immense canopy, supported by pillars of stone, with an elevated throne on one side, the wall inlaid with mosaics of precious stones representing flowers and fruits, birds and beasts. The Dhoan-i-Mas, or hall of pri- vate audience, is smaller, but it is a gem of beauty. It is an open marble pavilion, resting on massive pillars and Mo- resque arches, the marble highly polished, and having almost the transparency of alabaster. The marble balustrade is exquisitely carved in elaborate perforated work. At each corner of the roof stands a marble kiosk with a gilded dome ; the ceiling was once composed of gold and silver filigree work, for which the goldsmiths of Delhi are celebrated to the present day. One side of the Diwan-i-khas opens on the court by which we entered, and commands a x\e\v of the whole interior of the fortress ; another looks out upon the palace gardens, which are still kept in great beauty ; a third affords a charming view of the Eiver Jumna, while the fourth, which is closed, rests upon the walls of the royal zenana. On the side that is closed once stood the famous " Peacock Throne," the admiration, if not the envy, of the world in the days when the Mogul dynasty was at the ze- nith of its splendor. It is thus described : " The throne was six feet long and four feet broad, com- posed of solid gold inlaid with precious gems. It was sur- mounted by a gold canopy, supported on twelve pillars of the same material. Around the canopy hung a fringe of pearls; on each side of the throne stood two chattahs, or umbrellas, symbols of royalty, formed of crimson velvet richly embroid- ered with gold thread and pearls, and with handles of solid gold, eight feet long, studded with diamonds. The back of the throne was a representation of the expanded tail of a pea- cock, the natural colors of which were imitated by sapphires, rubies, emeralds, and other brilliant gems. Its value was es- timated by Tavernier, a French jeweler, who saw it in its per- fection, at six millions of pounds sterling, or thirty millions of dollars." 314 AROUND THE WORLD. This famous Peacock Throne was taken away by the Per- sian conqueror, Nadir Shah, who not only stripped the pal- ace, but signalized his conquest and the subjugation of the Mogul capital by ordering the slaughter of a hundred thou- sand of its helpless inhabitants, men, w^omen, and children. He sat with the conquered emperor in the Diwan-i-hhas, sipping his coffee, while the dead were piled in the streets. As we trod this marble hall, once the scene of imperial splendor, memory and fancy bringing up the contrasts of grandeur and cruelty, glory and humiliation which had here been witnessed, and as we thought of the many changes which had come over the face of things since Shah Jehan sat upon his throne of brilliants, we could only look in sad- ness upon the delusive inscription which the emperor had engraved in the beautiful Arabic characters upon the mar- ble walls : " If there be a paradise on the face of the earth, it is this — it is this — it is this." Only a portion of the adjoining seraglio remains, but the Htimmaums, or royal baths, rooms of the purest white marble, with inlaid borders, marble floors and tanks, and a fountain in tlie centre of each room, have a richness and exquisite beauty that is almost inconceivable in connection with such simplicity of material. The 3£otee Ifusjid, or Pearl Mosque, a miniature of the Pearl Mosque at Agra, is a pearl itself, built exclusively of wdiite marble, and giving one an idea of purity such as no other material suggests. The Jumina Musjid, accounted the grandest mosque in the East, stands upon an eminence in another part of the city. Its paved court, 450 feet square, having in the cen- tre a large marble reservoir of water, is skirted on three sides by a colonnade of red sandstone, with a marble pa- vilion at each corner. The building is very imposing, and, with the lofty minarets, forms one of the most striking ob- jects in the city, whether seen from a distance or near at hand. The view from its summit, taking in the city and fort, the river and a vast extent of the surrounding coun- try, is sublime. Long did I linger upon it to study the DELHI. 315 Strange map which lay before me, and to ponder over the history of strange events which had been written on it by the hand of time through more than a score of centuries. We devoted one day to the Kootuh-Minar, eleven miles from Delhi, and to the intervening monuments and ruins which are thickly scattered over the plain in all directions. The Kootub-Minar is a fluted colunm 240 feet in height, more than 100 feet in circumference at the base, and grad- ually diminishing to forty feet at the summit. It is di- vided into five stories by projecting balconies, which sur- round the tower and add greatly to its beauty. There are many curious but evidently designed coincidences in its construction. The lowest and upper stories make precise- ly half the height; the lower story is just twice the diame- ter, and the whole column is five diameters in height. For what purpose the column was erected is a problem which the antiquarians of India have not solved, but their solu- tion is not at all essential to the admiration of a structure which is pronounced the finest of its kind. There it stands, in the midst of the ruins of an almost forgotten city, tow- ering up toward the heavens in solitary grandeur. One is fascinated as he follows up its beautifully fluted sides un- til the lines mingle at the summit, and as he gazes its pro- portions swell and rise, and his thoughts become lost in the clouds. I have a sort of passion for climbing heights, and could not resist the impulse to travel up the spiral stair- case to the top (there were only three hundred and seventy- tive steps), to look out from this elevation upon the ruined cities and magnificent mausoleums, and upon the city of Delhi in the distance. The view was many times worth the climb. At the foot of the Mhmr are the carved fragments of the Musjid-i-Kootiib-ul- Islam, which was erected as the grand mosque of old Delhi. It was constructed by the Mohammedan conqueror from the spoils of twenty-seven Hindoo temples at the close of the twelfth century. Some of the arches and pillars are exquisitely sculptured. Among 316 AROUND THE WORLD. tliein stands an enigma in the shape of an iron pillar five feet in circumference and fifty feet in length, cast in a sin- gle shaft. It stands erect, the base by actual investigation liaving been found nearly thirty feet below the surface of the ground. It has stood there more than a thousand years, but when, by whom, or for what purpose it was erect- ed is unknown. It furnishes solid testimony, to the weight of fifteen or twenty tons, that heavy castings are not among the modern achievements of art. In all parts of the world there is only a step between the sublime and the ridiculous, and no one must expect to find it widened in Oriental lauds. It is rarely that we make the attempt to look through magnificent structures and imposing ruins into the regions of the past, without be- ing called back to the present by some plaintive cry for charity, or a repulsive demand for backsheesh from the pretended lords of these crumbling heaps of stone. On this occasion, after we had descended from the Minar, we were summoned to witness a feat which every traveler must witness, and for which every one must pay. "We were taken to an immense well, eighty -five feet in deptli and about fifty in diameter. A half dozen nearly naked natives stood upon the wall around the edge, waiting for the nod that seals a contract to pay them for the exploit. We nodded, and at once they sprang with outstretched arms and legs, kept in this position until witliin about twenty -five feet of the bottom, when they suddenly straight- ened themselves, plunging feet foremost into the water, and soon reappeared, swinnning on its surface. They speedily reached the top by an underground passage and demanded their pay, and would not have been satisfied if we had given them ten times the usual amount. But it is their only means of support, and they have followed plunging into the same well from their childhood, and their fathers before them for many generations, and perhaps for centu- ries. I shall not attempt to describe the wilderness of ruined DELHI. 317 cities, of magnificent tombs and mosques that lie between Delhi and the Kootub-Minar ; nor the ruins of the grand Astronomical Observatory of Jay Singh, the scientific Ra- jah of Jeypore, who erected the complete observatory at Benares. It is on the same grand scale on which these wealthy nabobs and emperors wrought all their works. The dimensions of the gnomon of the equatorial dial as it now stands give an idea of its extent, the hypothenuse be- ing 118 feet, and the perpendicular 56 feet. The English government has done much since the mu- tiny for the improvement of Delhi. The Queen's Gar- dens, in the midst of the town, are laid out with great taste, and carefully cultivated. A collection of li\'ing ani- mals and birds, and other specimens in natural history, adds to the attractions of the park. A large ornamental building for public and scientific uses has been erected on the Chandnee Chowk, called the Institute. In its large municipal hall we had the pleasure of meeting several of the native princes. For these improvements the Mogul capital is under many obligations to the Rev. James Smith, an English Baptist missionary, who has also held a commis- sion under the government for promoting the scientific ad- vancement of the native population. A costly memorial church has been erected to commemorate those who fell in the terrible mutiny, which burst upon this city with ter- rific force at its very beginning. The revolt commenced at Meerut, forty miles distant, and after the massacre of Europeans, men, women, and children, at that place, the Se- poys set out in a body for Delhi, where the native troops joined them, and commenced the slaughter of their offi- cers. The magazine, which contained an eiiormous supply of guns, powder, and warlike stores, was in charge of Lieu- tenant Willoughby. Seeing the state of affairs, he closed and barricaded the gates,, and then, laying a train of gun- powder, prepared to blow up the arsenal should resistance prove unavailing. Nine Europeans kept thousands of Se- poys at bay until at length they were exhausted and like- 318 AROUND THE WORLD. ly to be overpowered, wlien the match was applied, and more tlian a thousand mutineers were blown into the air. All the Europeans in the city who had not made their escape on the appearance of the Sepoys were massacred. The English families were tied in rows, and shot and sa- bred without mercy. The assassinations were accompanied by horrid atrocities. Others, who escaped — tender women and helpless children — wandered for days under the burn- ing sun, lying down at nights in the jungle. Delhi fell completely into the hands of the mutineers, but its recap- tm'e was one of the most heroic achievements of the recov- ery of British power in India. While at Delhi I had occasion to send homeAvard letters of some importance, and not being disposed to trust them to the uncertainties of the nati\'e servants at the hotel, I determined to deposit them with my own hands in the post. It afforded a new occasion for admiration of an in- stitution the marvels of which seem to be forgotten in the newer and greater marvel of the telegraph. I never cease to wonder at the thought that one can go into almost any remote corner of the earth, and write his thoughts on a slip of paper, and drop it into a little box, even in the dead of night, when every one else is asleep, and that with all the speed of steam the identical slip of paper will travel over land and sea, and search out the friend to whom it is addressed, no matter in what other corner of the earth he may dwell, and deliver the certified message. AVith the telegraph different and even remote countries are act- uallv bound too-ether, and althoufrh thousands of miles in- tervene, you may, by means of a wire, hold by the button the one to whom you are speaking. The wire is an abso- lute link. But the postal service depends upon detached messengers, who must traverse sea and land, and seldom do they fail to execute their commission. I do not know that I have ever failed to receive a letter out of the num- bers that have been addressed to me in all foreign parts, or that any one that I have sent has failed to reach its des- DELHI. 319 tination. Some of the former have been great travelers. Several that were addressed to me from home while I was in India, through the sagacity of Xew York clerks were sent by the way of China, and arrived in the north of In- dia after I had left the country ; but they traveled on, hoping to reach me at Cairo, where they made another halt and search, and then came on to Constantinople, where they overtook me precisely five months after they had started upon their travels. Inquiring at the hotel at Delhi the way to the post-of- fice, I was told it was a short distance beyond the fort. I traveled onward and onward until I almost despaired of reaching the place. At length, after various inquiries of natives of all Oriental regions, made chiefly by holding up my letters, I was directed to a back alley, which I found led to an old temple, or mosque, or something of the sort, and this was the Delhi post-office. A Eurasian who spoke English was in charge, and seemed to be the only living being within the premises. At the window I asked for stamps, and was directed to a sleepy Mohammedan who was lying on the pavement outside, and who was any thing but a promising looking dealer in government securities. When I made known what I wanted, he drew from the folds of his loose garment a muslin bag, from which he produced the requisite amount of stamps, as suspicious in appearance as the dealer himself, but I paid for them, and, affixing them to the letters, again presented them at the window. Tlie Eurasian advised me to cancel them my- self, adding that if I did not some one in the office might remove them from the letters and sell them again. Tlieir appearance indicated that they had gone through this op- eration several times already. It was a new idea to me, that of canceling my own stamps befoi*e mailing my letters, but I complied, and then dropped them into the box, having little faith in their ever seeing America. I learned after- ward that they were all received in due time, and in good condition, and I have now more faith than ever in inter- 320 AROUND THE WORLD. national posts. This is rather a long story about what some may think a small matter, but those who have been 10,000 miles or more from home do not esteem it a small matter that by international arrangement they may hold direct and free communication with those they have left behind, and the motto wliich I have elsewhere recorded as found graven over the arch of the post-office at Hong Kong will recur as among the expressive sentiments of inspired wisdom : " As cold waters to a thirsty soul, so is good news from a far country." XXIII. AMONG THE HIMALAYAS. At Delhi we were more than a thousand miles from Cal- cutta, but we had not yet reached the northern limit of our journeying in Hindostan. We were bound for the Hima- layas, and in some doubt whether to return by the route we had taken, or to go up to the Indus, make our way to the sea by that river, and so down to Bombay. The weather having become sufficiently cool to travel with comfort by day, we took the cars at 11 o'clock. In the afternoon we passed Meerut, an important military station, and memora- ble as the scene of the first outbreak of the mutiny. Just at evening we reached Saharunpnr, where we left the rail to make an excursion of a few days among the Himalaya Mountains. This town is pleasantly situated on the great plain of India. It was one of the earliest sta- tions of the American Presbyterian Mission, and is occupied by the Rev. Mr. Calderwood, who met us at the cars, and who, with his family, made our short sojourn one of great pleasure. An interesting incident connected with our visit was the close of the examination of the mission school, and I regarded it as a peculiar pleasure to be invited to distrib- AMONG THE HUIALA YAS. 321 ute the prizes to a large number of native youth, two of whom bore the famihar names of Alexander McLeod and James T. Wylie. Saharunpur is a military station, and is the location of the government stud. The horses of the country are mis- erable specimens of their race, and it became a matter of necessity to the military service to establisli on a large scale a depot where they could be reared from better stock and for hardy service. The stalls were nqt full, but we found nearly two thousand horses occupying quarters al- most fit for the officers of an army, and altogether superior to the cantonments w^hich soldiers often consider very de- sirable. The horses, when old enough for service, are found to have cost the government from one to two thousand rupees each, and those of Arabian blood from two to five thousand rupees. Some of the Arabians were splendid an- imals. We soon had an opportunity to contrast them with the natives of the country bred in the usual way. Having made arrangements to cross the Sewalic range of the Himalayas from this point, we left Saharunpuf in the morning in what the natives called an omnihucJi'us, but it bore in plain English on one of the panels the following notice : " Omnibus No. 1, Gunquaram, Head oflice Meerut, LicensedatSeharunpur, 10 June 1S69, tocarry 5 passengers, with 62 lbs luggage, Drawnbytwohorses." The two horses were comparatively decent animals, and we congratulated ourselves that if we had not found real Arabian steeds, we had at least fallen upon tolerable specimens of the Indian race. But we learned to our sorrow that they were intend- ed only for show, designed to entrap unwary travelers by making a good appearance on leaving town, on the princi- ple upon which strictly honest fruit-dealers inevitably place the finest specimens at the top of the basket. The road, on starting, was as level as a railway track, well metaled, and shaded on either side with bamboo, cassia, and other trees. With our gallant steeds we were promising ourselves a tri- umphant passage over the mountains, but. just as we were X 322 AROUND THE WORLD. in the full tide of expectation, only three or four miles out of town, we suddenly hauled up at a post-station, and two miserable rats were put into the carriage. The word of command was given, and the whip duly applied, but the more the persuasive arguments were used, the more they would not start, excepting backward. One of them insisted again and again on putting his heels into the front of the omnibuckus, and the other persisted in attempting to stand erect on his hind heels. And these were a fair type of the horses that we took in at every station on the way, except- ing that some of them were even worse. The East India Company built one of its finest roads over this pass, in order to reach the Dehra Yalley and ascend the mountains to the summer resorts of Mussoorie and Landour. It is as skillfully engineered and as sub- stantially built as the roads over the passes of the Alps, and decidedly smoother. The summit is pierced by a tun- nel reducing the extreme elevation. Long before reaching the summit, and when we were approaching the more diffi- cult and dangerous parts of the pass, the horses were de- tached, and sixteen coolies took the carriage in charge, and drew us over and down the descent on the other side, a distance of eight or ten miles. We were accustomed to being carried by coolies in sedan chairs in Japan and China as well as in India, but not to using them as horses, and, had there been any other way of crossing the mountains, we should have demurred ; but there was no other (I had the offer of elephants on the return), and then these coolies have no other means of making a living. It is the business which they and their fathers have followed. They would lose caste, and lose all means of a livelihood if they should attempt any thing else, so that to employ them was a mer- cy and not a degradation. Besides, we remembered that when some distinguished dancer or singer visits the me- tropolis of our own country, or any of the gay capitals of Europe, it is not uncommon for young gentlemen of the highest breeding to aspire to the level of beasts of burden. AMONG THE HIMALAYAS. 323 and, taking the horses from the carriage of the danseuse or cantatrice, to harness themselves like donkey's and drag her to her hotel. With these precedents in mind, we quieted our scruples in regard to being drawn by coolies over the Himalaya Mountains. In going through the pass we came upon a splendid, full-grown leopard that had just been caught in a trap, and were in the region of wild beasts of all kinds. A gentle- man whom we met had seen, not long before, a huge wild elephant cross the highway on which we were traveling, and, in ascending the second range of the mountains the following day, we frequently saw around us the fresh tracks of leopards in the snow. India, considering the density of its population, is marvelously infested with wild beasts, and not merely in the mountainous regions, but in the jungles of the plain. The government has made great efforts to exterminate them, but without any apparent im- pression upon their numbers. One reason for this want of success is that the natives regard the wild beasts — man-eat- ing tigers in particular — as divinities, whose wrath it is more safe to appease than to arouse, and accordingly they will not hunt or kill them even when exposed to their rav- ages.* Tiger-hunting is still a favorite sport in many parts of India, and it is not uncommon for an ordinary party to bag half a dozen tigers in a single excursion. At Calcutta I met an American gentleman who had shot five the sum- mer previous. Since leaving India, I have received from Dr. Fayrer, of * "In the Chanda district, one of these man-eaters killed, in a short time, 127 persons, and stopped all traffic for many weeks on the road. Another slew 1 50 people in three years, causing the abandonment of the villages, and throwing 250 square miles out of cultivation. During six years, in Bengal proper, 13,401 deaths were reported by wild beasts, of which 4218 were ascribed to tigers, 4287 to wolves, 1407 to leopards, and 105 to bears; the rest to other animals. The British government, on the oth?r hand, paid in the same time $32,500 in rewards to secure the destraction of 18,196 wild animals. As much as $500 has been offered for the head of a man-eating tiger." — Indian Mail. 324 AROUND THE WORLD. Calcutta, who accompanied the Duke of Edmburg (Prince Alfred of England) on his tour in the north of India, the following account of a tiger -hunt with elephants in the vicinity of Lucknow : '■'■February 23(7. The camp is situated just on the river bank, and the exact spot is known as Kullean Ghaut. The narrow stream divides the British territory from that of Ne- paid, the tract of country on the opposite side having been given over to the Nepalese since the mutiny. It contains the finest forest land in India. The gift was probably more valuable than it was at the time supposed to be. The royal standard of Britain is hoisted on one side, while that of the prime minister, the virtual ruler of Nepaul, is on the other. The Mohan abounds with alligators and gurrials. Ou the 22d one of Sir Jung's men was carried ofi' and eaten by an alligator when bathing in the river. "Fourteen years ago this used to be a splendid hunting- ground. It is said to be so still, notwithstanding the en- croachments of civilization and cultivation. A tiger has al- ready been heard of, and after breakfast he is to be sought for. Sir Jung Bahadoor is to cross the river to meet H. R. H. in British territory after breakfast, and will accompany him throughout the day. The weather is getting warm, fleecy clouds obscure the sun, but diifuse rather than intercept its rays. Sir Jung's camp resounds with barbaric music. "After breakfast the Nepalese minister crossed the river on a bridge thrown over for .the occasion, and rode up to H. R. H.'s camp. He was preceded by his body-guard and a band of music. H. R. H. and suite received Sir Jung, with Colonel LaAvrence, the political agent, Colonel Thomson, the commissioner of Seetapoi'e, Captain Young, settlement ofii- cer, and eight of his principal sirdars, nearly all colonels, who were presented to the duke. The maharajah, who is a slight, active, and wiry-looking man of about fifty-three, with fair Mongolian features, was dressed in a military uniform, and was decorated with the Grand Cross of the Bath. His head- dress was made of the most costly jewels, said to be worth about £15,000. The visit lasted only a few minutes, and shortly after H. R. H. got into the howdah, and, crossing the river, was joined by the Maharajah Sir Jung Bahadoor in a plain blue cotton shooting-dress, with a broad sola hat, and the Maharajah Sir Digbija Singh, G.C. S.I.,of Bulrampore, in a dress very like it, only colored green. The combined party, AMOXG THE HIMALAYAS. ■ 325 with a line of above four hundred elepliants — one hundred and thirty belonging to H. K. H.'s camp — proceeded in the direc- tion of an extensive grass and tree jungle, where the tiger had been marked down, and where, during the last few days, he had killed several buflaloes. On the way some small game was shot, but on approaching the vicinity of the tiger's abode all firing ceased, and arrangements were made by Sir Jung for surrounding the brute. After beating in a long line through a belt of sal forest, skirting the long grass, the line was gradu- ally formed into a circle, and the elephants were brought so close as to touch each other. It certainly was a magnificent sight, and one seldom witnessed. They were all thoroughly trained and stanch, as the result proved when the tigi;r tried in vain to break the line, or rather circle. The incloiure be- ing complete, H. R. H. on the same howdah, a large square one, \x\t\\ Sir Jung Bahadoor, went into the circle, and the tiger soon revealed himself, although the grass was as high as the howdah, with occasional vacant places. He was fired at by the duke alone, as all the rest of the party were re- quested not to fire unless the tiger got on any elephant's head. H. R. H. wounded him severely, and he made sev- eral charges round the line, but the elephants stood firm, and he could not get out, though he tried hard to break through. He fell at about the third shot from the duke's rifle, and then the whole circle closed in on him. He was soon padded, and proved to be a fine male tiger ten feet one inch in length, and very heavy. " It was a most exciting scene ; the wildness of the place, the magnificent line of elephants, and the steadiness with which they and their mahouts carried out the orders of the maharajah, were remarkable, and all were much pleased, none more so than H. R. H., with the sport ; though perhaps, in a strictly sporting sense, the tiger may be considered to have been rather hardly used. The Nepalese elephants are well trained, and are so frequently employed by Sir Jung in tiger- shooting and elephant-hunting that they can not be surpass- ed. They are worked in line by the bugle calls, and are taught to go at a pace that no other elephants can equal. The maharajah is a great sportsman, and spends a considera- ble part of each year in the Terai. After padding the tiger the party moved on the line, and general shooting com- menced. The party returned to camp in the evening, after an excellent day's sport on the banks of the Mohan with a bag of about twenty deer, one tiger, and a quantity of partridges, hares, pea, and jungle fowl. In returning to 326 AROUND THE WORLD. camp just before dark an accident occurred, which was at- tended with very serious consequences to a mahout, and in which two persons in the howdah had a very narrow escape. An old but very famous elephant made a false step, and, be- ing weak, fell over against a tree and crushed the howdah. The native gentlemen jumped out, while the mahout, an old man who, at the time, was not on the elephant's neck, but was trying to drag the howdah over to one side, as it had become crooked, was crushed between the howdah and the tree, and sustained a very serious injury to the left hand. The wound was temporarily dressed, and he was taken into camp, where it was found necessary to amputate part of the hand. But for this unfortunate accident the day had been a most st.ccessful one. The weather was fine, a moderate breeze tempered the heat, and the wild scenery of the for- ests, the grassy plains on the banks of the river, which are themselves very picturesque, with the ever-varying interest of the working of the magnificent line of elephants, made up a scene that has seldom been equaled. '■'■February 2ith. Before leaving camp this morning a cam- el-man of the maharajah's was brought in with a rather se- vere wound in the left thigh, just above the knee. He was wading across the Mohan, which there was not up to his hips, when he was suddenly seized by a large gurrial, and dragged down. Some Sepoys who were close at hand rush- ed to the rescue, and one of them so severely wounded the great lizard that it let go and tried to make its escape ; he followed, thrusting his bayonet into it, and having fired all his (six) cartridges, he clubbed his musket and belabored it until the stock was broken. The brute by this time was so far hors de combat that it turned over as though dead, and was dragged on shore, and brought into camp with the man it had bitten. Fortunately the grip had not been very firm, and a portion of integument only, about five inches in cir- cumference, had been torn away, leaving a painful and tedi- ous, though not a dangerous wound. The gurrial was an enormous brute over sixteen feet in length. He was opened, and his stomach found quite empty, with the exception of about twenty or thirty pebbles, from the size of peas or mar- bles to a hen's eggs. These are useful for purposes of diges- tion, and are probably always found in the stomachs of these Saurians. This incident quite settles the question as to whether the gurrial does take other food than fish, although, from the conformation of his jaws, he is not able to seize so large a morsel, or inflict so great a wound as the alligator." AMONG THE HIMALAYAS. 327 But the wild elephants, tigers, leopards, wolves, etc., for- midable and destructive as they are, may be regarded as rather ornamental than otherwise in comparison with the lesser vermin which swarm over the whole country daring the rainy and hot seasons. Of these the most dreaded and the most deadly are the snakes, from the hooded cobra, which sometimes attains the length of ten feet, down to the innumerable venomous snakes no larger than a riding- whip. It is stated on good authority that in the year 1869 there were 11,416 deaths from the bites of snakes in the single province of Bengal. From actual statistics, it has been estimated that in all India there are from 20,000 to 40,000 deaths from the same cause every year. The snakes Hve and multiply not only in the jungle and open country, but in the villages and cities. They come into the grounds and houses of all classes ; they make their homes in the thatch and drop down from the rafters; they creep into the beds ; they lie around among the kitchen utensils, and even ensconce themselves in the parlors. I heard manj^ thrilling narratives of adventures with these unwelcome visitors. The smaller vermin are still more ubiquitous, and a still greater annoyance. Scorpions and centipedes are abundant, and every where dreaded. The white ants move in armies, and are terribl}^ destructive. Scarcely any thing in the shape of furniture or clothing escapes their rav- ages, and their tastes are decidedly literary. They will go through an entire library in an incredibly short space of time, leaving nothing to be perused by those who come after them. If a book is carelessly left within their reach, the form of it may be found, but the entire contents has been devoured. The day was all spent and the night had overtaken us before we had completed the descent of the mountain. For hours we rode on in the darkness, until late in the evening of the last day of the year 1869 we alighted at the home of the Eev. Mr. Woodside, in the charming valley of the Dehra Doon. This valley is one of the gardens of In- « 328 AROUND THE WORLD. dia, a vale of Cashmere transferred a little to the south. Sheltered on all sides by the Himalayas, which stretch themselves four and five miles into the skies, it has all the year round a genial climate (if the intense heat of the sum- mers can be called genial), the trees of all climes, the plants of the tropics, and the fruits of the north growing side by side. The bamboo flourishes with great luxuriance, and the palm rears its stately crown. Extensive tea plantations occupy the plain. It was a joy which no words can express to meet in this lonely but lovely valley, in the very heart of Asia, Ameri- can families at home, and to have these homes opened to us with as much cordiality as if we had been their nearest kindred. The days that we spent there were all red-letter days, and when at length we were compelled to say fare- well, it seemed more like taking a new departure from home than going homeward. XXIV. ON THE HIMALAYAS- It was well into the new year before we could say good- night or think of rest, but we were to be np and on the wing before the morning light. In anticipation of onr ar- rival at Dehra, Mr.Woodside and Mr. Herron, of the Ameri- can Mission, had arranged an excursion to the sanitary cities of Mussoorie and Landour, perched npon the very top of the second range of the Himalayas, between seven and eight thousand feet high. They are crowded during the heat of summer, being a delightfully cool resort from the plains below, and, indeed, from all parts of Hindostan, but in the winter, when we made the ascent, they were deserted. Simlah, to which the governor general moves his court in the summer, is a hundred miles farther north. ON THE HIMALA TAS. 329 We rose long before the sun to greet the opening year, A drive of five or six miles across the valley, through a charming country, brought us to Kajpore, where the ar- rangements for ascendino; the mountain were to be made. One of our number, too feeble to endure the day's ride, was taken up in & jhanpaji, a sort of sedan chair, the rest mak- ing the ascent on horseback. The cities are in full sight from the plain below, and show themselves at different points during the ascent, but we were long in reaching them. Slowly we toiled upward, encouraged by an occa- sional glimpse of the summit, and often repaid for our toil by the views of the Dehra valley, until at length we reached a point where the Sewalic range that we had crossed the day before sank so low that we could look over upon the great plain beyond. The road passed deep precipices, over one of which the wife of an English officer, the year before, had gone down several hundred feet and was instantly killed. Troops of monkeys, looking old and wise enough to be the ancestors of Darwin, sat grinning at us from the trees. Wild peacocks, with plumage as gay as the domes- tic bird, are abundant on the mountain, where they are shot as o;ame. We had dined on them two or three davs be- fore. At length we reached Mussoorie, and, passing through it, were soon at Landour, which is on the very crest of the mountain. I could not but marvel at the boldness of the man who first conceived the idea of building a tOA\Ti upon this lofty ridge. There is not half an acre of level ground any where to be found. It is a simple line of peaks, with here and there a spot on which an eagle might build his nest. It may be a hundred feet down to the next eyrie, but every rock on which a house could be fastened has been seized upon, until towns of considerable extent have grown up. It is a place of great attractiveness to those who are suffering from the scorching heat of the plain, but all the while that I was on the mountain I was haunted with the thought that if I were to spend the night in any one of these numerous homes, I might, simply by stepping A GOBOE IN THE HIMALAYAS. ON THE HIMALA YAS. 33^ out of bed, plunge thousands of feet down the mountain sides. The elevation is nearly three times that of the Cats- kill Mountain House, and it appears as if one might almost step into the Dehra Doon. I can scarcely attempt to describe the magnificent views afforded at this elevation. On one side lies the Dehra Doon, one of the fairest vallevs in all the East, smilinsf in its verdure and foliage, although it was now midwinter. Farther on is the Sewalic rano-e of tlie Himalavas, and still farther, in full view, the great plain of India, fifteen hun- dred miles in extent. On the opposite side, toward the northeast, peak after peak of the snowy range, stretching out into Thibet and Cashmere, lifts its snow;)- head into the clouds. One of these, separated by a narrow valley fi'om the point on which we stood, measures 22,330 feet. An- other, in the distance, is 25,700 feet high ; and still another. Mount Everest, reckoned the loftiest point on the surface of the globe, is 29,000 feet by barometrical measurement. Several of these peaks have been ascended by adventurers and scientific parties, b^t we did not attempt to go so far into the clouds, among the everlasting snows. We were very hospitably entertained at Landour by Dr. Ivellett, the British surgeon, who had made preparation to receive us, and we left with him a pressing invitation to return our call on the next New- Year's day in New York. Reti'acing our way down the mountain sides, we were overtaken by the darkness of night, and passed the last hour or two in no little apprehension of the precipices which invited us below. But we reached our home at Deh- ra in safety, having met with no misadventure in this de- lightful and ever-memorable excursion to the top of the globe. The following day, which was the day of rest, we spent in this peaceful valley, greatly enjoying communion with the happy circle of Americans whose hearts are drawn closely together in this far-away part of the earth, and who became very near to us before we parted with them. In 332 AROUND THE WORLD. the morning I heard a sound which transported me home- ward. As it fell upon my ear, the tone was so familiar that I exclaimed, " That is one of Meneely's bells ;" and so it proved. It had crossed the ocean, and crossed the plains of India, and crossed the Himalaya Mountains before ns, and there, in the heart of Asia, it was calling a congreo-a- tion of native Christians to the house of God. We w^or- shiped with the natives in their own tongue a part of the day, and in the evening, at an English service, I spoke some words of Christian encouragement to the Americans and others to whom om- tongue is familiar, and so we spent the sacred day at the farthest point from home I had ever reach- ed ; and yet we were not away from home — we were still among friends. In one respect I almost envied the mission families their lot, for I know not a missionary station in any part of the world more charmingly located. It is one of the fairest spots in our memories of the lands of the East. Eising very early on Monday morning, I rode out with Mr.Woodside to the government tea plantations, and gath- ered the leaf for mvself, thouo-h not for use. The tea of India we decidedly preferred, while we w^ere in the coim- try, to any that we drank in China or Japan, perhaps be- cause it was made in more civilized style. We came upon a company of Thibetians, one of wdiom was praying in the early morning with a machine, a small wheel turned upon a handle — a very convenient way of saying one's prayers, and quite as efficacious, no doubt, as using the form of words where the heart is not found. The tongue may become a praving machine as truly as the wheel of this traveler of Thibet. Many urgent and tempting inducements were presented to us, by the English as well as the American residents, to prolong our stay in the beautiful valley, and gladly would we have yielded could time have tarried with us. In an- ticipation of our arrival, various plans for improving the so- journ had been laid. I found that arrangements had been made for a public lectui-e on the Pacific Railroad, which ON THE HIMALA YAS. 333 A PEAYING MACHINE. bad awakened almost as ranch interest in that remote re- o-iou as in the United States. They had read and heard so much abont this enterprise, and of the comfort and charm of travel by the Pulhnan palace cars, that they wished to have it all confirmed or dispelled by one who had actually travei'sed the road. Many of the English residents were in- tending to take this route homeward. But, having laid my own plans for a long time to come, I was compelled to de- cline the invitation. Had we yielded to all the tempting propositions to lengthen our stay in many places, to see more that was to be seen and to enjoy more that was to be enjoyed, especially in the society of the friends whom we 334 AROUND THE WORLD. met, we should still be tarrying or wandering far away among Oriental scenes, and perhaps should never reach home at all. The English commissioner sent us a polite offer of ele- phants to take our party over the mountains, but we had al- ready tried this mode of conveyance to our satisfaction. We returned to Saharunpur as we came, being taken by coolies over the most difficult part of the route. Mr. Wood- side and Mr. Herron accompanied us several miles on the way, and at the ascent of the mountain we bade them fare- well. Several months before leaving America, in arranging my programme for the year of travel, I decided to spend the first week of January, 1870, in this part of India. My ob- ject in doing so was to pass the week with the American Mission families and the native churches in the religious services of the period, now kno^wi the world over as " the Week of Prayer." Lodiana, from which the general mis- sion takes its name, is the place from which, in 1858, an in- vitation was sent out to Christians every where to spend the first week in each year in united prayer to God for the conversion of all nations to Christ. That concert is now observed throughout Christendom, and has become a bond of union and of interest among all who look for the reno- vation of the world through the Gospel of salvation. I commenced the week at Dehra Doon, then came to Saha- runpur, where I joined with the native Christians and the mission family in similar services. I spoke to the natives through an interpreter, and, bidding them and our friends of the mission farewell, went on in the evening of Tuesday to Amballa, fifty miles farther north. Here I was wel- comed by an old friend. Rev. John H. Morrison, D.D., who has spent between thirty and forty years in India, and, after joining in the same interesting services at this place, went on with him seventy miles to Lodiana, where we met with several missionaries and the native Christians in the chapel in which, twelve years before, the resolution was adopted ON THE HIMALAYAS. 335 and sent out into all the world to devote the week to this holy purpose. In that distant land, and amid the many sacred associations, it was a week of peculiar interest. I had now reached the extreme northern limit of my travels, having abandoned the plan of going to Bombay by the Eiver Indus and the Indian Ocean on account of the low stage of water. Thus far my journeyings had been accomplished in exact accordance with my originaV pro- gramme, and I was not willing to trust to the uncertainties of navigation through a river of shifting bars and shallow waters, when I could lay my course by the hour according to a previously arranged time-table. Before leaving Lodiana I went into the native town to witness the manufacture of the Cashmere shawls, one of the principal branches of industry. I called also upon two Cabool princes, who were living in exile upon a small pen- sion from the British government. They were sons of Shah Shu j ah, one of the last native possessors of the re- nowned Koh-i-noor diamond, which now belongs to the British crown. The early history of this gem is as roman- tic and as tragic as that of an Eastern princess. It has cost many a prince his eyes, and many a one his life. It was found in the mines of Golconda, in Southern India, and first belonged to the viceroy of the province, a native of Persia, who afterward presented it to Shah Jehan, the Mo- gul emj^eror who built the Taj for Noor Mahal. After lying in the imperial treasury" near a centuiy, it was carried off by Nadir Shah, the king of Persia, who invaded India in 1738. It passed through several royal hands. Some of its possessors had their eyes put out, and others were assas- sinated in the strife to gain possession of the treasure. One of these princes, after he had lost his sight, had it taken from him on the plea that such a gem could be of no value to one who had no eyes with which to see its beauty. The father of the princes whom I met at Lodiana, while sharing the hospitalities of the Maharajah Eunjeet Singh, the Lion of Lahore, was put to the torture and compelled to give it 336 AROUND THE WORLD. up to his host. The diamond remained in Hunjeet Singli's family until the Punjaub was conquered by the British, when it was seized and presented by the captors to Queen Victoria. Dark has been the history of tliis brilliant, reckoned second among the most Taluable gems of the world. When found it weighed 900 carats. It was reduced by cutting, first to 279 carats, then to 186, in which state it was shown in the Great Exhibition of 1851. It has since been recut, and now weighs 123 carats, being valued at about §600,000. LODIAXA TO BOMBAY. Ox the 6th of January we turned our faces southward and homeward, taking the Delhi and the East Indian Eail- ways to Allahabad, wliere we paused again for a few days. As we passed through Cawnpore, the native and foreign communities were agitated by the recent occurrence of a suttee, the burning of a widow on the funeral pile of a husband. In studying the state of society in India, I found that there is more to commend this practice to Hin- doo widows than is generally supposed. They are not driven by the mere law of custom to immolate themselves when thus bereaved. It is not affection for the husband which leads them to cast their own bodies into the flames which consume the dead. It is the future of the widow, her degraded, hopeless, helpless condition, that makes her choose death rather than life. The suttee was abolished by law in 1829, and now rarely occurs. All who take part in it are regarded as aiding and abetting murder, and are treated accordingly. Our last evening at Allahabad was spent with a pleasant partv of English and xVmerican residents, our host being a LODIAXA TO BOMBAY. 33'^ veteran English officer who had spent forty years in the military service in India. He was apparently nnaffected by the climate, which had sent tens of thousands home to England, and many thousands to their long home. The evening passed delightfully, and soon after midnight we took the cars bound for Jubbulpore. By morning we had left the great plain, and were among the hills. There was little that was interesting in the face of the country; no picturesque scenery ; no high cultivation. By noon we reached Jubbulpore, where the only break in steam com- munication around the world occurred, a space of 167 miles to JS^agpore. The gap was filled a month or two later by the completion of the rail through from Allahabad to Bombay, connecting Calcutta with the latter place by rail. Jubbulpore is the station to which the Thugs were con- signed when the murderous clan was suppressed. They are organized in a sort of penal colony, under the superin- tendence of British officers. Some of the more desperate and dangerous characters are in irons, and all are kept at hard labor. Even the children of the Thugs are under surveillance, and not allowed to go out into the country, lest the seeds of this infernal band should again be spread over the land, and its horrid crimes be repeated. Here we were to make arrangements for the only formidable jour- ney that we encountered during all our travels, and it was a journey which we have occasion to remember until the journey of life is over. We were not shut up to Hobson's choice in regard to the mode of conveyance, a variety of vehicles and of motive power being presented to our selec- tion. There was the palanquin, the ancient carriage of In- dia, a long black box in which one person can lie down Imt can not sit up, and which becomes exceedingly tire- some after traveling fifty or a hundred miles. It is carried by coolies, four at a time, and if the journey is designed to be speedy, relays are required every few miles. They travel night and day, though in the warm seasons it is cus- T 338 AROUND THE WORLD. tomary to jonrne}^ only by i^iglitj and seek repose and shade during the day. Tlien there were the bullock-carts, drawn by oxen, which are sometimes very fleet, but which, in a long journey, make slow progress. As time is of little account in Oriental countries, the bullock-carts are a favor- ite mode of conveyance. The distance between Jubbul- pore and ISTagpore is made by these carts in four or five days, which was enough to condemn them in our eyes. The conveyance that we selected, chiefly on account of speed, was the dak-gharry^ the government post-carriage, which resembles the palanquin, although larger, is set on wheels, and drawn by animals that are dignified by the name of horses, three abreast. It has this advantage over the palanquin : it can be arranged so as to enable one to sit up, but in general it is furnished with a flat bottom, on which a mattress is spread. The passengers (each ghariy will accommodate two, and no more) lie down with their feet toward the horses, and are dri.en night and day al- most at railroad speed, and without any regard to bruised muscles or broken bones. The entire distance, 167 miles, we were assured would be made in twenty-four hours, and, -as time was something more than money, we made choice of the dak-gharry, not wholly unaware of the severe pommeling to w^hich we must be subjected, though not altogether aware of the se- vere trial of physical strength and endurance that we must pass through. Accordingly, I engaged two gharries at the government post-oftice, one for myself and wife, and anoth- er for the young lieutenant, paying one hundred rupees, or fifty dollars, for each, a large price considering the wear and tear of flesh, for which no allowance was made. The rest of the party engaged gharries of a private company which run their vehicles over the same route. It was late in the afternoon when we were fairly launch- ed. Going out from Jubbulpore for several miles we met large numbers of natives, some of them gayly dressed, re- turning from a Hindoo festival wliich they had been cele- LODIANA TO BOMBAY. ■ 339 brating on the hills. Four miles from the town we de- scended into the valley of the Nerbudda, wdiere the scenery became more attractive. The " Marble Rocks," situated on the river some miles below the ghaut at w^hich we cross- ed, are celebrated in the annals of this part of India for the bold and striking views of which they form a part, and are a place of great resort. During the whole journey the horses were changed every live miles, and every time that fresh ones were put in it ap- peared as if they had just been caught wild, and were then for the first time put into harness and introduced to the gharry. The first move was for all tln-ee to attempt to jump over each other at the same moment of time, an ex- ploit the absurdity and impossibility of wdiich they had not learned by years of experiment. The next move w^as for half a dozen natives to seize hold of the wheels, and tw^o or thi-ee to take the horses by the head, while all together set up a hideous shout that frightened the miserable beasts out of their senses, and away they went as on the wings of the wind, under the lash and shout of the driver the whole five miles of each post, seldom going at a less rate than ten, and often, I believe, twelve miles an hour. We were driven with such reckless speed over the plains and down the hills that at every new stage we committed ourselves anew to the care of Providence, confident that, without special pro- tection, we must be dashed into our original elements before the next five miles were up. But we came through alive. A great part of the distance, especially that which we passed in the night, is a jungle, which, like every available spot in India, is still kept for raising tigers. At one of the stations we learned that two soldiers, who were on duty at the place, had been carried off not long before by tigers, and eaten. We concluded that there were two tigers at least in that part that were not hungry ; but, as night was coming on, I took from my traveling-bag, that had been my pillow, an excellent revolver, that I had not loaded since leaving home, and, carefully inserting five metallic car- 340 AROUXD THE WORLD. tridges, lay down to sleep in the gharry, fully prepared, as I supposed, for savage beasts and for still more savage men, of which there are such in India even since the Thugs have been suppressed. The next morning I found, on examina- tion, that in the dim twilight, and in my inexperience with fire-arms, more especially with metallic cartridges, I had inserted the latter with the powder toward the muzzle and the ball toward the stock, so that, if we had been attacked during the night by one of the rovers of the jungle, I should have shot myself, and not the tiger. About two o'clock at night I became delightfully con- scious that we were making no headway in our journey. The sensation was so peculiar and refreshing I did not move to inquire into the cause even after we had been ly- ing still for half an hour or more. Presently I heard a gentle tap at the sliding-door of the gharry, and the coach- wan calling '■'■sahih! sahib P'' (gentleman, or sir) in those persuasive tones which in the East usually mean backshish. Supposing we were merely changing drivers, and that he was -rousing me to obtain a fee, which he had no business to do at that unseemly time of the night, I made no answer. The coachwan retired, but it was not long before I heard the same gentle call — " sahib ! sahib .^" I rose, and found that the tire of one of the wheels of the other gharry had broken, and I was summoned to a council of war by the na- tives to determine what was best to be done in the emer- gency. We were happily in a small native village, and not in a jungle ; but we might almost as well have been in the wilderness, so far as repairing damages was concerned. We found a miserable little smithy, but our only light was obtained fi'om a string in a cup of oil, which scarcely made the dusky natives \asible, and afforded little aid in mending the broken wheel. They had already removed the tire, and were preparing to weld it and put it on again — a very nice operation for an experienced wheelwright, and an impossi- bility in the circumstances. I remonstrated very fluently in good English against their undertaking so difficult an LODIANA TO BOMBAY. 34^ operation, assuring them that tliey could not accomplish it if they took a week for it, all of which they understood as perfectly as if it had been Hebrew, After three hours spent in ineffectual attempts to repair the break, they aban- doned it as a hopeless undertaking, substituted a mail-cart for the other gharry, and we resumed the journey. At fi-equent stages on the road the government has erect- ed bungalows, where travelers can rest during the day, or spend the night, provided they carry their own beds and bedding. They are supplied with a few articles of f m-ni- ture, the chief of which is a bedstead, and with the neces- sary means of preparing a meal, but they are not intended as hotels. About nine o'clock in the morning we reached the dak bungalow at Seonee, midway between the two ends of the journey, and paused for the lirst and only time on the route, excepting during the delay connected with the accident to the gharry. At this place one of the wheels of my own gharry gave ominous signs of failure, and the re- mainder of the journey we made with increased S2)eed, and with increasing apprehensions of a wreck. But, through the merciful care of Providence, we reached the end of our ride in safety — more dead than alive, it is true, but with the vital spark ready to be resuscitated, as it was by a refresh- ing dinner and a good night's rest at Xagloo's Residency Hotel, in the pleasant town of Xagpore. This was a journey that I would not undertake again for a large part of India; but, now that it is over and safely ac- complished, we look back upon it with mingled feeliugs of pleasure and pain, in which the former predominate — pleas- ure in the thought that it is safely over, and that we enjoy- ed one of the last opportunities that could be afforded to any foreigners of sympathizing with the multitudes who, through all the past ages, have been pounded almost into gelatine by traveling in the dak-gharry over the hills of Western India. It is a luxury whicli can never again be enjoyed on any of the long routes. Travelei's will hereaft- er pass from Calcutta to Bombay, by the way of Allahabad, 342 AROUND THE WORLD. without leaving the cars. The dak-cjharrij is among the joys departed never to return. We were still 500 miles from Bombay, but we had the rail before us all the way. Our route lay through the Mahratta country, famous in the wars of the past centu- ries, and even in the conquest of the country by the Brit- ish. All day long, every few^ miles we came upon the old forts standing in the midst of the plains, some of them having walls of great height. The time was when in this whole region no one was safe unless shut in by the w^alls of a strong fortress. One conqueror after another has swept over it with his armies, and even rival petty chief- tains have made prey of the people and their substance. It is now devoted to the arts of peace. The country through which we were passing is the great cotton region of India, a large portion of the land having been appropriated to its cultivation since the rebellion in our own country compelled the English manufacturers to look for a supply from some other source than the United States. India is the oldest cotton -growing and cotton- manufacturing country in the world. It produced cotton thousands of years ago, and from the earliest accounts cot- ton fabrics have formed the clothing of the inhabitants. Nothing equal to the finer qualities and the long staple of our Southern States has been produced, but it affords a large supply of the shorter staple. The production was immensely stimulated by the war in America cutting off the supply. The value of the crop of 1859-60 exported from India was £5,637,624. In 1864-5 it had risen to £37,573,637. After this there was a great falling off in its value, though not in quantity, the exports of the crop for 1869-70 amounting to £19,079,138. We were at Egutpoora, nearly 100 miles from Bombay, early in the morning. From this point onward the road passes through mountain scenery bold and striking, a per- fect contrast to the most of India over which we had trav- eled. Within a few miles we passed through a long sue- B03IBA Y. 343 cession of tunnels, scarcely emerging from one before we plunged into another. This portion of the railway was immensely expensive, but it was among the first projected in the grand system of railways for opening up and forti- fying the country. It connects the port of Bombay not only with the Deccan, but with the whole of northern and eastern India. Arriving at Bombay at eleven in the morn- ing, we found pleasant quarters at the Byculla Hotel, in the suburbs of the city. BOMBAY. Bo:\iBAY is situated at the extremity of an island of the same name. It was taken by the Portuo-nese after the capture of Goa, in the early part of the sixteenth century, and ceded in 1661 to Charles II., of England, as part of the doM'ry of his bride, the Infanta Catharine. King Charles gave it to the East India Company a few years later, and in 1865 it was made the seat of the chief presi- dency. On the opening of communication with England by the Red Sea route it received a new im^^etus, and its importance, if not its supremacy as the commercial capi- tal of India, has been secured by the opening of railroad communication with all parts of the country. Its popula- tion and commerce have rapidly increased until it has be- come the successful rival of Calcutta. It is now a delicate matter to express an opinion in India as to which is the chief city, but it will be the fault of the people of Bom- l)ay alone if they do not take the lead. Admirably loca- ted, both in regard to its internal and foreign trade, at the western gateway of India, it is in direct communication with the richest parts of the country, and at the nearest point of communication with the whole western world. 344: AROuyn the world. Calcutta, on the other hand, is at the far side of India, near the head of the Bay of Bengal, and 100 miles from the mouth of a river which can be entered by large ves- sels only at certain stages of the tide. Bombay has a fine open harbor — a little too open, it is true, during the preva- lence of the southwest monsoons, but it may be farther protected without great expense, and the navies of the world might here ride at anchor. As one of the results of the American war, which opened a market for the cotton of India, and other causes, the city became inflated in 1865 with the promises of a golden harvest, and launched out into extravagant speculations, as if the business of the world was to be concentrated at this point. But the bub- ble burst almost as soon as it was blown, and a disastrous collapse occurred. Waste lands, that had connnanded enor- mous prices, were suffered to lie waste, and those which were bought at fabulous rates while still under water were never reclaimed from the sea. The people of Bombay be- came sadder, but wiser, from this experience, and now the city is on a career of assnred prosperity. All my observa- tions convinced me that it is destined to be the great cit}^ of India, if not of the whole Eastern world. In its general aspect Bombay is the most lively city of the Indies. Its population of nearly a million is very nnil- tifarious. Nearly all the tribes of Hindostan are repre- sented, Hindoos, Mussulmans, Parsees, Indo-Britons, Indo- Portuguese, Europeans of various nations, Americans, and natives of Western Asia. The costumes of the people are varied and gay beyond description. The streets are throng- ed by a busy multitude on foot, on horseback, and in car- riages, many of the latter gaudily trimmed and drawn by bullocks. The city is not so remarkable for its public buildings or its public institutions as Calcutta, and for the reason that the latter has been the real capital of the country, the seat of the East India Company, where its wealth was concen- trated, and in a great measure expended. But some por- A UDLLOCK CAEKIAGE. tions of the town, especially that known as the Fort, wliich is commensurate with the ancient bounds of tlie city, con- tain man}' fine buildings. The town-hall is a massive struct- ure, with apartments not only for the public service, but for scientific and liistorical purposes. The rooms of the Eoyal Asiatic Society, with its library and museum, are full of in- terest to every intelligent stranger who desires to study the past as well as the present of India. The Elphinstone Cir- cle, named from the Hon. Mountstuart Elphinstone, who succeeded to the Bombay presidency in 1819, is the Wall Street of Bombay, and the centre of its most important commercial operations. The government was erecting new and spacious buildings for public use, and the whole for- eign portion of the town was putting on the promise of coming greatness. The Parsees, numbering more than 100,000 of the popu- lation of Bombay, embody a great part of the wealth of the city, and are the most intelligent and enterprising of the natives of the country. Ko small part of the mercantile 346 AROUND THE WOBLD. l)iisiness of the East is in their liands, and leadnig houses have branches in Paris and London, as well as in Eastern Asia. Their dress is peculiar, partly European and partly Oriental. Tliey have a sort of caste like the Hindoos, and are forbidden to marry excepting among their own people ; nor do they usually eat what has been cooked by one of another religion. A well-educated Parsee gentleman and his wife were among my companions in ci'ossing the Pacific Ocean. They mingled freely with the other passengers and ate at the same table with them. On returnina; to Bombay, he was called to account for violating the rules of his race, and his situation became so uncomfortable in consequence that he removed to London to take charge of a branch of the house with which he is connected. With all their intelligence, the Parsees are still greatly under the power of their ancient superstitions, and there are no more bigoted religionists among the tribes of Asia, not even among the Mohammedans. In their religion they are dis- ciples of Zoroaster, who lived several centuries before Christ, and they are usually known as fire-worshipers, reverencing the sun, moon, and other heavenly bodies, and even tire itself, although the more intelligent do not admit that they pay actual worship to these objects. The distinction is ^ery much the same with that of Romanists in regard to the worship of images ; the intelligent and truly devout may use the image as an aid to the imagination, while the ignorant worship nothing but the image. In tlieir temples fire is kept continually burning by priests, who maintain that it has never been extinguished. They feed it with fragrant spices, and treat it as if it were a god. The priests even cover the lower part of their faces with a mask when they approach the sacred fire, lest tliey sliould defile it with their breath. Their reverence for fii-e forbids them even to burn tobacco into smoke. Nothing connected with the Parsees is more peculiar than their treatment of the dead. They have a large cem- etery on Malabar Hill, near Bombay, the highest ground in BOMBAY. 347 the vicinity, selected on this account, that no one may luolc into it. The very approaches to tlie spot are guarded with tlie most jealous care by men who form a distinct class or caste, and who, from one generation to another, are not per- mitted to mingle with the rest of the people. The ceme- tery contains a building devoted to the preservation of the sacred fire, buildings for the priests and those who have charge of the dead, and five round stone towers called '' Towers of Silence," each about sixty feet in diameter, and forty or fifty in height. These are the receptacles of the dead. When a death occurs, the body is taken to the gate of the cemetery and delivered into the hands of the priests. Xo one is allowed to enter the walls with the dead. After a prescribed ceremonial, the body is taken to one of the towers and laid on a grate upon the top of one of these towers. A flock of hideous vultures is always waiting to devour the flesh, and the bones fall into the body of the tower below in an indiscriminate heap. It is the most re- volting mode of disposing of the remains of departed friends of which I have any knowledge, but the Parsees adhere to it with a tenacity which borders on fanaticism. Throuo;h the influence of the Parsee o-entleman to whom I have alluded, we obtained an order from a high official in their community to visit the cemetery. Even with this order we had much difficulty in gaining admittance, and were constantly followed and closely watched by the at- tendants. We walked throuo-h the o-rounds, which were a picture of desolation, and saw the vultures seated upon the towers, anxiously awaiting their human prey; but the arca- na of the place were carefully guarded. We had already seen more than often falls to the lot even of the Parsees themselves. The Hindoo mode of disposing of the dead is far less re- pulsive. We had been dining one evening with a friend whose bungalow was on Malabar Hill, the most beautiful of the suburbs of Bombay. Tlie drive was throuo-h troves 348 AROUND THE WORLD. of cocoannt palms, and the bungalow was embowered in a luxuriant growth of vines and trees, making the place one like fairy-land. It was late when we returned to town. Across the bay, on the Bombay side, a row of brilliant lights stretched along the shoi'e. In the deep stillness of mid- night and the strangeness of the whole scene, they had a mysterious look, and, on inquiry, I learned that they were the funeral piles on which the Hindoos were burning their dead, a more appropriate use of fire than to worship it, and a more becoming mode of treating the remains of the de- parted, ashes to ashes, than the horrid f unei-al rites of the Parsees. We devoted one day while at Bombay to a visit to Ele- plianta, a lonely island lying six or eight miles across the bay. which we reached by a sail-boat placed at our disposal by Mr. Kittredge, of the American house of Stearns, Ho- bart & Co. We were accompanied by Mr. and Mrs. Hard- ing, and Mr. and Mrs. Ballantyne, of the American Mission, Mr. Chauntrell, an English barrister, and Dr. Bhau Daji, a Hindoo gentleman, to whom I was indebted not only for many polite attentions, but for much scientific information, as well as for many hours of pleasant intercourse. He has a high standing as a man of science, and is in correspond- ence with men of learning in this country and in Great Britain. The caves of Elephanta are deserted Buddhist temples, immense caverns cut into the solid rock. Colossal Buddhist figures still remain in comparative preservation. Their history is not known with any degree of certainty, but they are supposed to have been made in the sixth cen- tury. Another day was spent, at the invitation of Dr, Bhau Daji, in a visit to more extensive excavations in the moun- tains of Kenhari, twenty miles from Bombay, We left in a carriage before daylight, and drove twelve or fourteen miles to the mountains, where horses and palanquins were awaiting us. I chose one of the latter, and, bestowing my- self in the box, was soon sound asleep, and woke up in the BOMBA Y. 349 wilderness as we were approaching, the object of onr visit. Like the caves of Elephanta, the excavations at Kenhari are involved in mystery, but they are supposed to have formed a Buddhist monastery. They are more than seventy in number — one room a cathedral, with pillars and aisles, all cut into the solid rock as square and smooth as the rooms of a house — are scattered along the mountain in galleries, and are not only deserted, but miles from human habita- tions. Xo fitter place for anchoretic life and meditation could be found if it were formerly as lonely as it is now. One morning Dr. Bhau Daji invited us to his house, ro- mantically situated in the midst of a grove of tall cocoanut palms, to witness the performances of a troop of Indian jugglers. We had seen a similar performance at Delhi, at the house of an English gentleman with whom we dined, Init were in no wise impressed with their superiority to their own craft in other lands. Those at Bombay were more ex- pert, but not one of them could equal Hermann, the pres- tidigitateur, in the variety and skill of his marvelous feats. From what I saw and all I heard, I am inclined to believe that the tricks of Indian jugglers, so celebrated the world over, appear more wonderful as rehearsed in tlie stories of travelers than when seen on their own OTound. The o-reat feat which I have often heard described as the marvel, if not the miracle of such performances in the East, the al- most instantaneous growth of a mango-tree from the seed to fruit-bearing, in the dry earth, before your eyes, I saw t^\^ce in India, but I saw enough to make it clear that it was mere sleight-of-hand. There were other performances that were to me more wonderful than this, in which there was no attempt at deception. While we wei-e enjoying the delightful shade of the palms in the compound of our host, the servants ran as nimbly as monkeys up the tall cocoanut-trees, and threw down the fresh fruit for our entertainment. But neither the milk nor the meat is at all tempting in any stage. I prefer to leave the cocoanuts to be manufactured into oil, for which purpose they are raised all over the East. 350 AROUND THE WOULD. Among the curious places in Bombay was tlie hospital for aged and infirm animals. It was open to all races save the human, from the elephant down to the smallest domes- tic animal. If any poor dog happens to break his leg, or meets with any disaster, or is overtaken by sickness, he will find provision here for his comfort and relief, if he can be relieved. A large sqnare in the midst of the city, with suit- able shelter, is devoted to this benevolent though rather sentimental object. The numerous invalids and unfortu- nates were any thing but a pleasing sight, and it appeared to me more of a work of mercy to end their misery than to prolong their days. BOMBAY TO CAIRO. Whatever may be the feelings of the reader, I leave this land of the Hindoo and the Mohammedan, of palms and palaces, with the deepest regret that time will not wait while I tarry longer among its strange scenes. Thus far it has been the most interesting country that we have reached, not alone nor chiefly for its Oriental and tropical scenery ; nor for its venerable and varied history, runnino; back through thousands of years, and down through changing dynasties, some of which have been maintained in splendor such as the world has not seen elsewhere ; nor for the re- markably diversified character of its numerous races, which altogether make up one of the most curious pieces of mo- saic that the population of the globe "uall furnish ; nor for the monuments of the past, wliich exceed in beauty, if not in magnificence, all that the ages have left in other lands ; but still more interesting in the chano-es that are now tak- ing place in the condition of its people, and in the promises for the future which every where meet the eye and strike the eaj'. BOMBAY TO CAIMO. 351 Xut the g'lory of the past, the age of " barbaric gold and pearls," but a greater glory is yet to rest ou India. I have looked with the deepest satisfaction upon the signs of a coming higher civilization, and the evidences that the light that is to lighten all nations is dawning upon its two hun- dred millions. India is not now altogether a land of dark- ness. The mass of its people are still bowing down to its gods of wood and of stone, or following the false prophet, but from Cape Comorin to the Himalayas the Sun of right- eousness is lighting the peaks here and there, and giving sure promise of the coming day when Christianity shall tri- umph over superstition and false religion. I rejoice heartily that India is under British rule. What- ever ma}^ be the errors, or even the crimes of the past, in connection with the extension of British arms, and in the complicity of the governing powers with idolatry, now that they have been so fearfully expiated in the mutiny of 1857, and since the power has passed directly into the hands of the home government, a new destiny awaits the land and the people. I liad timed our arrival at Calcutta so as to spend in In- dia the onlv two months of the vear in which one can travel with comfort, December and January ; and our de- parture, so as to avoid the stifling heat of the Red Sea. which becomes almost insupportable in summer. On the 2-ith of January we went on board the steamer Krishna, which was lying at anchor in the harbor. The waters of the bay were quiet, but outside we had a taste of the sea. As we passed the light-ship, a boat came off to the Krishna to put a passenger on board. It was already dark ; the waves were running high ; and as a sailor in the boat caught the rope that was thrown him, the boat receded with a returning swell, he was jerked into the angry sea and left struggling with the waves, the boat drifting far astern. Almost instantlv the first officer of the Krishna jumped into the sea to rescue the man, and then there were two in great danger. They clung desperately to the 352 AROUND THE WORLD. rope, and twice were drawn to the ship and part way up its side, wlien a returning wave overwhehned them, and they dropped again into the seething waters, the officer cry- ing out " I'm done," and apparently giving up all hoj)e. It was a frightful scene. In the darkness there seemed little prospect of saving either of them, and with anxious hearts we peered into the black w^aters, and could only pi'ay that a merciful God might strengthen their arms and rescue them from what appeared an almost inevitable fate. The officer at length caught a buoy which was thrown over- board, the sailor clung to the rope, a boat was lowered, and, to the great joy of all, the men were both brought on board. It was all the work of a few minutes, but it seem- ed an age as I watched them in their struggle for life, and wdien they w^ere safe I felt as if I had myself been rescued from a watery grave. Once off the coast, the voyage through the Indian Ocean as far as Aden, 1660 miles, was without any striking inci dent. A strong northeast monsoon kept our ship steady, helped us on our course, and supplied us with plenty of fresh air, a great blessing in these Eastern seas. Our pas- sengers were chiefly East India officers, in the military and civil service, with their families, and as we gradually be- came acquainted, the time passed pleasantly away. On the morning of the sixth day the shores of Arabia were in sight, and toward evening we descried the heights of Aden, ninety miles to the east of the entrance of the Ked Sea. It is a mass of rock, connected with the main land bv a low, sandy neck, and towering up to the height of 1776 feet. It was held by the Portuguese when they were stretching their arms and their commerce into the East. It was cap- tured by the Turks in 1538, and held for three centuries; but in 1839, for an outrage committed upon a vessel sail- ing under English colors, the British government seized the place, strengthened its fortifications, and have kept a large garrison upon it ever since. It is called the Gibraltar of the East on account of its commanding position near the BOMBA Y TO CAIBO. 353 entrance to the Red Sea, and its great natural strength as a fortress. Owing to some peculiarity in its situation, it seldom rains at Aden, three or four years passing without a drop falling from the clouds, even when it rains on the main land near by. To supply this deficiency, the early occupants of the place, how long ago is not known, but it is conjectured as early as the sixth or seventh centur}', ex- cavated immense tanks in the rocks, collecting the water when it fell, and preserving it for years. These ancient cisterns are still in use, and afford an abundant supply. Not long after we had touched at Aden there came a heavy rain, a fiood, which not only filled the tanks, but swept away houses, and caused great destruction of property. We took on board a small flock of Arabian sheep of the broad-tail species, the finest mutton in the East, and an im- portant addition to our commissariat, and were again un- der way. Passino; throuo-h the Straits of Bab-el-Mandeb (the Gate of Tears, or the Gate of Desolation, as it is va- riously interpreted), we entered the sea which, in all ages, has been a terror to navigators. This narrow strip of wa- ter covers a small space on the map, but it is more than 1200 miles in length, making a voyage of five or six days by steam, during which the shore is seldom seen on either side. Its navigation is difficult and perilous. The water is of great deptli, but rocks and islands are scattered through it, and coral reefs abound, which seldom lift their heads above the waves to warn the sailor of his danger. The shores are almost entirely destitute of light-houses, and are occupied by not the most hospitable races of men, where inhabited at all. High winds prevail a great part of the year, making the navigation particularly undesirable for sailing vessels, which are now seldom seen. Near the Straits, which are about twelve degrees nortli of the equator, we had another view of the constellation of the Southern Cross, which, in the clear skies of tlie Red Sea, was very brilliant in the earlv mornino;. The first evening we were off the town of Mocha, on the Aral )i an Z 354 AROUND THE WORLD. side, a name suc-irestive of a-ood coifee, which lived in our memories, but formed no part of our experience on ship- board. The second day we were off the Zebayer Islands, called the Twelve Apostles, nearly opposite the landing- place of the British expedition against Abyssinia. We had on board one of the heroes of the war, who had served also with distinction in the suppression of the mutiny in India. He bore many marks of his heroism, having, as it was said, been cut to pieces and put together again. We afterward fell in with one of the original capti^•es of King Theodore. He had his chains with him, and was bearing them home as a trophy. Farther on we passed Djiddah, the port of Mecca. Two or three days before reaching Suez we enconntei'- ed a fierce north wind, which never subsided until we were on shore. Eveiy few minutes, on the last day or two of the voyage, a heavy sea would break over the bow of the ship, washing her decks from stem to cabin, wdiich, with the cold blasts from the north, drove us all under shelter, and many to their berths. Nor were the high winds, and the coral reefs on which the British steamer Carnatic had struck and gone dowm a few weeks before, a large number of the passengers perishing, our only perils. In the midst of the gale and in the midst of the rocks our captain pre- pared liimself to meet the danger by a drunken carousal, and became crazy with rum, one or two of his officers fol- lowing his example. How we came safely through w^e never knew, excepting that we had the guidance and pro- tecting care of the great Pilot who holds the winds in his fists and the waters in the hollow of his hand. This cap- tain afterward fell overboard in the harbor of Bombay and was drowned. It was not until the evening of the sixth day from our entering the Straits, and the twelfth from our leaving Bombay, that we dropped anchor at Suez — it may have been upon one of the chariot - wheels of Pharaoh. The sun had set before we reached the anchorage, which is live B03fBA Y TO CAIRO. 355 miles from the head of tlie gulf and from the town. As we could not go ashore until we had been inspected by the health officer, we tired heavy guns and threw up rockets, but tliei'e was no response, and we were compelled to spend another night upon the sea. But we were at rest, and tlie perils of the voyage were over. Suez is not an insigniticant town. It has a population of several thousands ; its bazars are well supplied with goods for Oriental consumption, and there is more of an air of activity and business about it than one might expect in such a desert region. When the overland route to In- dia was opened a few years since, Suez had a revival of the traffic it enjoyed before the discovery of the route to the Indies by the Cape of Good Hope ; but the more re- SUEZ. 356 AROUND THE WOULD. cent opening of the Snez Canal may be another blow to its prosperity, by making all transhipment of passengers and goods needless. Innnediately on landing and getting comfortably estab- lished in the Suez Hotel, I took my Bible to read over the inspired account of the Exodus from Egypt, and went out to compare the account with the face of the country. It was the same land over which Moses led the children of Israel more than thirty -three centuries before. The same sands were still there, though the footprints of the depart- ing host had been obliterated ; tlie same sea rolled before us ; the same mountains frowned from the southeast ; the general aspect of the scene was unchanged. It was not difficult to obtain a perfectly satisfactor}^ idea of the route by which the Israelites came thus far in following the cloudy pillar, although the precise point at which the mi- raculous crossing of the sea took place is still one of the problems of sacred geography. There is no doubt in re- gard to the route by which they came from Succoth to the sea. The path is clearly defined by the features of the country. A precipitous mountain range stretches from the shore diagonally to the northwest, leaving a sandy plain between it and the sea, from wliich they could not diverge. All this was so clear that, as I looked over the vast plain, I could almost imagine I saw the great host on their march, the pillar of cloud leading them on by day. and the great curtain hung up by the hand of God to pro- tect them fi'om their pursuers by night. But where was the point at which they heard the command of God to go forw^ard, and were so marvelously delivered from their en- emies ? Dr. Robinson is of the opinion that the crossing took place very near the site of the modern city of Suez ; but his reasoning savors rather of rationalistic explanation than of a full acknowledgment of the grandeur of the miracle by which God effected this deliverance of his people. He explains aw^ay the miracle by referring it to natural and BOMBAY TO CAIRO. 357 secondary causes, and in order to do so locates the cross- ing where the sea is now scarcely half a mile wide, and olily deep enough to be navigable. It is true there are in- dications that the sand has encroached upon the sea, and that the latter was here more than a mile wide in former times ; but even this scarcely makes the necessity of a stu- pendous miracle evident. From the point selected by Dr. Eobinson they might have moved several miles farther south, or have passed up to the head of the sea farther north, as the shores in either direction are perfectly smooth. Every thing in the divine record shows that they were shut up to entering the bed of the sea at the very spot on which they stood when the Lord said unto Moses, " Where- fore criest thou unto me ? Speak unto the children of Is- rael tliat they go forward ; but lift thou up thy rod and stretch out thine hand over the sea and divide it, and the children of Israel shall go on dry ground in the midst of the sea." From an examination of these localities, it appeared to me much more probable that they followed the sandy plain to the south, where the sea and the precipitous mountain I'ange converge, and where it was impossible for them to move excepting in one direction. Pharaoh and his hosts were in their rear ; they had fled until they could flee no farther ; a mountain wall was on one side, and the deep sea upon the other : God divided the watei's before them, and they passed through the midst of the sea. At the point to w^hich I refer the Red Sea mnst be five or six miles in width, and of great depth ; but the whole ac- count indicates that the crossing took place where the sea was wide. The Egyptians, pursuing the Israelites, " went in after them to the midst of the sea, even all Pharaoh's horses, his chariots, and his horsemen." It was in the midst of the sea that they proposed to turn back when they found that the Lord was fighting for the Israelites against the Egyptians. They turned and fled ; but when the sea came back to its bed, of the vast army that had gone into it " there 358 ABOUND THE WORLD. remained not so much as one of them." The shnple narra- tive, the Song of Moses which he sang with the children of Israel to celebrate their deliverance, the allusions to it in other pai-ts of the Holy Scriptures, show that it was a sub- lime miracle, not accomplished by a concurrence of ordina- ry means, and therefore that there was no occasion for select- ing a place where it could be easily performed, but rather the contrary. The drying up of the waters was not effect- ed alone by the strong east wind, for " the children of Israel went into the midst of the sea upon the dry ground, and the waters were a wall unto them on their right hand and on their left." In the Song of Moses it is said, '' The floods stood upright as an heap, and the depths were congealed in the heart of the sea." This is not all poetic imagery. While we were yet in the far East, on the way to Egypt, the ceremonial of the formal opening of the canal connect- ing once more the waters of the Mediterranean and the Red Seas took place, but the passenger lines were not yet established when we reached Suez. In connection with two or three English gentlemen, one of them a member of Parliament who had been sent out to investigate the ex- penses of the Abyssinian War, we chartered a small steam- er at Suez to ex]>lore the canal, laid in a stock of provisions at the hotel, and left Suez about eight o'clock in the morn- ing, expecting to be at Ismailia. fifty miles distant, by three in the afternoon. We steamed quietl}" along, stopping here and there to examine the work, climbing the high walls of sand thrown up on both sides to look out over the desert. We were well on our way toward the end of our inland voyage when an ominous gathering of steamers loomed up before us, very suggestive of one of those dead-locks pre- dicted before the opening. We would fain have convinced ourselves that it was a mirage of the desert, but it was no unsubstantial apparition. We found, on coming to a halt, that the stoppage was produced by a float made fast in the middle of the canal for the purpose of blasting rock at the bottom, and that no craft could pass until the drilling was BOMBA Y TO CAIMO. 359 completed and the blast exploded, wliicli would probably be near midnight — as it proved, and we did not arrive at Israailia, which is on one of the lakes of the canal, until one or two o'clock in the morning. HIGHT ON THE CANAL. The Suez Canal was not a new idea to the man by whose energy and perseverance the seas have now become practi- cally connected. It was projected by the ancient Egyp- tians, who must have had some sort of communication through the lakes across the isthmus. In 1798, Napoleon I., then commanding the French expedition to Egypt, pro- posed opening a ship canal through the same route. A commission appointed to make the survey reported that the Red Sea was thirty feet lower than the Mediterranean, which was considered a fatal objection to the enterprise ; but the survey of the overland route to India in 1830 es- tablished the fact that the two seas are on the same level. 300 AROUXD THE WOULD. M. de Lesseps was then in Egypt, attached to the French consulate. lie at once caught up the idea with enthusiasm, and by indomitable perseverance carried it out to its pres- ent success. It was strange to find in old Egypt a city of palaces and parks not more than five years old ; but such is Ismailia. It has sprung into existence by the touch of the Suez Canal, with as much rapidity and a hundred-fold more stability and beauty than the towns on the Pacific Railroad. From this point we struck out into the desert, and for hours trav- ersed the sandy waste, the picture of dreary desolation. Once in a wliile we came upon some weary travelers or trafiickers, who, with camels or donkeys, were dragging their way through the sands ; but even this did not relieve the prospect, for we pitied the travelers who were making such slow progress, while we were driving onward by the force of steam over an iron pathway. We were going down to the valley of the jSTile by the same route which Abraham took when he weut into Egypt to escape famine ; by which the sons of Jacob went down to buy corn ; and by which the grand funeral procession returned bearing the body of the patriarch to its resting- place in the cave of Machpelah (where, I have no doubt, it still slumbers midisturbed). At length we descried in the distance an oasis, a grove of palms, a beautiful sight always, but most beautiful when seen in the distance over a sandy waste, bearing the promise of green fields, upon which we presently came. They lie along the margin of the canal dug to carry the refreshing waters of the Xile over a wider extent of country. We caught sight of Cairo just as the sun was going down beyond the Pyramids. Its golden light streamed over the domes and minarets, pouring itself in a fiood upon the green fields and among the palms, and drawing a beau- tiful contrast between the building-s and the dark foliao;e in which they were set. The Citadel,with its Grand Mosque, towered above the rest of the citv. havincj for its back- & B02IBAY TO CAIEO. 3gl ground the gray mountain, the mansolenm of long-lniried generations. The broad valley of the jSlle, dressed in liv- ing green, was spread out before us. For a while we for- got that we were travelers from a new world, and fell to dreaming of the Pharaohs and the patriarchs, until that in- tensely modern invention, the shrill whistle of the locomo- tive, restored ns to consciousness, and summoned ns to alight in the city of splendor, and dirt, and donkeys. We had not seen the interior of our trunks since leaving India, and among the most pleasing anticipations of reach- ing Cairo was the general renovation that we were to im- dergo when we shonld again be admitted to the arcana of pur luggage. But, on presenting our tickets, we were in- formed that the luggage had been left behind at Zagazig, half way to Ismailia. All we could do was to repair to Shepheard's Hotel and wait until it should arrive, if it came at all. I had no expectation of seeing it for at least two or three days, being confident that it had gone off to Alexan- dria and perhaps to London, with our English friends who had left ns at Zagazisr to take the steamer. But, greatly to my surprise, about ten o'clock in the evening the Egyptians came marchiiio- into our room with the lost bao:o;aoe on their heads, and it was like getting home to get into our trunks once more. They have strange chambermaids at Shepheard's. The one who waited on our room and attended to all the vari- ous duties of the calling, even to making of beds, was a courtly Frenchman, dressed as if for a dinner-party, and having the air of a reiined and educated gentleman. It was really embarrassing to accept his services. One of the ladies, on arriving at the hotel, rang for the chambermaid. This gentleman presented himself. Supposing him to be the proprietor or chief clerk, she informed him that she had rung for the chambermaid. He Tery politely replied, in the best English he could command, " Madame, I am she." 362 ABOUND THE WOULD. XXVIII. CAIRO TO JERUSALEM. My first expedition to Cairo, after recovering from the fatigues of our long voyage and subsequent journeyings by land, was to the Citadel ; not so much to see the Citadel it- self or the Grand Mosque, but for the panoramic view of the city and the valley of the Nile which it commands. This view alone would I'epay a traveler for coming to this far-off country, even if he should see nothing else. As 3'on stand upon the parapet, the whole of Cairo, ancient and modern, lies at your feet. On the right are the tombs of the Caliphs and the Mamelukes. On the left is what re- mains of Old Cairo — called old by courtesy among the mon- uments of thirty or forty centuries. Beyond the city flows the Nile, encircling several beautiful islands. Farther on, across the emerald valley, the Pyramids and the Sphinx sit in silent majesty. A few miles up the Nile is the site of ancient Memphis, now nearly obliterated. The hills on either side of the broad valley, rising up as walls to say to the overflowing stream, " Thus far shalt thou come, but no farther," are inhabited by a silent multitude, unnumbered millions, unknown and undecayed, who await the coming of the resurrection morn just as they were laid in their tombs thousands of years ago. In the midst of this scene the old Nile flows on and overflows, as it has from the time of the Pharaohs and from the time of the flood, if not from all time. As he gazes one can not help but people the val- ley with the generations that have come and gone, and fill it up with the grand events that have transpired, until he becomes bewildered with their variety and with the suc- cession. CAIHO TO JERUSALEM. 3(53 Taking: a carriacje at the hotel, and crossino- the Nile bv the bridge of boats, we drove directly to the Pyi-amids, which are about ten miles west from the river. The car- riage-road is an embankment of Nile mnd from ten to fif- teen feet high, making it available durhig the overflow and at all seasons of the year. It is shaded by large aca- cias, and the carriage-track is nsaally in excellent order. The viceroy has shown some sense in sparing a trifle from the vast sums which he is expending upon his numerous palaces for the construction and improvement of this road ; and whether the natives bless him for it or not (it must greatly interfere with the donkey business), all foreigners who have occasion to visit tlie Pyramids will give him their benedictions. He might immortalize himself by ef- fecting one reform — the abatement or abolition of the backshish nuisance. A horde of Arabs, nominallv under the control of a sheikh, who is paid in advance for their services, stand ready to torment the money, if not the life, out of every new victim who falls into their hands. They give him no rest in making the ascent of the Pyra- mid, nor will they suffer him to enjoy, undisturbed, the magnificent prospect from the summit. And woe be to the luckless traveler who is persuaded to enter the cliambers with money in his pocket, and without a large measure of courage and firmness. There is no greater abatement to the pleasure of journey- ing in the East than this never satisfied demand of money. It meets the traveler at every turn, like the flies of the an- cient plague, and comes up into liis very bed-chamber, like the frogs, and there is no escaping it. Backshish is not asked as a matter of charity ; every one who renders the slightest service, or who only makes an offer of service, or who even looks at you, whether vou wish him to look or not, feels that he has established a claim to your purse, and dogs your steps with incessant appeals which it is impossi- ble to thrust aside. The claim is made with such vehe- mence and pertinacity, that you are almost persuaded to 364 AROUND THE WORLD. «e,v^/'-^' '■ o^^iJ^ •O/ifJS. THE PYRAMIDS. believe that in some way the miserable creatures who swarm around and follow you from place to place have become entitled to every thing you possess. If you could only purchase immunity by paying lil)erally there would be a satisfaction in doing it, but, like the flies in the fable, if you drive one swarm away, another at once takes its place. I will not tax the reader with a description of the Pyra- mids, with which every one is familiar ; nor of the Sphinx which sits a few hundred yards distant, looking out upon the valley of the Nile as it has looked for thousands of vears, a strange monument to the strano-e ideas of the an- cient Egyptians. After a stroll to the ruins of the old temples — long covered by the sand, but now excavated — we returned to Cairo over the same road, and through the same green valley which, at this season of the year, ap- pears fresher and greener every time that the eye rests upon it. Xor shall I here record our excursions to Old CAIMO TO JERUSALEM. 365 Cairo ; or to the new palaces of the Khedive, on whicli he is expending milUons of treasure, as if the wealth of the Indies were his ; or to the island of Rhoda, where we were told the infant Moses was found in the ark of bulrushes — ',->*§ A STBEET IN OAIBO. 366 AROUND THE WORLD. all these and other expeditions in the land of the Pharaohs must remain unrecorded for the present. JBriglit and beautiful was the morning when we left Cai- ro — but what morning is not bright in the East, the lands of the snnrising ? With the exception of one shower, of which I have made mention, we had not seen a drop fall from the clouds, and scarcely a cloudy day or hour, for many months. It is not pleasant always to live under a glowing sun, but smiling skies are usually welcome to a traveler. Through the crowd of donkeys and donkey -boys, por- ters, and idlers, we made our way to and into the railway station, and into the cars bound for Alexandria, and were on our way toward the sea and toward other lands. Be- fore leaving Cairo we heard that some home friends were coming up that day, and, meeting the train at the half-way station, I shouted their names while the cars were coming to a halt. There came back a response, and for a few brief moments we enjoyed one of those delightful inter- views which can be had only thousands of miles away from home, after having been strangers in strange lands for many long months of travel. Our words of ffi'eetino; and parting, our incpnries and replies, our items of infor- mation, which were confined to friends and matters of mu- tual interest, were brief and hurried, but into those few minutes we crowded an amount of pleasure that might be spread over many days of ordinary life. These stolen in- terviews in the wide desert— these snatches of home de- light, as one flits by another in a strange land, are not to be measured by moments. Our time in Alexandria we divided between the Cata- combs, and Pompey's Pillar, and Cleopatra's Needle, and ancient and modem Alexandria. Ko one who has ever lived in the Eepublic of Letters can come to this spot and not be harassed with the remen'brance of that wealth of learning Avhich was here committed to the flames. What a treasure would the Alexandrian Library be at the present VAIBO TO JERUSALEM. 3(37 day ! If one such repository bad escaped the ravages of war, and of barbarism, and of time, what a flood of light would it shed upon the dark past ! More than one million volumes are reputed to have been gathered in the Library and Museum, the most of which were burned during the wars of Julius Csesar. The Library was subsequently re- stored and enlarged, but again the torch was applied by the Moslem conquerors. When importuned to save it, Omar coolly replied, " If these writings of the Greeks agree with the Book of God, they are useless, and need not be preserved ; if they disagree, they are pernicious, and ought to be destroved." In what remains of ancient Alexandria there is nothing more interesting than the site of ancient Pharos, the first of those towers of light that now stud the shores of every sea, like guardian angels watching over the mariners. The light-house of Pharos is counted amono- the seven wonders of the world, and well does it deserve a place in the cata- alogue. It was a massive building of pure marble, erect- ed by the orders of Ptolemy Philadelphus, whose name was to be inscribed in the marble in front. The architect made himself infamous, but did not detract from the fame of his emperor, by a deceitful ruse. He engraved his own name in the marble, covering it with stucco, on which he placed the following insci'iption : " King Ptolemy to the Saviour Gods for the use of those who travel by sea." When, in the course of time, the stucco fell, it revealed an- other more durable inscription : " Sostratus of Cnidos, the son of Dexiphanes, to the Saviour Gods for all who travel by sea." There is a light-house now standing on the same site. We were now bound as pilgrims for the Holy Land. Embarking at Alexandria on the French steamer, we were at Port Said, the Mediterranean entrance to the Suez Ca- nal, early the next moi-ning. Should the canal be a per- manent success, this port will be an important station be- tween the East and the West. Its formation was one of 368 AROUXD THE WOULD. the most difficult parts of the great enterprise. The sea at this point being shallow, scarcely more than a mud flat, it was necessary to construct a harbor, and, at the same time, to excavate it to the proper depth. Two breakwaters were run out more than a mile into the sea, inclosino- a harbor. As there was no stone for their construction, the great projector supplied the deficiency by making conci-ete blocks of sand and cement, which look like blocks of gran- ite. A light-house, wharves, and other structures at Port Said have been built of the same material, and promise to endure the action alike of air and water for ages. We left Port Said at 5 o'clock P.M. Late at night I was sitting on deck, enjoying the swell of the sea in the open air in preference to the confinement of the cabin, and by necessity became a listener to the conversation of two Enghsh gentlemen who sat near me. One said to the other, "What a host of Americans we have on board!" (The Americans comprised about two thirds of the passen- gers.) " Yes," replied his friend, " and it is the same wher- ever we go in the East. I should think they had room enough in their own country to wander in without coming- over here in such crowds. Why! they can travel eight days and eight nights in one train of cars without stopping, but they do not seem contented even with that." And they voted that it was an unauthorized proceeding for American sovereigns to invade that part of the world in such num- bers, evidently forgetting that they had stepped off fi-om the little island of Great Britain without any better author- ity. It was gratifying to me to observe that they had be- come so familiar with the geography, or at least the extent of our country, which few have been able to comprehend. Several years since I met, in a social circle in London, a very intelligent English lady, who, in the course of our con-- versation, feeling called upon to make some remark in re- gard to the country from whicli I came, said to me, " I see by the papers that you have had a fire in America," appar- ently regarding our continent as a small village compared CAIRO TO JERUSALEM. 369 with the immense extent of the British Isles. Having re- cently left New York, I felt bound to apologize for not hav- ing been at the fire, or, at least, for not knowing w^here it was, and replied that I did not know what one she referred to ; that we often burned a large part of our cities over to build them up in better style. (It was a year in which there had been extensive fires in Milwaukie, St. Louis, and San Francisco, and other Western cities, some account of which had met her eye without making any particular imJ3ression.) To account for my ignorance, and to give her some idea of the extent of our country, I stated that not long before leaving JSTew Yoi^v I had taken a steamer in the interior of Pennsylvania and sailed a hundred miles down the Monon- gahela to Pittsburg, a thousand miles down the Ohio to the Mississippi, another thousand down the Mississippi to New Orleans, and that I was then a hundred and fifty miles from the mouth of the stream on which I had first embarked. This statement, although literally true, was such a tax upon her credulity that it suddenly stopped the conversation. She made no reply, evidently regarding me as another Baron Munchausen. But an English gentleman, who had traveled extensively in the United States, saw my unhappy position, and came to my relief. He said he had been on our Western rivers, and knew that what I said was true. A good understanding was restored, and all would have passed off well enough had not a young New Yorker present felt disposed to indulge in a bit of pleasantry and enlarge her ideas of American scenery. Noting her surprise, he said, " Madam, we have lakes in America so lai-ge that you might take up the whole of England and drop it into one of them, and it would not make a ripple on the shore." We were then all at sea again, and were both set down as incorrigi- ble illustrations of our national fondness for large stories. The United States of America are much better known to the world at large than they were but a few years since. Our late struggle for national life, affecting as it did, in one Avay and another, nearly every land, has made the nations Aa 370 AMOUND THE WOMLD. better acquainted with our geography, onr resources, and our strengtli, and never did tlie country or the nation stand higher in the estimation of the world than at the present time, if I may judge from the reception of Americans be- fore and since the war. Fifteen or twenty years ago, as I can testify from personal experience, Americans, in travel- ing abroad, were constantly and often rudely placed upon the defensive wlien their nationalitj' became known, and they are not in the habit of concealing it. It was not safe, even by the wayside or in a railcar, to addi'ess an English- man on the most ordinary topic without an introduction, or unless he had first spoken ; and when the subject of our country came up, it was the next thing to a declaration of war. 1 have many interviews of this character in mem- ory. Our late war, in all its liistory and its results, developing the indomitable energy of the people, their invincible at- tachment to the government under which they have at- tained to their present state of prosperity, and their inde- pendence of all foreign alliances, has greatly elevated the country in the eyes of the world. With no other people is this cliange more apparent than with the children of what we are wont to call the mother country. I take pleasure in bearing the most cordial testimony to the friendly bear- ing of Englishmen in all parts of the world, and to their friendly interest in our land. Time and again, as I have been passing through Eastern countries, where the interests of England are predominant, has the expression of such feeling been made, and with it the acknowledgment that while our war was in progress the sympathy of the more intelligent and influential classes of Great Britain, at home and abroad, was against us. They have as frankly con- fessed the cause ; they thought we were becoming too pow- erful ; they wished to see our strength divided, and for this reason they desired the success of the rebellion. But they now see their error, and heartily express the regret that they held the views and took the course they did. Such is CAIRO TO JERUSALEM. 37]^ the logic of success. May this international amity, which on both sides is now hearty, never again be interrupted ! It was evening when we left Port Said. When the morning came 1 rose early, and with no little anxiety look- ed out upon the sea. There is no harbor at Jaffa, and, as the anchorage is a mile from the shore, unless the sea is comparatively quiet, it is impossible to have any communi- cation with the land. In rough weather the steamer does not stop, so that passengers are frequently carried by, and those on shore who have come down from Jerusalem to take the steamer are compelled to remain another week, and, perhaps, be doomed to a second disappointment from the same cause. Happily for us, it was calm, and we reach- ed the shore without difficulty. Jaffa is built upon a rocky hill directly on the sea, and the town rises so abruptly that it shows to good advantage. But if there be any beauty in its situation or appearance, the charm vanishes the moment one sets foot upon the shore and enters its dirty, winding streets, to be jostled by its miserable crowd of idle Arabs, camels, and donkeys. Our experience in getting ourselves and our baggage to the hotel in the American colony on the outskirts of the town, attended by nearly a score of porters who demanded back- shish for all sorts of services, actual and imaginary, would make another amusing record, but there is not space for it. So many Americans were arriving that the people were in- dulging "great expectations," and nothing but princely gifts would satisfy them. I tendered the leader of the band that escorted us wdiat was his due, but he indignantly rejected it, demanding five times as much, and, when I qui- etly put the money into my pocket, he and his whole crew lashed themselves into a towering passion in true Oriental style, and made all sorts of threatening demonstrations. Verily, iC seemed as if the Philistines were upon us. In the course of an hour or two he expressed his willingness to accept what I offered, said he was satisfied, and added a " Thank you." 372 AROUND THE WORLD. We tarried at this ancient harbor of Iliram and Solo- mon, and of Jonah's embarkation for Tarshish, only long enough to niake ari-angements for the journey to Jerusa- lem. A new road had been recently built, well graded, and affording a carriage-track twenty-five or thirty feet in width the whole distance ; but the carriages were wanting, and we must needs take the saddle. The distance from Jaffa to Jerusalem is only thirty-six miles, but very few not inured to the saddle can accomplish it in a single day, while it is often done in eight or ten hours by those who have been hardened to the exercise, and sometimes in less. It was afternoon on Saturday when we were prepared for a start. We had sent forward to engage rooms at the Eussian convent at Eamleh, a few hours distant, where we were to spend the Sabbath — a far more quiet and desirable resting-place than the miserable city of Simon the Tanner. We rode out of Jaffa through the orange-groves that sur- round the city. The trees were still loaded, with the gold- en fruit, and more magnificent specimens I have never seen. One gentleman whom I met cut a twig having on it six or- anges which together weighed between seven and eight pounds, and another had two oranges that weighed five pounds. Our course was over the beautiful plains of Sharon, then covered wnth wheat-fields in the early green, and decked with a profusion of wild flowers, and the ride was one of indescribable interest. We were traversing the plain which for thousands of years had been memorable in history and storied in song ; the plain which had been trod by prophets and apostles ; the plain which, time and again, in ancient and in latter days, had shook to the tramp of marching hosts. The classic sea was behind us ; before us rose the hills of Judea ; on our right, as far as the eye could reach toward Philistia, stretched the plains of Ajalon. The gorgeous sun of Palestine had gone down in glory behind the sea before we reached our stopping-place, and, but for the gathering shadows, we would gladly have lin- CAIRO TO JERUSALEM. 373 gered longer on the plains to read npon them, and upon the skies of Judea, the long and sacred history of the past. AVe followed our dragoman through the winding streets of Ram- leh, and were soon resting in our quarters on the house-top of the Russian convent. The lower and only story of the convent was appropriated to our horses and the pack-mules, while we ascended to the roof, a broad pavement, around which were rows of small rooms ready for our reception. Here we spent our first Sabbath in Palestine. The stillness of the wide plains surrounded us, scared}^ broken by day or by night save by the muezzin's musical voice from the minaret adjoining, sounding forth the call to prayer. More than once were we roused from our slumbers by the solemn chant, "Allah ekber! Allah ekber! Eshedon en la AUah ilia Allah!" This is repeated seven times by day, and as often by night. The following is a translation of the usual form, varied only on Friday, the Mohammedan Sabbath : " God is great ! God is great ! I testify that there is no god but God. I testify that Mohammed is the Prophet of God. Come to peace ! Come to happiness ! God is great ! There is no god but God !" On the Sabbath we gathered from their tents, and from the Latin convent, all the Americans whom we could find, and had our usual services on the house-top. It was liter- ally a sacred day, and one to be consecrated in memory. We could enter into the feelings of the patriarch when, far away from home, he fell asleep by the wayside, and awoke to say, " Surely the Lord is in this place, and I knew it not. This is none other but the house of God, and this is the gate of heaven." We rose at two o'clock on Monday morning to resume our journey beneath a brilliant sky. The stars were out in hosts — the same stars which shone upon the land of Canaan when Abraham first passed through it — the same stars which were shining when One, the brightest of all, was add- 374 ABOUND THE WORLD. ed to their number. The moon was shecldiiig its peaceful h'ght upon the phiins as we struck out again upon the track Ziouward. Soft as is the evening moonhght, and suggest- ive of sweet and sacred thoughts, the moonhght of the morning is softer and more sacred. Entering, as we were, upon the Holy Land, and traversing the beautiful plains of Sharon up toward the Holy City, an awe of solemnity stole over us, and almost in silence we rode onward, hour after hour, until the east, toward which our faces were turned, became luminous with the advancing day. And now the path became more rugged. We were as- cending the mountains which are round about Jerusalem, and which guard it like the walls of a citadel. We paused but a short time to break our fast, and were again in the saddle pressing on to stand within the gates of Zion. More than once, as we reached an eminence, expecting to see from it the city which was once " the joy of the whole earth,'' were we disappointed ; it was still beyond. At length our eyes beheld the sight. As we reached the last height, the whole familiar scene, with all its hallowed memories, was before us. We needed no one to point out the various lo- calities. It was a scene on which we had been looking from childhood. We needed no one to say to us. That is the Holy City ; there, to the right, is Mount Zion, the city of David ; there, to the left, where rises the dome of the Mosque of Omar, is the site of the ancient temple ; the height beyond, now looking so barren and desolate, is the Mount of Olives — the favorite resort of Him who came from heaven to sojourn upon earth, and the spot last press- ed by his sacred feet ere he ascended to his native skies. The memories of the sacred scenes which made the places so familiar even to our eyes came thronging upon our hearts, until we could scarcely collect our thoughts enough to imagine in what age of this old world M^e were ap- proaching the Holy City, or whether it had any age other than that in which the most important events in its history transpired. THE HOLY CITY. 375 And this is Jerusalem ! the mount whei-e Abraham bound Isaac in the wilderness, and laid him on the altar ! the city of David and Solomon ! the spot which God selected for the display of his glory in the Holy of Holies ! the place where he was long manifest in the flesh — where Jesus lived and taught ! the city in which he was arrested and tried as a malefactor! This is the spot where he was stretched upon the cross, and where he cried " It is finished," and bowed his head and died ! Slowly and silently we wound our way down the hill- side, past the Russian hospice, along the ancient wall to the Damascus Gate, passing through a strange crowd of frown- ing Mussulmans to the Mediterranean Hotel, and then we rested in Salem, the City of Peace. " Pray for the peace of Jerusalem : they shall prosper that love thee. Peace be within thy walls, and prosperity within thy palaces. For my brethren and my companions' sakes, I will now say, Peace be within thee." XXIX. THE HOLY CITY. In the Hotel Mediterranean (it sounds almost profane to speak of a hotel in Jerusalem) we found more of comfort than one could expect, and, until another day had come, were not disposed to leave it to explore the city. But with the morning we went forth to trace the scenes which, eighteen hundred years as;©, made this mountain so mem- orable in the history of our world and in the records of time. With little faith in the traditions that have mapped out the holy places in the sacred city, I determined to give myself up to the spirit of the scene, and, first of all, to follow, in imagination at least, the path the Saviour trod when he was led as a lamb to the slauirhter. Accordina:- 376 AROUND THE WORLD. ly, 1 told the guide to take us first to tlie house of Pilate. The one now bearing this name occupies the same general locality as that of the Koman governor, but there is noth- ing to establish the identity, and as little to assist one in recalling the scene of the judgment-hall. Following the Via Dolorosa., we come to the Chapel of the Flagellation, VIA DOLOROSA. and then to the Arch of the Ecce Homo, said to cover the spot were Jesus came forth wearing the crown of tliorns THE HOLT CITY. >< < and the purple robe, when Pilate exclaimed to the people, " Behold the man ;" and then we followed, as near as we could, that strange procession which led the holy victim on toward Calvary. Here we are told the Saviour of the world sank under the burden of his cross, when Simon the Cyre- nean was compelled to take it up and bear it after him ; here we pass what are called the liouses of Dives and Laz- arus, and presently reach the spot where M'e are informed Veronica appeared with a napkin to wipe the sweat from the sacred brow, when the portrait of the Saviour was mi- raculously impressed upon it. The pretended relic is pre- served as one of the chief treasures of the Basilica of St. Peter at Pome. Making a slight ascent through a narrow street, we come at length to the open square in front of the Church of the Holy Sepulchi-e, a sort of bazar for the sale of relics, and a CULUCU UK TU£ liuLV SEPCLCUEE. 37S AROUND THE WORLD. place of gathering for all sorts of pilgrims. The door of the church is closed. The time for the opening has come and passed, but the Turkish officials who have it in charge delay, and still longer delay, hoping that a party of stran- gers, not having the look of ordinary pilgrims, will tender backshish. At length we are admitted. The Church of the Holy Sepulchre might more appro- priately be called the Church of all the Holy Places. Ti-a- dition has so conveniently located many of them within a few yards of each other that they are all inclosed under one roof. Near the door is the " Stone of Unction," a marble slab, on which the body of our Lord is said to have been anointed for the burial. The dome of the building covers the Holy Sepulchre, wdiich stands in the centre of the area — not a tomb "hewn out in the rock," according to tlie Scripture narrative, but a marble structure about six feet square, and the same in height, apparently built on the pavement. It is asserted that the surrounding rock has lieen removed, and that what remained was incased in mar- ble, accounting for its present appearance. The whole structure is above the floor of the church, and bears no siojn of attachment to the original rock. The coincidence of " stooping down" to enter or look within the sepulchre, as did Peter on the morning of the resurrection, is pre- served by a low doorway through which we enter. About one third of the width of the interior is occupied by a mar- ble slab representing the stone on which the body of Jesus was laid. It is fitted up as an altar, and on and above it are costly gifts, set thick with precious stones, presented by different sovereigns of Europe. A Gi'eek priest was stand- ing at the head when we first stepped within. He court- eously gave us the names of the royal donors of the gifts recently made, and handed us fi-om the altar some of the fragrant flowers that are daily placed there in profusion. The priests of the different sects in turn stand guard in the tomb, a necessary precaution with such a crowd of pil- grims and strangers. Free access to the holy places was THE HOL T CITY. 3^9 allowed to all, nor was there any disorder or confusion in the crowd of visitors which thronged the church all day long. A flight of steps leads to an upper chapel, which is said to cover the Hill of Calvarv, and a round hole in the rock is pointed out as that in which stood the cross while the Redeemer hung upon it. A cleft in the rock, which is shown, is said to have been made when Jesus yielded up the ghost, " and the earth did quake and the rocks were rent." All the localities, even to the places where Mai-y, the mother of Jesus, stood while his body was prepared for the burial, and where Christ appeared to Mary Magda- lene on the morning of the resurrection, are pointed out with the same precision. Descending a long stone stairway, we were taken to the Chapel of St. Helena, and then to a still lower recess, ap- propriately called, in English, " the Chapel of the Invention of the Cross." I can have no faith in the miracle said to have attended the finding of the three crosses in perfect preservation three hundred years after the crucifixion. It is without satisfactory proof ; the links in the chain of evi- dence are altogether too wide apart; and I can see no oc- casion for the miracle. Even the pretence has been used the world over to encourage a superstitious worship of the supposed relic instead of faith in the victim that hung upon the cross. I am equally incredulous in regard to the iden- tity of most of the holy places. Without professing anv accurate knowledge of the topography of Jerusalem,! have familiarized mvself with the aro-uments of those who have endeavored to establish their verity, but it seems to me only fancy or superstition can be satisfied with the evidence. On my first visit to the Latin Chapel connected with the Holy Sepulchre, the priests and monks had just commenced the vesper service preparatory to visiting the stations here grouped together. As I entered, a Capucin monk, Mdiom I afterward found to be a jolly Irishman on a pilgrimage to the Huly City, handed me a Latin Breviary, and I joined 380 AROUND THE WORLD. the procession in the entire circuit, reading with tliera the description of the scenes connected with the death and burial of the Redeemer. The chants from the Latin Vul- gate were well rendered, and would have been impressive even in other circumstances. At the close of the service, Father Antonio (lie gave me his name as soon as it was concluded) conducted us through the chapels in possession of the Latins, showing us the relics which had been left in Jerusalem by the Knights of St. John, and treating us with great courtesy. I must confess I thought him rather pro- fane in his bearing, for he spoke with a levity of the place w^hich was far from being consonant witli my feelings, even though I could not satisfy myself that I w^as, without doubt, upon the scene of the great events associated with the i-e- puted holy places. It is not a pleasant thought, even to those who have no superstitious reverence for any of the localities of the Holy City, that these places are in the keeping of the followers of the false prophet ; and it is still more painful to con- template the scenes of strife, amounting not unfrequently to bloodshed, that have occurred upon this sacred, if not holy ground. Nowhere else is the hostility between Latin and Greek Cln-istians more intense or more ready to break out than on the very spot where, as they profess to believe, the Prince of Peace shed his blood for their redemption, and where his body was laid in the grave. From the Holy Sepulchre we went to Mount Zion, the City of David, which is partially reclaimed from Moham- medan defilement, and from Oriental and Roman supersti- tion, by the establishment of a Christian mission under Bishop Gobat, who has had much encouragement in seek- ing out the lost sheep of the house of Israel. Sad and mis- erable is the condition of the Jews in this city of their fa- thers, as it is in most parts of the world. Their quarter in Jerusalem, as in nearly every Oriental and European city, is the most wretched and filthy of all, and they seem here, as every where, to be suffering the curse which their fathers THE HOL Y CITY. 381 im'okecl upon themselves and their descendants when they cried, " His blood be on ns and on our children." They still cling to the curse, even though they meet once a week to weep over the desolation of the Temple and the city. And even this is with most of them a mere formality. At the appointed hour I went out to the "Wailing Place. More than a hundred Jews were assembled, but not more than one in ten appeared to enter into the spirit of the service. The rest were looking around upon the crowd as uncon- cerned, many of them more unconcerned, than the Gentiles who came merely to see the Jews. Even the Rabbi who read the penitential and mourning psalms, and those who joined him in weeping over the stones of the Temple, man- ifested no real grief. "As the mountains are round about Jerusalem, so the Lord is round about his people from henceforth even for- ever." The city itself is set upon a hill, surrounded, except- ing at one point, by deep valleys, while far above its high- est elevation, to the north and to the south, to the east and to the west, rises the circle of mountains, hemming it in and guarding it on every side. In looking down upon Jernsa- lem thus peculiarly situated, I was often reminded of a precious jewel deeply set in gold to protect it against all injury and loss, and of the more wonderful setting of the human eye. Of the mountains that are round about Jeru- salem, there is only one from which to view the city to ad- vantage, the one most fraught with sacred memories. The second day after our arrival we crossed the brook Ivedron and ascended the Mount of Olives, the nearest point of earth to heaven, if we may make such a comparison, be- cause from this the Son of God ascended to the skies, lead- ing the way for those who are to rise and li^e with him. Before passing out of the walls we turned aside to visit the Mosque of Omar, on the site of the Temple of Solomon. The mosque itself, and the extensive grounds in the midst of which it stands, in years past were guarded with jealous care by the Mohammedans, and it was with great difficulty 382 AROUND THE WOMLD. that Christians could gain admittance ; but of late there lias been little hinderance or objection. Arrangements hav- ing been made beforehand, we presented ourselves at the outer gate, and, provided with slippers for the more sacred parts of the inclosure, were conducted by a Mohammedan guide through the whole area, into the mosque and even beneath it, to the Cave of Rock, which we were allowed to examine thoroughly. This is one of the ancient places about which there can be no reasonable doubt. Here, within this square, once rose that magnificent building, the grandest and most glorious on which the sun ever shone ; here it was that Jehovah came down and dwelt amona: men in the visible glory of the Shekinah, long before the Son of God dwelt on earth in the likeness of mortal man. Here the gorgeous Temple service was instituted and celel)rated for centuries, until sacrifices and ceremonies were abolished by the offering up of the one great sacrifice, the Lamb of God. It was refreshing to meditate in the deep stillness of this sacred spot, where no idling intruders are permitted to enter, as in so many places, to destroy the sacredness of the scene. Leaving the Mosque of Omar and the courts of the an- cient temple, after visiting " the gate that is called Beauti- ful," we passed out of the city walls by St. Stephen's Gate, so named because the martyr Stephen was stoned just out- side the gate. Descending the steep side of the mountain, we came to the bed of the Kedron, at the bottom of the Valley of Jehoshaphat. It was simply the hed for a stream, not a drop of water moistening its stones. In the rainy season a torrent sweeps through its entire length. Just as we commence the ascent of the Mount of Olives, we come upon what is called the Garden of Gethsemane, a square plot of ground, perhaps half an acre, surrounded by a high stone wall, and containing a few aged olive-trees, with plants and shrubs. The wall is confessedly modem, nor is there any conclusive evidence that the spot was the scene of the Saviour's agony and of his betrayal, while to my mind TEE HOL T CITY. 3S3 THE BEAUTIFCL GATE. the probabilities are all against it. There is nothing that marks it as a place for retirement. It was doubtless, then as now, on the frequented road from the city to the Mount of Olives, and a public place. The vague tradition connect- ed with flie spot is not enough to mark it as that to which Jesus retired for secret prayer, and in which he endured the mysterious agony when one of the heavenly host ap- peared to strengthen him, as liis disciples, overcome with fatigue and sleep, left him to suffer alone. Tlie inclosure belongs to the Latins, or Roman Catholics ; but the Greeks, not to be outdone, have a garden near b}- which they as- sert is the real Gethsemane, thus bringing their rival claims into a sort of contempt. And now we climb the Mount of Olives, in all probabil- ity by the very path so often trod by holy feet — the feet which last pressed the earth upon the summit of this mount. 384 AROUND THE WORLD. JERUSALEM AND GETIISEMA>;E. There is no other of all the sacred places in or near Jerusa • lem that may be visited with more confidence in its being the scene of events associated with the Savionr's life. I care not to know whether this precise rood of earth on which I am standing was the one on which Jesns stood when lie spake the words of the Sermon on tlie Mount, or whether THE HOLY CITY. 335 from this very spot he beheld the city and wept over it, saying, " If thou hadst known, even thou, at least in this thy day, the things which belong to thy peace," or whether on this precise spot he was talking with his disciples when " he was taken up and a cloud received him out of their sight." It is enough to know that the mountain on which I am standing was the scene of these great events, and that I am brought so closely into communication with the past, with the days of his flesh, and so near to that heaven- ly world in which I hope to see that form that was carried up in a cloud and hid from mortal sight. Indeed, it is a decided relief to my feelings, I might say an aid to my faith, it certainly with me is conducive to sacred recollec- tions and pious emotion, that there is no one near to say that precisely here these words of Christ were spoken, or that this identical spot was last touched by his sacred feet. I can commune with the past far better without than with such meretricious helps. I found it very pleasant again and again to visit this holy mount, to linger around it, and from its summit to look down upon the Holy City, and backward into the past, and upward into the skies, as if through the opening made by the form of the ascending Redeemer. The summit of Olivet being 800 feet above the Temple area, one looks directly down upon the city which is spread out before him like a map. Every building and every lo- cality can be distinguished. Looking eastward, the Valley of the Jordan and the Dead Sea, although nearly- twenty miles distant, and about 4000 feet lower, are seen so dis- tinctly that one can hardly believe they are so far off. The surface of the Dead Sea is the lowest point on the face of the globe, being 1312 feet below the Mediterranean and the ocean, and to look into it from the Mount of Olives is like looking down into the depths of the earth itself. I was greatly interested in tracing out the path that King David took when he fled from the treacheiy of Absalom. " And David went up bv the ascent of Mount Olivet, and ^ B B 386 AROUND THE WORLD. wept as he went up, and liad his head covered, and he went barefoot ; and all the people that was with him covered every man his head, and they went up, weeping as they went up." Nothing in the record of the reverses which kine:s have suffered could be more touchino;. The scene was constantly recurring to my mind as I went up the mountain from time to time, and I almost expected to meet Shimei as I passed over its summit. The Mohammed- ans were there with their curses, if he was not. One day, as we came from the Mount of Olives, we fol- lowed the valley of the brook Kedron, past the tomb of Absalom, to the Pool of Siloam, a rapid fall of between 300 and 400 feet within a mile and a half ; thence up the Valley of Hinnom, past the Jaffa Gate to the Damascus Gate, where we entered as on our first approach to the city. The same afternoon we rode out to Bethlehem, six miles due south from Jerusalem. After passing through the deep Yalley of Hinnom, the road over the plain is the fin- est in the vicinity of the Holy Cit}^ We were in sight of several ancient villages mentioned in Scripture, that were lying off upon the neighboring hills. The Convent of Mar Elias, said to be erected on the spot where the prophet was ministered to by angels, and the tomb of Rachel, one of the few well-authenticated places in the Holy Land, were directly upon the road-side. And then we came to that spot, the grand illumination of the book of time, on which the Son of God appeared in the likeness of man. I looked out upon the hill-sides for the shepherds, and listened for the voice, " Behold, I bring you good tidings of great joy, which shall be to all people ; for unto you is born this day, in the city of Da\id, a Saviour, which is Christ the Lord,'' and the chorus of the heavenl}' host, " Glory to God in the highest, and on earth peace, good will toward men." We entered the town of Bethlehem, where once the Lord of Glory entered our world in the lowly form of a little babe. We rode throuo-h the streets to the Church of the Nativity, and instead of meeting with the shepherds who THE HOL Y CITY. 337 said, " Let us now go even nnto Bethlehem, and see this thing which is come to pass," or the wise men who came to pour out their treasures at the feet of the infant Jesus, we were surrounded by a swarm of imperious mendicants and traffickers in relics, who seemed determined to shut out all sacred thoughts of the place. The star that once '' stood over where the young child was" had long since set, though shining brightly on so many other lands. May it soon arise again in all its glory on Bethlehem and all Judea ! Among the saddest of all the scenes connected with my pilgrimage to the Holy Land was a visit to Bethany, the one spot with which are associated many of the tenderest, sweetest memories of the life of our Lord, and more of our knowledge of his real humanity, his actual sympathy and friendship, than with all other places. Who has not, in reading the words, " Xow Jesus loved Martha and her sis- ter, and Lazarus," and of his resorting to Bethany to enjoy their society ; and of the message the sisters sent him when Lazarus was sick, and his going to weep with them when Lazarus was dead ; who, in reading all this in the Gospels, has not pictured to himself a rural village where he him- self would love to stand, if not to dwell ? But how changed is the present reality from the scene of his imaginings ! It is about two miles from Jerusalem. AVe left the city by St. Stephen's Gate, descending into the Yalley of Je- hoshaphat, passed Gethsemane, and took the path around the south side of the Mount of Olives, the very road by which, without doubt, the Saviour made his triumphal en- try into Jerusalem, when " a very great multitude spread their garments in the way ; others cut down branches from the trees and strewed them in the way ; and the multi- tudes that went before and that followed cried, saying, Hosanna to the Son of David ; blessed is he that cometh in the name of the Lord ; hosanna in tlie highest." The scene, as it lay before us, M-as one of mere desolation. Ut- ter sterility, without verdure or foliage save an occasional 388 AROUND THE WOULD. olive-tree, marked the whole way to Bethany. The path and the fields were lieaps of stone, and the town of Mary and Martha, a miserable clnster of cheerless huts, with a more miserable crowd of children and grown people de- manding charity, had not the first attractive feature. We looked into the reputed grave of Lazarus, and turned away in sadness at the desolation every where presented. And this is but a type of a great part of Palestine at the pres- ent day. In these rapid sketches of travel over so large a part of the surface of tlie globe, it will be impossible to give even a continuous account of all our wanderings. I must omit the record of our excursion to the Yalley of the Jordan and the Dead Sea, where we were attacked' by the Bedou- ins in the dead of night, as w^e were encamped on the plains of Jericho. We escaped without injury or loss, but a party of our friends, who w^ent down to Jericho soon aft- er, fell among thieves, who stripped them of their raiment, robbed them of all they had, and threatened their lives. The last day that we spent in Jerusalem was the day of rest. In the mornino- I attended the English service on Mount Zion, and heard an excellent sermon from the ven- erable Bishop Gobat. In the afternoon we had religious services of a social character at our hotel, attended by about twenty-five, chiefly Americans. Our landlord kind- ly prepared the dining-room for the services, and in this " large upper room, made ready," we joined in prayer and praise, and talked of the scenes which transpired in that Holy City nearly 2000 years ago — scenes in which the world has the same deep interest to-day as when they were transpiring on these holy mountains ; which will never lose their interest while the world shall stand, and which will only have gathered fresh interest when the world shall pass away. TU DAMASCUS AND CONSTANTINOPLE. 3SJ9 TO DAMASCUS AND CONSTANTINOPLE. The morning came on wliicli Ave were to take our de- parture, and I can not say that I regretted to look for the last time upon the city, filled though it is with holy memo- ries. I never had an intense desire to enter the earthly Canaan, althouo-h it had long been one of the unsettled purposes of my life to do so. Knowing its forlorn, desolate state, so different from what it must have been when Abi'a- ham dwelt at Mamre, or when David and Solomon reigned at Jerusalem, or when a greater than patriarchs and kings sojourned in the land ; knowing how completely the traces of their footsteps had been obliterated, and the sacred scenes connected with their lives changed and desecrated, I could scarcely tell whether I desired most to gratify a common wish, or to cherish in my heart memories of the land de- rived from reading the Word of God. But, journeying homeward from more eastern climes, I could not pass by the land with which is linked all the most sacred history of the past, and with which are associated all the holiest an- ticipations of the future. I entered it ; I traveled and tar- ried in it, and I turned away from it with a feeling of sad- ness, but with no regret. I presume that every traveler experiences a measure of disappointment on entering Palestine, especially in visiting Jerusalem. He comes with all the sacred emotions that were excited in childhood, strengthened and deepened with his growth, now raised to their utmost by the very sight of the land. He does not expect to find it, as in days long ago, flowing with milk and honey, or to see Jerusalem as it was before the glory had departed ; but few are prepared 390 AROUND THE WORLD. to see it so waste and desolate. While in Jerusalem, I found myself continually repeating the words of the la- menting prophet : " Is this the city that men call the per- fection of beauty, the joy of the whole earth ?" The frown of God is every where resting on the land ; it may be read not only in the desolation of the Temple and of the Holy City, but in the dust of the earth and the stones of the field. The laud lieth waste and mourneth, and no Christian trav- eler can fail to weep over it. It seems as if God had been sweeping it with the besom of destruction, obliterating the traces and attractions of its sacred scenes for the very pur- pose of preventing the idolatrous reverence for holy places which is even now carried to such an extent, and to impress upon the world the words of Jesus to the woman of Sama- ria : " Woman, believe me, the hour cometh when ye shall neither in this mountain, nor yet at Jerusalem, worship the Father. God is a Spirit, and they that worship him must worship him in spirit and in truth." Early on Monday morning, our horses saddled and our baggage packed, we waited for the guard. From day to day, after our return from the Valley of the Jordan, we had accounts of fresh robberies and attacks upon travelers on the road to Jaffa. One poor Jew had been robbed and nearly murdered, and others had suffered in like manner. Through the American consul, Mr. Hay, I had made an ap- plication to the governor at Jerusalem for a guard, unless he would be responsible for our safe passage. He sent us word that we must have a military escort, which he pro- posed to send on his own account. After every thing was in readiness for the journey, we waited an hour, and began to grow impatient, when at length a cavass made his ap- pearance with a message from the governor that we could go without the guard, and he would be responsible for any loss or damage that we might sustain. We could do noth- ing more, and accordingly w^e passed out the Damascus Gate, ascended the height, turned to take a last look of the city and of the mountains that are round about Jerusalem, TO DAMASCUS AND CONSTANTINOPLE. 39^ and began tlie descent toward the Mediterranean. As the sun was setting we re-entered Kamleh, where we spent an- other night within sound of the muezzin's voice. With the break of day we rose to cross again the plains of Sha- ron, and early in the morning rode into Jaffa. The French steamer Tage was at anchor off the town ; the sea was calm, relieving us of the apprehension that we might be com- pelled to lie over for many days (as were a party who came down the week before), and without any delay, and under the most pleasing promise of a smooth passage, we were taken on board. About midnight we passed Mount Carmel, the scene of that sublime trial between the Prophet Elijah and the prophets of Baal, and early on the following morning were off Beyrout, the most homelike and the most beautiful city on the eastern shores of the Mediterranean. Indeed, it was a home to one who had been at my side in all my journey- ings, for here, at the foot of old Lebanon, " On that classical sea whose azure vies With the green of its shores and the blue of its skies," she first looked out upon this little world which we had been surrounding, and now, for the first time since early childhood, she was returning to gaze once more upon these sublime mountains, and to look out from theii' heights upon this cerulean sea. I had no such memories to revive, but, from my first view of Beyrout, I wrote it down as just the place one might choose to be born in, if he should happen to have any choice in the matter. During the many days that we spent at this place, I was more and more charmed with its beauty, and never grew weary of looking out upon the blue sea and up the grand heights of Lebanon, or of watching the constantly shifting lights and shades. And when, as once, the brow of Lebanon grew dark and then angry with gathering clouds, and peals of thunder came rolling down its sides and echoing through its chasms, the scene became sublime No city in the East has been more changed within the '1- lr^iu;i:i:iii'iiiiiW':;H::'ii'. TO DA MASCUS AND CONSTANTINOPLE. 393 last half century than Bevrout. Fifty years ao-o it was a small town — a collection of mud and stone houses, sur- rounded bj a wall, but haying nothing imposing or attract- ive in its appearance. It is now a large, well-built city, a place of great and growing importance, having long ago burst through its mural inclosure. It has become also a moral centre for a large part of the East — the seat of ex- tensive missionary operations, which extend over the moun- tains of Lebanon and far into the interior. When the lirst inissionaries from America, Messrs. Goodell and Bird, with their wives, landed in 1S23, thej became iirst objects of cu- riosity, then of bitter hostility, and for a long time their lives were in dano'er. On the breaking out of the Greek Revolution they were obliged to leave the country for want of protection, but they were succeeded in after years by one of the noblest bauds of Christian laborers that has occupied any part of the great field of the world, among ^yhom were Dr. Eli Smith, the companion of Dr. Robinson in his bio- graphical researches in the Holy Land ; Dr. Thomson, au- thor of " The Land and the Book ;" Dr. Van Dyck, the em- inent Arabic scholar ; Dr. Calhoun, now of Abeih ; Dr. Bliss, President of the Arabic College, and others — a gal- axy of shining names. Among the tribes inhabiting the mountains around Bey- rout, the most peculiar and interesting are the Druses. They are a fine, noble-looking race, generally intelligent, and able to read and write. Their sacred rites are performed in strict seclusion, as secretly as the rites of Freemasonry. Among their articles of belief is the transmigration of souls, not into bodies of the lower animals, as some Oriental nations believe, but into those of other human Ijeings. They hold that the number of the race, or at least of human souls, does not increase with the addition of new members to the human family ; that when a man dies, his soul goes into the body of some infant who is born at the same time, and that the souls of all good Druses enter bodies born in China. On this belief is founded a tradition that there is in China 39-1 ABOUND THE WORLD. an immense army of Druses, 25,000,000 strong, who are coming over to Syria, not only to liberate them from the Turkish yoke, but to put them in possession of this whole country, if not of the whole earth. In a visit which I made to one of the mountain villages, the Druses of the place learned that I had recently come from China, and I was waited on by one and another, among them a sheikh, who came to make a host of inquiries in regard to what I had seen of the country, which is to them, as it was not to me, a paradise. But the point to which I found they were de- sirous to come, and which they finally brouglit out, was whether 1 had seen any of this grand army of liberation. I assured them that, although I had been in different parts of the empire, I had not seen or heard of a single Druse in all China, and that 1 was quite sure I should have heard something about it if such an army existed there. My words sadly disappointed them, but it M'as evident they did not carry conviction to their minds. They fell back upon the firm belief that the army was yet to come from that distant country. After the fearful massacre of 1860, in which many of the villages of Mount Lebanon were desolated, the French gov- ernment sent into Syria an army of occupation, or protec- tion to the Christians, which was withdrawn in a few years, but the army left behind it one monument for which thou- sands of travelers have blessed its memory. This is the splendid road across the mountains to Damascus. Such a road was a novelty in the East ; the natives regarded it as a desecration of sacred soil, and an outrage upon the rights of donkeys and muleteers ; but it has been a blessing to wayfarers, and has greatly facilitated traffic, not to say com- merce, between these two cities. The grandeur of the mountains of Lebanon exceeded all my anticipations. Not even after watching them from the sea, and then, day after day, from the city of Beyrout, M^as I prepared for such sublimity. They attain, indeed, no mean height, being 10,000 feet above the level of the Med- DAMASCUS TO CONSTANTINOPLE. 395 iterranean ; and, as if scorning to turn aside for any obsta- cle, this road mounts some of the loftiest ridges, and for miles runs along the brow of chasms two or three thousand feet deep. It was not at all in accordance with the ancient ideas of Oriental travel to be making the passage of these loftj mountains in a well-ordered French diligence ; but this mode had been chosen out of regard to the more deli- cate members of our party, and those of us who were en- dowed with more strength were nothing loth to exchange the saddle for a comfortable seat in an Occidental carriage. Nor did we enjoy the magnificent scenery any less for the change. We were to start for Damascus at four o'clock in the morning, nearly two hours before daylight. As the dili- gence would not come to our hotel, Mohammed like we concluded to go to the diligence. On retiring, we had given special and repeated charge to landlord and porter to call us by two o'clock, that we might have every thing in readi- ness for our night walk of nearly a mile to the ofiice ; but I had learned that the proverb has double force in the East : " If you wish a thing done, do it yourself," and accordingly I attended to my own waking. If I had not risen and called myself, we should have spent the day in Beyrout in- stead of crossing Mount Lebanon. Not very cheerful was that walk through the streets of Beyrout under a cloudy, moonless sky, with a single lantern dimly burning, nor was the first hour or two of our journey much more inspiriting. In the darkness our thoughts were all the while turning to the easy couches we had left more than to the scenery around us, which we could not see, or the views of Damas- cus, its rivers and its plains, which were yet before us. But when the morning fairly dawned, as we were ascending those lofty heights from which Hiram had cut the cedars to build and adorn the Temple of Solomon, and when, in the frequent windings of the road, as we made our zigzag way upward, we looked back upon the plain and the city of Beyrout far down below, and then out upon the sea, the 396 AROUND THE WORLD. thernioinetei" of our hearts rose as manv de2:rees as did the thermometer of Fahrenlieit. And all day long we were catching new glimpses of the sublime heights and sublime depths, until, as we were drawing near to Damascus, the hoary head of Mount Hermon appeared in the distance. The valley of Coelo-Syria is a beautiful episode in the journey. The mountains have little verdure or foliage. Occasionally a garden spot or a vineyard aj^peared, but the mountains are usually masses of rock, on which no vegeta- tion can take root. After traversing those wild ranges foi" hours, all of a sudden an emerald vallej^ was seen several thousand feet below, the mountains rising again on the op- posite side. The descent was long, and we went down into the valley only to climb the anti-Lebanon range which lies beyond. About four o'clock in the afternoon we com- menced the descent. In the course of an hour we were in a deep gorge, and suddenly came upon a swift-flowing stream, which we traversed for many miles, its banks shaded with groves and diversified with gardens, the River Abana, of the story of ISTaaman and the Syrian maid. Following the course of the stream, we were presently at the entrance to the city, and soon found quarters at the excellent hotel of Dimitri Cara. It was Saturday night when we reached Damascus. In the morning we went out into " the street called Straight" (some traveler has remarked very truly that it could have been called so only out of courtesy), and after a long walk we found, at the other extremity of the city, the American Mission, and heard an excellent sermon in Arabic from the Rev. Mr. Crawford. I call it excellent ; I am sure, from my subsequent acquaintance with him, it was so, and his manner was at once so easy, earnest, and eloquent, that I heartily enjoyed his discourse without understanding a word of it. We had a sermon from a stranger, in English, at 11 o'clock; and in the aftei-noon went out to visit the ceme- tery of the martyrs of 1860 — the Christian population Avho, in the feai'ful massacre set on foot by the Mohammedans DAMASCUS TO CONSTANTINOPLE. 397 and shared by the Druses, were slain in this city to the number of 2500 men, besides women and children. Far greater would have been the slaughter of the Christians had not the hero of Algiers, Abd el Kader, espoused the cause of the persecuted. More by his valor than his elo- quence he saved the lives of at least 15,000 w^hom the Mo- hammedans had sworn to put to the sword. We regretted much that this noble but unfortunate chieftain was not in Damascus during our stay. We desired to pay our respects to the hero who had not only won the admiration of the world by his valor in the wars of Algiers, and its sympa- thy by the treacherous treatment he received from his French conquerors, but who, though a Mohammedan, had stood forth as the defender of the Christians when those of his own. faith were fanatically putting them to the sword. We sent him our cards, but he was on the Plains. Damascus is the oldest city now in existence. It is men- tioned in the time of Abraham, the steward of whose house was " this Eliezer of Damascus," and its interesting record reaches down all along the ages to the present time. The city covers a wide extent, and with its suburbs, wliich are well watered and green, is an oasis in the desert in which it lies. It is a lovely picture as seen from the mountains, the water-courses and the irrigated portion of the plain be- ing thicklv studded with trees, and sliadino; off into green fields of grain that at length are lost in the arid desert. We explored its quaint old streets, which have more of mao-nilicence than one could imao-ine from the distant view. The bazars are busy marts of trade, well supplied with the productions and fabrics of the East. The khans, the ware- houses of the merchants, are many of them solid and mag- nificent stone structures, surrounding open courts, in which the ships of the desert — camels — were discharging and re- ceiving their freights of silk and other goods. The khan of Esaad Pasha was trulv fforo-eous in its architecture. After going through the bazars and khans, we climbed the moun- tain overlooking tlie great plain to see the city from above, 398 AROUND THE WORLD. and from the lonely kiosk upon its summit had the view which arrested the Prophet Mohammed when he exclaim- ed, " Man can have only one paradise ; I shall not enter this below lest I should have none above," and turned back without ever entering Damascus. Such is the legend. DAMASCUS. Fresh snow had fallen upon the brow of Hermon the morning that we left Damascus on our way back to Bey- rout, and when the sun rose it shone first with golden and then with silver light, reflecting the glory of the East which was poured upon it. There it stands as it has stood for thousands of years, one of the great landmarks on which the patriarchs and prophets looked long before it was trod by Him who was greater than them all. Mount Hermon. in the opinion of many Biblical scholars, was the scene of the Transfio-uration. Even now it shines with an ineffable brightness, as if still in the light of that glorious One whose DAMASCUS TO CONSTANTINOPLE. 399 raiment, when on the mount, " became shining exceeding white as snow, so as no fuller on earth can white them." At Sturza, in the vale of Coelo-Sja'ia, a portion of our party struck oif to the north to the ruins of Baalbec, while we returned to Beyrout, reaching the outlook upon the Med- iterranean early in the afternoon of a charming day, and enjoying in a wonderfully clear atmosphere, during the long zigzag descent, one of the most glorious sights of mountain, and plain, and sea that can be found on any of the heights of this world. In descending the mountain I heard an uproar and a din that gathered strength as we proceeded, and presently w^e were in the midst of one of those clouds of locusts that in all ages have infested Syria. A public order had been issued requiring the inhabitants to turn out and drive the locusts into the sea. The people had formed an extensive line, and with horns, and drums, and pans, and any thing that would make a hideous noise, were pursuing the invaders, which were fleeing before them. The music reminded me of a scene I had witnessed in Bom- bay on the occasion of an eclipse or the moon, wdien the Hindoos swarmed in the streets armed with the same weap- ons, hoping by their insufferable jargon to drive away the monster that was swallowing the queen of night. They were both successful. The Hindoo monster was compelled to disgorge— the moon came out as bright as before ; and on the mountains of Lebanon the locusts that had been de- stroying all the greenness of the earth, unable to endure the music, moved on in a vast cloud toward the Mediterranean. Whether they reached the sea and were drowned I do not know. Once more we were afloat. "We had again said the fare- well, which we have so often found it hard to say ; the an- chor was lifted, and we were steaming onward through the waves ; the city at the foot of Lebanon grew dim in the distance — the city of which the author of the " Cres- cent and the Cross," in his unrivaled sketches of Eastern travel, wrote : " Beautiful Beyrout ! I yield to thee the 400 AIWUXD THE WOULD. palm over all the cities of the earth ;" tlie mountains grew darker and dimmer in the twilio-ht, and nio-ht at leno-th settled doM'n over the sea. In the morning we touched at the island of Cyprus, the scene of a strange mixture of myths and traditions, and history, reaching down from the days of fable, when Ve- nus rose from the foam of the sea in all her beauty, to the days of Richard Coeur de Lion, when the island passed into the hands of the Templars, and until it was at last cap- tured by the Turks. The third day we anchored off the harbor of Rhodes, where once stood the famed Colossus, one of the seven wonders of the world. The same even- ing we sailed along the shores of " the isle that is called Patmos," to which the beloved disciple of Jesus, the Apos- tle John, was banished in the persecution under Domitian, the scene of the apocalyptic vision. On the fourth day, as the sun was lifting its face above the hills that overhans" __,:k^ -^i*^^ DAMASCUS TO CONSTANTINOPLE. 49 ^ the city of Smyrna, we entered the deep harbor and an- chored off the town. The country around was greener and fresher than any we had seen since leaving the shores of Japan, always excepting the tropical shores near the eqnator. The city was smiling in the morning light as if conscious of its surroundings, and of its own beauty as seen from the sea. It had other attractions for one of our number, and a few hours were most agreeably spent in the society of friends, and in an excursion to the hill on which stand the ruins of the ancient castle. Here we received the usual welcome from a score of Mohammedan boys, a general stoning, which greeting was returned until they dispersed over the hill. Smyrna is memorable as one of the many cities in which Homer was born, and still more sacred in the eyes of the Christian as the scene of the martyrdom of Polycarp, to whom, as " the Angel of the Church in Smyrna," accord- ing to Archbishop Usher, one of the seven epistles of the Apocalypse was addressed. He had been bishop of this church more than eighty years, when, in one of the Ro- man persecutions, he was summoned to judgment. As he was led out to the place of execution, the proconsul, ashamed to put to death so venerable a man, besought him to blaspheme Christ and save his life,. It was then that he uttered those heroic words : " Eie-htv-six years have I served liim ; during all this time he never did me any in- jury ; how then can I blaspheme my King and Saviour?" Leaving Smyrna toward evening, we stopped at Myti- lene, touched the next day at Tenedos, Dardanelles, and Gallipoli, and on the following morning at sunrise were in sight of the domes and minarets of Stamboul. Cc 402 AROUND THE WORLD. XXXI. STAMBOUL TO NAPLES. Almost the only place in all the world where the smile of heaven through pleasant skies forsook ns was at Con- stantinople. Circumstances had shortened my stay in Pal- estine and Syria so that 1 reached this stage of the jour- ney a month earlier than I had arranged on leaving home, and a month too soon to enjoy the beauties of Stamboul and the Golden Horn of the Bosphorus. We sailed up the Sea of Marmora and rounded Seraglio Point in the midst of a drizzling rain, which changed to snow soon after we landed ; the snow continued to fall, or rather to drive im- petuously for two whole days ; and for nearly three weeks it was almost incessant rain. Not for a day, no, not for an hour in all this time did the sun come out and shine upon us as it had shone for nearly a year. Those were dismal days in which to see the glories of the Orient, although very conducive to enjoyment in the many circles of friends which we found in Stamboul and scattered along the Bos- phorus. One can appreciate friends five or six thousand miles away fi'om home, when the heavens are weeping over him, and there were many associations that made the society at this place peculiarly agreeable to some of us. Of all the cities that I have visited, Constantinople prop- er is the last to be chosen for a season of rain and mud; but, despite all difiiculties, we made the tour of the mosques, palaces, bazars, and other places of renown, and, after wait- ing in vain for the skies to clear, we saw the Bosphorus and the Golden Horn under a cloud. If I do not celebrate the beauties of this part of the Orient, it must be because I saw them only in deep shadows, and other pens will more than STAMBOUL TO NAPLES. 403 supply all that may be lacking in these sketches. The next time that we go to Constantinople it shall be on the first of May. The political condition of this part of the world remains unchanged, while progress is the order of the day East and West. Turkey is still Turkey. Its government is the most effete, inefficient, irresponsible, and at the same time despotic, with which civilized nations have any thing to do, and Constantinople, in one way or another, is a centre of in- terest to nearly all the nations of the West. In the prov- inces the government is even worse than at the capital. In the vocabulary of Turkish officials Justice has no name, excepting as it is represented by the Turkish synonyms of bribery or influence. What is to be the future of Turkey is still one of the problems over which philanthropists and diplomatists, and especially the powers of Europe, are exer- cised. Almost any change would be for the better; it could scarcely be for the worse. A radical change of some kind is needed to bring Turkey into sympathy with the rest of the world, but the present government is past reform. There are some signs of a waking up among the differ- ent nationalities which compose the population of the cap- ital. The press, and steam, and the telegraph are doing their work. I noticed, in passing up and down the Bos- phorus from day to day, that nearly every man on the steamer had his morning or evening paper. There are now published at Constantinople four daily papers in Turk- ish, one of which has a weekly illustrated edition for la- dies, printed on embossed paper, and another for children. There are three dailies in Greek and three in Armenian. Besides, there are numerous weekly papers in Turkish, Ar- menian, Bulgarian, Arabic, etc., the most of which are own- ed and conducted by natives. The revival of evangelical religion among the Armenian population has been a part of the history of the times, and one of the most remarkable movements in connection with missionary labor in any part of the East. Forty years ago 404 AROUND THE WORLD. the Rev. William Goodell and his wife landed at Constan- tinople, the first Christian missionaries to this place from America. Others joined them and took up the work, men and women whose names will not be forgotten so long as tlie Sim and moon endure — Schauffler, Kiggs, Hamlin, Dwight, Bliss, with many younger. Some of the early la- borers I found toiling on in the field, but others have gone to their rewai'd, having finished their labors. The work- men die, but the work goes on here as elsewhere. Twenty- five years ago there were only about a hundred Ai'menians who had embraced the evans^elical faith. There are now in Turkey seventy churches, with 3200 members, and the movement has extended all over the empire. Two thirds of the churches which are the fruit of missionary labor have native pastors, and nearly half of these are self-sup- porting. In 1847 there were only about 500 recognized as Protestants ; there are now from fifteen to twenty thousand. Scarcely any other city has such a cosmopolitan popula- tion. This is indicated by the number of languages in which the Holy Scriptures are circulated. I learned from the Rev. Mr. Bliss, the Secretary of the American Bible So- ciety for Turkey, that there had been circulated within the last twelve years 333,415 copies of the Scriptures, includ- ing the whole Bible in Arabic, Arinenian, Armeno-Turkish, Osmanlee - Turkish, Greco - Turkish, Hebrew, Wallachian, Hungarian, Servian, Judseo-Spanish, English, French, Ger- man, Italian, Latin, Swedish, Portuguese, and Dutch, with the New Testament in Russian, Bulgarian, Albanian, Syri- ac, Slavic, Ancient Greek, and Ancient Armenian, with the Gospels in Koordish — thirty languages in all. These are not all the languages spoken at this cosmopolitan city. While I was at the hotel at Pera an American gentle- man arrived who had been in Constantinople before. In speaking of his former visit, he said to me very enthusiast- ically, " There is one thing in this city that you must not fail to see. Of course you have been to the Mosque of St. Sophia, and up and down the Bosphorus and the Golden STAMBOUL TO NAPLES. . 405 Horn, and have seen the Sultan and all that, but there is one thino; that you must not fail to see." Before he con- eluded his impressive injunction 1 had become rather im- patient to know vehat it was, when he added, " It is Dr. Hamlin." He then gave me an account of the circum- stances in which he made the acquaintance of this remark- able man. He came there a stranger, fell sick, and, having heard the name of Dr. Hamlin, sent for him, and was speed- ily cured. Dr. Hamlin happens to be a Doctor of Divinity, but there is scarcely any science or art in which he is not worth}^ of the highest degree. I assured my friend that I had long enjoyed his acquaintance. Robert College, so liberally endowed by Christopher E. Eobert, Esq., of New York, and now established on its beau- tiful site upon the Bosphorus, owes its existence in a great measure to Dr. Hamlin, the president, by whose persever- ance it secured a local liabitation. Year after year the Turkish government, in its usual dilatory way, ^vitllheld its sanction for the location and erection of the building. Dr. Hamlin neglected no opportunity to press his application. Once, after a longer interval than usual, he applied through some intercessor, when Ali Pasha, the late Grand Vizier, gave vent to his desires in the impatient inquiry, " "Will that Dr. Hamlin never die ?" And so, to get rid of him, seeing he would not die, he gave him permission to build. After once deferring our departure another week in hope of brifjhter skies, we at length went on board the steamer bound for Athens in the midst of a storm of snow, and hail, and rain, one of the most forbidding days of our sojourn. We had scarcely reached the Sea of Marmora before the sun burst forth from the clouds to cheer us on our voyage, and to tantalize us with the remembrance of all the days of o-loom in which his face had been hid. But we had the satisfaction to learn that we had escaped a perilous voyage on the steamer by which I had engaged passage the week previous. She was overtaken by a storm on the Sea of Mar- mora, and lay all night in the lee of an island waiting for 406 * AROUND THE WOULD. the morning, all on board having no little apprehension in regard to the result. We did not trust ourselves to the Turkish or Greek steam- ers, which are to be avoided by all who seek either comfort or safety in sailing on the Mediterranean. Those belong- ing to the Sultan's navy are splendid specimens of naval architecture, and, as they ride at anchor in line on the Bos- phorus, make a formidable appearance, but I heard many stories not at all to the credit of the men who commanded them. A Turkish naval officer, once sent with his ship to Malta, was gone about three weeks, at the expiration of which time he turned up at Constantinople, and reported that he had searched diligently, and there was no such place in the Mediterranean Sea. Another was sent to Jaffa, and, after cruising up and down the Syrian coast, returned with the report that he could not find it. It is to be hoped that those who have command of the passenger steamers have a better knowledge of the sea, but I never felt disposed to test their nautical skill. On the Mediterranean I invaria- bly took either the French or the Austrian steamers, be- tween which there was little to choose ; they are both good, well officered, and well managed. We left Constantinople at four o'clock in the afternoon, and had fine weather through the Sea of Marmora and the Archipelago to the shores of Greece. The second night out we retired not expecting to be on shore before morn- ing, but about half past one we were roused with the cry that the lights of the Piraeus were in sight, and that we must be prepared to land within a few minutes. Far worse than starting off by night in a stage-coach is being roused from sleep to be set ashore in a small boat, on some strange coast, in a dark night. But the same familiar stare on which we had looked at home from early child- hood, and which were as familiar as the faces of sisters and brothers, were looking down and smiling upon us, and si- lently whispering to our hearts that above them was an eye that never sleeps. We dropped anchor about a mile from STAMBOUL TO NAPLES. 407 the landing. As we were rowed ashore in the quiet star- light I heard the sound of approaching oars, and, knowing that friends who were some days in advance of us would probably take the steamer that we were leaving, I called a name, and heard over the waters an answering voice — " All's well !" — and so we passed ; the boatmen not even resting on their oars, we were able only to exchange this transient salutation in the darkness. We found a carriage in waiting on the shore, and within an hour were at the hotel in Athens, about six miles distant, and had a pleasant sleep before the morning appeared. Our steps were first directed to the Acropolis, the centre of Athens and of all Greece. We climbed the heights crowned with the ruins of the most perfect structure of antiquity, and looked out upon the theatre of so many grand events in the history of the classic age ; upon the ruins of temples, and arches, and amphitheatres, and down upon Mars Hill, where Paul stood before an assembly of Athenian philosophers and preached Jesus and the resur- rection; and upon the Pnyx, where Demosthenes enchained with his eloquence the crowds who gathered round the ros- trum ; and out over the grand panorama of Lower Greece to the same old mountains on which the eyes of sages and orators, poets, and sculptors, and warriors had looked cen- turies ago, when Greece was in her glory. The Acropolis, KlilKZE OF THE VAK■1UE^(J^. 408 AROUND THE WORLD. with its commanding height, its magnificent temples, its peerless sculpture, and its crowning feature, the colossal statue of Minerva, of ivory and gold, a landmark to the mariner at sea as well as to the dweller on the Plains, might well be called " the eye of all Greece." We were strongly urged to make an excursion to the Plains of Marathon, but I declined for prudential reasons, which soon after had melancholy force. I had escaped the Bedouins in the valley of the Jordan, while others were compelled to pay tribute, and not without risk to their lives. I was well aware, and so was every traveler at the time, that the Greek brigands were no more scrupulous in re- gard to the rights of property, and that they were on the alert for prey. They have a very unhappy way of detain- ing for ransom those who happen to fall into their hands, and occasionally sending back an ear or a finger if the ran- som is delayed. I assured my urgent friends that I was not willing to run one risk in fifty of paying a heavy ran- som, or of losing my ears for the satisfaction of seeing a lit- tle more of the classic soil of Greece, and I was somewhat laughed at for my prudence. At the same hotel where we were staying was a party who determined to make the excursion. Their fate soon after shocked the whole civilized world. They left in the morning for Marathon in high spirits, but before night they were all in the hands of the brigands. The ladies of the party were released and sent back to Athens. Lord Mon- caster was subsequently sent to negotiate the ransom of his companions, and escaped. The rest were murdered and horribly mutilated. Peturning to the Pirasus l\y carriage in preference to the rail, we crossed in the night to the island of Syra, and took the Austrian steamer for Corfu. The next day we rounded Cape Matapan, usually a stormy point with a turbulent sea, but on this occasion the elements were enjoying a holiday, the winds were off duty, and the waves asleep. In the aft- ernoon we were off the Bay of Navarino, where the deci- STA3IB0UL TO NAPLES. 409 sive battle was fonglit in 1827 between the Turkish and Egyptian navies on the one side, and the allied British, French, and Russian fleets on the other. It was the de- struction of the Turkish power on the sea and the libera- tion of Greece. In the course of the day we passed Cepha- lonia, the Sanios of Homer, and, later in the day,Zante, " the Flower of the Levant," of which some writer extravagantly says, " Zante is especially delightful in spring, when the fragrance of the flowering vineyards, orange-trees and gar- dens, floats for miles over the surrounding sea." The next morning we were entering the Gulf of Corfu, and one of the most beautiful scenes that we had looked upon in all our travels, reminding us of the Inland Sea of Japan, was before ns. The day was perfectly serene. The sun rose in great splendor, and poured upon land and sea a flood of gorgeous light. Not a ripple, not even a dimple, was on the face of the water to break the reflection of the shores. As we rounded the point of the citadel, a rocky height of great strength and greater beauty, overgrown with vines of the richest green, the picturesqueness of the scene was such as the pen will not describe. The day we spent in driving about the charming island was one of the days to be recalled when we are looking into the memories of the past for some lovely nook in which to tind rest from the weariness of toil and care. We could have tarried much longer with great delight, but, finding a steamer that was to sail in tlie evening, and uncertain when we should be able to leave again, we went on board, and the next morning were landed at Brindisi, a place that has acquii-ed new importance. It is the Brun- dusium of the ancient Bomans, and was once their chief naval station. It was also the southeastern terminus of the ancient Appian Way, and, in the completion of one of those remarkable cycles which not unfrequently occur in the his- tory of nations and countries, has become the terminus of the great railway from London and Faris to the East. The most direct route to Egypt and India, and the most speedy, 410 AROUND THE WORLD. is now tbrougli the Mont Cenis Tunnel to Brindisi, whence the steamer leaves for Alexandria. Brindisi is a good place to stop at, provided one is not detained. We tarried just twelve hours longer than was desirable, landing at seven in the morning, and leaving at the same hour in the evening. "With nothing to see, and nothing to do but to wait for the evening train, the hours passed on leaden wheels. It was rainy without and damp within ; the new Grand Hotel des hides Orientales, then scarcely completed, was dripping with wet, and we sat and meditated on fevers and rheumatism until the cars kindlv bore US away, bound for Xaples. In crossing the mountain range between the eastern and western shores of Italy, we were transferred, for a few miles, from the cars to the diligence, the tunnel not being completed. We were here reminded once more of bandit- ti — the Italian brigands, who belong to the same fraterni- ty with the Greeks and Bedouins, whose hands we had es- caped. They have the same habit of picking off stragglers and picking up baggage. The conductor prepared for them by placing the baggage-wagons under the protection of the passenger train of carriages, and we crossed the mountain without ha\'ing a sight of their muskets. I know of no other part of Italy, unless it be the plain of Sardinia, that bears the marks of such fertility or of such careful cultivation as the region north of Xaples. It is a vast plain, the soil is rich and easily tilled, and every rood is improved. The trees are trimmed far up, destroy- ino; their beauty to a e;reat deo-ree, but lettino; in the sun and air upon the fields ; while the vines are festooned from tree to tree above the growing crops, giving the country a holiday aspect. The peasantry of Italy belong to a differ- ent race from the dwellers in the towns. They are more industrious in their habits, and large sections of the coun- try, devoted to corn and the vine, attest their thrift. In entering Kaples one is struck with the yagabond, and, at the same time, lively character of the mass of the peo- STAMBOUL TO NAPLES. ^W pie. Tliev swarm every where, like Ijees that ai-e just ready to desert a hive that has become too close to contain them. They live in the open air, not only seeking their amuse- ments and attending to their ordinary business out of doors, but cooking and eating in the very thoroughfares of the city. All seem bent on catching the pleasures of the day as if there were no to-morrow. Formerly the beggars constituted one of the most striking features of Neapolitan street life. They were your escort in entering the city, coming out in crowds, sometimes for miles, to meet the public conveyances. They were unremitting in their at- tentions as long as you staid, never failing to take off their hats to you whenever you made your appearance in the streets, and when you were leaving they followed you out of town, wishing you e^ery blessing by all the saints if you answered their demands, and cursing you by the whole calendar if you did not. Many of them had a merry way of begging, thro^ving somersaults, or playing a tune upon their chins, or cutting antics to attract attention, like the merriest creatures alive, when they would tell you, as the next thing, that they were dying of hunger, and ask for a little money for the love of the Madonna. The whole kingdom of Naples, and, for aught I know, adjacent king- doms, had been raked and scraped to gather in the halt, the maimed, the lame, the blind, and all the miserable and disgusting objects that could be found, as so much capital on which to drive the thriving trade of begging, one of the principal branches of business in Naples, and not the least profitable either. But that is now changed, and one can go into and out of Naples, and stay there, with com- paratively little annoyance from this source. The Bay of Naples I regard as, beyond comparison, the finest single view in the world. It has a combination of beautiful features and of interesting associations that clus- ter around no other spot. The bay itself has a graceful sweep of thirty or forty miles within the islands placed at its moutli as sentinels to ward off the towering waves that 412 AROUND THE WORLD. come rolling in from the sea. Its waters are almost as blue as the vault of the sky above it. At tlie centre of its broad sweep stands the genius of the scene, the beautiful, majestic, living mountain, that has no equal ; gi-acef ul in its outlines, and standing alone in its grandeur, like Fusi- yama, the glory and pride of Japan. No other mountain has, for my eye, such a power of fascination. I have nev- er looked upon it, from whatever point, or how often soev- er, that it has not had the same strange, fresh interest, as if I had never seen it before. It seems to be a living thing. There it stands, year after year, gently breathing out its vapor, like breath upon the frosty air, that floats away and is soon dissipated. When in a state of eruption the signs of life are far more striking. The top of Vesuvius is the best point from which to take in the beauties of the bay and its surroundings. To the west lie the islands that form an important element in the perfection of the view. To the south are Sorrento and other sunny towns, with the blue mountains towering up behind them. The bright, gay city of Naples stretches for miles along the shore to the north. In the distance stands the tomb of Virgil, and farther on the town of Pozzuoli, the ancient Puteoli, the terminus of the Appian Way, at which Paul landed on his memorable journey to Rome, when he appealed to Caesar's judgment. Farther on are Baise and Cumse, the summer resorts of the Roman emperors and men of wealth, the Newport of those days, where they erected splendid palaces, and reveled in luxury and dis- play. The ruins of their magnificent summer palaces, which were built out into the sea, and overhung the heights, stretch for miles along the shores. From these same shores and their surroundings Virgil took the scenery of his ^ne- id. Here are Lake Avernus, and the River Styx, and the Elysian Fields. Here, too, are the Sibyl's caves. No part of Italy, not even Rome itself, with its suburbs, was more consecrated by the homes and writings of her emperors, and orators, and bards. STA3IB0UL TO NAPLES. 413 At the foot of Vesuvius lie the long-buried cities of Herculaneuni and Pompeii, revealed to-day after slumber- ing forgotten for eighteen centuries. A world of interest gathers around them as we look down into the silent, de- serted streets, that so long ago were filled with a bustling crowd, and then in one dark storm were overwhelmed. In what part of the world can so much that is beautiful in scenery, so much that is fraught with classic interest, and so much that stirs the heart with tragic recollection, be seen at a single glance as from the heights of this burning mountain ? And this is an indication of what the traveler has to occupy his time and his attention in his sojourn at the sunny city of Naples. It requires many days to make the various excursions, but I shall not attempt to conduct the reader through them all. Vesuvius was a burning mountain two thousand years before the Christian era. Its fires were extinguished and slumbered for a while, but just about the time that Paul landed at Puteoli it was seized with convulsions ; the whole region was shaken, and several towns were laid in ruins. The memorable eruption in which Herculaneum and Pom- peii were overwhelmed, the former by lava, and the lattei* by the shower of ashes, occurred in the year 79. The younger Pliny, wlio witnessed it, states that about one o'clock in the day he saw a strange cloud overhanging the plain of Naples, like a huge pine-tree shooting up to a great height and stretching out its branches. Tliis singu- lar cloud, which seemed to be composed of earth and cin- ders, excited his curiosity, and he embarked in a boat to cross the bay and examine into it. As he approached the coast, the red-hot cinders and stones fell into the boat, and he was obliged to retreat. He proceeded to Stabise to spend the night with a friend, but before morning they were driven to the fields by the shaking of the house. The morning came, but it brought no relief. One shock of earthquake succeeded another, as if the foundations of the v7orld were giving way. The sea receded from the 414 AROUND THE WORLD. shore. The mountain poured forth a mass of flame and burning rock, and the cloud of cinders spread over the bay and over the land. They attempted again to escape to a safer distance, and joined the crowd that was surging on- ward. Pliny's father had already perished. He led his mother by the hand, and fearing she would be pressed to death, proposed to step aside and suffer the crowd to pass by. He says : " We had scarce stepped out of the path when darkness overspread us — not like that of a cloudy night, or when there is no moon, but of a room when it is shut up and all the lights are extinguished. Nothing was to be heard but the shiieks of women, the screams of chil- dren, and the cries of men ; some calling for their children, others for their parents, others for their husbands, and only distinguishing each other by their voices ; one lamenting his own fate, another that of his family ; some wishing to die from the very fear of dying ; some lifting their hands to the gods ; but the greater part imagining that the last and eternal night was come which was to destroy the gods and the world together." This was the most fearful eruption on record. Many of less account have since occurred, the most remarkable in 1V79, in which, according to Sir Wilham Hamilton, the molten lava was thrown in jets to the height of 10,000 feet. More than once have the sides of the mountain broken in while the melted lava poured out of its sides, and ran in streams toward the plain below. In 1855 I made the ascent of the mountain, reaching the top of the cone, and looking down into the abyss. It was then comparatively quiet ; only the presage of a coming explosion was notice- able. Soon after I had left the pent-up fires broke forth ; the lava came rushing down in broad streams, filling up the ravines, and moving onward toward the sea. At night the mountain cast up a fiery mass, and flames marked the course of the burning tide. The green trees, encircled by the red-hot lava, generated steam, and then exploded with terrific noise, scattering the lava in all directions, and mak- UTAMBOUL TO NAPLES. 415 ing tlie scene still more brilliant by setting fire to the trees, which, with the mountain itself, illuminated the whole Bay of Naples, and the surrounding cities and country. Herculaneum was buried too deep in solid lava ever to be excavated to any great extent, but the larger part of Pompeii has been reclaimed, and one may now walk for miles through its streets and among its buildings. He need not lose his way ; many of the streets still have the names upon the corners, as in modern cities. The ancient pave- ment, rutted deep by the carriage-wheels, remains intact, not equal, it is true, to the Belgian, but as firm as when it was laid eio-hteen centuries ao-o. Entering the homes of the Pompeians as they were dis- covered, we find in them bracelets and jewels, some of ex- quisite workmanship, gold and precious stones. Here are writing materials; ink-stands and pens; lamps, as they went out when Pompeii was extinguished ; thimbles, and distaffs, and spinning-wheels — in short, the whole catalogue of a woman's domestic life, together with all the parapher- nalia of the toilet, even to the rouge and false hair. (The apothecaries' shops have on hand a large quantity of cos- metics, showing that they were in great demand.) The cellars were stored with wine, and, although the old Falernian has long since evaporated, the amphorae, or earth- en jars which contained the wine, stand in rows along the walls. In the house of Diomede, one of the most exten- sive and elaborately ornamented villas, situated near one of the gates of the city, were large numbers of wine- jars of great size. This house, being remote from the centre of the town, was evidently resorted to by the friends of the owner as a place of comparative safety ; but more persons probably lost their lives in it than in any other. The skel- etons or forms of seventeen persons were found in the cel- lars. On the women were found gold necklaces, and brace- lets, and other ornaments. Two were little children, whose heads were still covered with beautiful hair. In one of the houses in Pompeii two of the bodies are kept in a glass 416 AROUXD THE WORLD. case, the attitudes and posture of the limbs expressing the mortal agony which came upon them. Diomede himself (or one who is supposed to have been the owner of the villa bearing his name) was found near the garden gate with a purse of gold and other valuables in his hand, while an attendant stood by his side grasping the key to the gate. Some of the houses have the names of the owners inscribed on the outer wall, especially those of a more imposing char- acter. Among the familiar names is that of " C. Sallust." The house of Pansa, thus marked, one of the largest in the city, contained five skeletons when it was opened. The shops, with their contents, are as great a curiosity as the homes. Some of them are extensive, the property of wealthy citizens, from which they derived their incomes. There are several bakeries, or cook-shops, in perfect preser- vation, from which large quantities of viands liave been taken. In some the bread was found standing in the ovens. The notices around the doors and in the interior show that the art of advertising is not a modern invention. In one of the villas was found the following poster : "Julia has TO LET for five years, A BATH, A VENERIUM, NINETY SHOPS, WITH TERRACES AND UPPER CHAMBERS." They are still without tenants, although they have been ad- vertised 1800 years. Xearly every thing found in the houses and shops at Pompeii is preserved in the National Museum at Xaples, one of the most interesting collections of antiquities in the world. By its help we can readily refurnish the luxurious but now deserted homes, see how their inmates lived, and learn more of their domestic history than from any other source. One can study and muse for days over this ex- traordinary collection, and find his interest growing deeper every hour that he lino;ers. Before leaving Xaples we drove to the cities of its own dead, among the characteristic features of the ])lace. The Protestant cemetery is a neat church-3'ard in tlie outskirts STAMBOUL TO NAPLES. 417 of the town. The cypress here waves over the grave of many a stranger who has died far away from tlie friends and scenes of home, but flowers also bloom profusely in this sweet resting-place of those who have no more seas to cross, and no farther journey in life to make. After lin- gering to note, by the various inscriptions, from how many lands the sleepers had come, we drove to the Cam])o Santo Vecchio, the great charnel-house of Naples. It contains three hundred and sixty-five pits, under a wide, paved square. Every evening the stone which covers one of these pits is removed, and the common dead of the city for the day are thrown into it, without even a winding-sheet to cover them. The old man and the child, the rough lazza- roni and the tender maiden, are dropped in together, and lie in one indiscriminate mass ; quick-lime is thrown in to consume the bodies, and the pit is sealed for another year, to be opened at its close. We did not wait to witness the revolting scene, although the city carts were arriving with the dead, but drove to the Campo Santo Nuovo, the ceme- tery for the aristocratic dead, and here I was surprised to find a burial-ground laid out with refined taste, shaded with the cypress and other trees, and adorned with tombs of the most costly description. Many of them were in the form of chapels built of fine Italian marble, elaborately finished. After what I had heard of the burial of the dead at Na- ples, and after what I had seen at the Campo Vecchio, it was a relief to enter one that indicated so much refine- ment of feeling. Dd 418 ABOUND THE WORLD. XXXII. HOME TO FLORENCE. The old route from Naples to Kome along the sea. through Terracina and Mola di Gaeta, was far more pic- turesque than the present route by rail, and one could fully enjoy it when traveling leisurely by vettura. I was once several days on the way, spending a night at Terra- cina in a storm, when the wild waves came rolling in from the sea, dashing against the walls of the hotel, and threat- ening to wash away its very foundations. It was quite equal to being rocked in the cradle of the deep. The true way to see Italy is not to whirl through it by the rail-car, but to take the old modes of conveyance. But every mode has its advantages, although no gain in time can compen- sate for the loss of the charming Italian scenery, and glimpses of Italian country life which were once enjoyed in traveling througli the interior and along the shores. On reaching the Roman frontier, for the first time, and, I may add also, the last time in all our journey around the world, a demand was made for passports. We had trav- eled from one end of Asia to the other, through Egypt and Syria, European Turkey and Greece, and thus far in Italy, without being called upon to declare our nationality, or ob- tain permission to go or come. But now, as we were en- tering the estate of his holiness the Pope, we must needs go through the old investigation. In no respect has a greater change come over the countries of Europe, and es- pecially those having Roman Catholic rulers, than in the abolition of the passport system, and it is one of the many significant indications of the progress of religious freedom, as well as of the principles of free government. Several ROME TO FLORENCE. 419 years since I had traveled over the route I was now taking, and, upon reaching home, found that my passport had on it eighty-seven vises^ or official seals and signatures, as evi- dence of my having been permitted to enter and leave dif- ferent countries and cities, and in nearly every instance it was where Koman Catholic influence was predominant. In going even from Eome to Naples and returning, fifteen oi- twenty examinations were required. The fact that in my recent journey, of which I am now writing, my passport was only once exhibited in the entire circuit of the earth, is a volume of testimony in regard to the progress which the world has been making, and also in regard to the waning power of popery as a political element. Passports are no longer required even at the gates of Rome. They belong to an order of things that has passed away even at Rome. It was nio-ht when we reached the Alban Hills and came out upon the heights that overlook the Campagna and the city of the Caesars, and we could study the scene only in imagination, peopling it with the multitudes of the past in- stead of the present. As we entered Rome we found it il- luminated in commemoration of the anniversary of the re- turn of Pius IX. from his long but voluntary exile after the occurrence and success of the Revolution of 1848. I call it voluntary because he was in no sense compelled, excepting by his fears, to flee or to remain in exile. When he was chosen pope in 1846, he entered upon a course of reform, and corrected many of the abuses which had become hoary with the lapse of time. He established his temporal gov- ernment on a sort of popular basis, and gave the people a taste of liberty, which led to their taking the government into their own hands. Pius IX. was personally popular, nor was there at any time the least disposition to interfere with his position or power as head of the Church. On the assassination of his minister, Count Rossi, the pope became alarmed, and fled in disguise to Mola di Gaeta, within the territory of King Ferdinand of Naples. As soon as his de- 420 AROUND THE WORLD. parture from Home became known, a deputation of emi- nent citizens was appointed to wait on him and urge his re- turn, with the assurance that there would be no interfer- ence with his dignity or his functions as the head of the Church. But the reactionary cardinals had him in their liands, and would allow no interview, and under their ad- vice he remained in exile until the French army had sup- pressed the rising liberties of the people and re-established the temporal tyranny of a spiritual power. The freedom which the city of Rome is now enjoying is that which its people won for themselves by their own right arms in 1848, and which was subsequently wrested from them by French bayonets alone. Never were claims to temporal power more false than those wliich are now urged in behalf of the pope. A somewhat striking coincidence marked my coming to Rome. I had reached the city in 1854 while the council was in session that adopted the dogma of the Immaculate Conception as an article of the faith of the Church. I stood at that time near the high altar in St. Peter's on the day of its public announcement, and heard the pope read it from beofinnino; to end. His heart had been set on mak- ing this declaration, and cardinals, and bishops, and digni- taries of all degrees were called from all parts of the earth to bow to his will and say that it was the will of God. He read the Latin with a feeble voice, weeping as he read it, and it was generally thought at the time that this would be the expiring act of his pontificate. I reached Rome again in season to be present in St. Peter's at the first public ses-, sion of the Council of 1870, and heard the same pope an- nounce the dogma De Fide preliminary to the impious claim of infallibility. He was feebler than before, with more than fifteen years added to his age, but there was the same iron will before w^iich all inferior ecclesiastics have been made to bow. The utterance of this impious assump- tion of divine prerogatives was the signal for the providen- tial destruction of his temporal as well as sj^iritual power. BOME TO FLORENCE. 421 Once, as we learn from sacred writ, auotiier ruler, " Herod, arrayed in royal apparel, sat upon his throne and made an oration. And the people gave a shout, saying. It is the voice of a god, and not of a man. And immediately the angel of the Lord smote him because he gave not God the glory, and he was eaten of worms, and gave up the ghost.'' Pius IX. survives, but almost immediately upon the utter- ance of his dogma, and the shout of the people, " It is the voice of a god, and not of a man," his throne crumbled and fell, and his spiritual power over those who acknowl- edged his supremacy is fast passing away. With modern Rome and with the remains of the ancient city every intelligent reader is familiar, and I should not attempt any general description even did my space permit. I shall refer only to one or two of its innumerable objects of interest. The first point to which I bent my steps on entering Rome was not the Church of St. Peter, nor the Vatican, nor the Coliseum, but a monument that stands on the an- cient Via Sacra, in some respects the most interesting ob- ject in the ancient or modern city. It is the smallest of the triumphal arches, and is known as the Arch of Titus. It bears the following inscription : Senatvs. popvlvsqve romanvs. Divo. Tito. Divia. Vespasiana. Vespasiano. Avgvsto. This arch was erected, to commemorate the conquest of Je- rusalem. While at the head of the army before the walls of the Holy City, Vespasian, upon the death of ISTero, was proclaimed emperor. He hastened back to Rome, leaving Titus in command, who, upon the fall of the city and the destruction of the Temple, made a triumphal march into Rome, bringing with him a long train of captive Jews, to- gether with the spoils, among which were the sacred vessels of the Temple. It is this procession which is commemora- ted in the beautiful arch. The great interest 6i the bas-re- 422 ABOUND THE WORLD. lief is in the fact that it supphes a place in the illustration of the Bible which can be tilled from no other source. It is the only visible representation that exists of those sa- cred vessels, the patterns of which were received fi-om heaven. The fi-ieze of the arch is ornamented with sculpture — a procession of warriors leading oxen to sacrifice. Upon a side panel of the interior is a group representing Titus in the act of celebrating his triumph over the Jews. He stands in a chariot drawn by four horses abreast, accompa- nied by the senators of Kome, and officei-s bearing the fas- ces. The sculptured form of Victory holds a wreath of laurel, with which she is about to crown the conqueror. Upon the opposite side, on a similar panel, is the celebrated group bearing the sacred vessels of the Jewish Temple. First comes a standard-bearer leading the way, with a can- opy or arch supported above his head. The table of shew- bread, with a cup and the silver trumpets used by the priests of the Temple to proclaim the year of jubilee, is borne on staves. Other bearers follow, carrying chaplets of laurel, and the golden candlestick with its seven branches. In size and form these bas-reliefs correspond precisely with the descriptions of the sacred record and the minute de- scriptions of Josephus. Little did those ancient pagans — the Koman senate and the Roman people — when decree- ing and erecting this monument to a deified warrior, imag- ine that they were erecting a monument to the true God in the verification of prophecy and divine history, and little did they suppose that, after nearly two thousand years, the disciples of that faith which they had already begun to per- secute even unto cruel death would come from distant lands to read the record and to be confirmed in their faith. The Jews of modern Kome are said to be the descendants of the captives which Titus brought from Jerusalem to grace his triumph. Not one of them, even at this day, will pass un- der the Arch of Titus, although it spans one of the thor- ouo-hfares of the citv. Thev shun it as a memorial of the ROME TO FLORENCE. 423 subjugation of their nation, a fall which has never yet been retrieved. One of the most perfect and most striking of the relics of pagan Eome is the Pantheon. It has lost its external beauty in the covering of marble, but its massive walls and the form of the building remain just as when erected sev- eral years before the Christian era. It is still a wonder of architecture, faultless in its beautiful and grand proportions, and, notwithstanding its simplicity, it is to me the most im- pressive of the ancient or modern buildings of Eome. It stands in what was formerly the Campus Martins, where it was surrounded by the buildings belonging to the Thermse of Agrippa, and was reached by a flight of steps, all of which must have added greatly to its effect. Now it is in one of the meanest corners of the city, and is scarcely on a level with the adjacent streets. The portico, which is re- garded as a model, is 110 feet long, forty-four in depth, and is composed of sixteen Corinthian columns of Oriental granite, each one of which is a single block or shaft. They are forty-six and a half feet in height, and fifteen in cir- cumference. The entablature and pediment are still per- fect, and the frieze bears the following inscription, extend- ing along the entire front : M. AGRIPPA. L. F. COS. TERTIVM FECIT. The massive bronze doors are acknowledged by the best au- thorities to be those set up by Agrippa. Although nearly forty feet in height, and having swung upon their hinges for nineteen centuries, they may still be moved by the hand of a child. The building is circular, 143 feet in diameter, or more than 400 feet in circumference. The walls, which are twenty feet in thickness, rise to the height of seventy feet, when they pass into one vast dome, the centre of which is 143 feet above the pavement. The dome is more im- pressive than that of St. Peter's, and one peculiarity adds a charm to that impression such as I have never found in any other building. The dome is open at its centre, the aper- 424 AROUND THE WORLD. ture being twenty-seven feet in diameter. It was never closed, even by glass, and the storms of nearly two thousand years have beaten through it and fallen upon the pavement below. This might seem a defect, but it constitutes, in re- ality, its most beautiful, if not its grandest feature. The circular walls are unbroken by windows, and, when the massive bronze doors are closed, this aperture in the dome is the only source of light, and communicates directly with the heavens above. One can look up and see the clouds floating by, or gaze into the blue ether, while the lower world is shut out by walls which no earthly sounds can penetrate. The poetry and sublimity of this conception for a temple may be imagined. It excludes all things ter- restrial — opens heaven alone to the worshiper, and that, too, without any intervening medium. An anecdote characteristic of Roman morals is related in a manuscript narrative of the sack of Rome, preserved at the Vatican. When Charles V. visited Rome in 1536, he ascended the roof of the Pantheon, and looked down through the aperture from above. A young Roman whr> had been ordered to accompany him afterward confessed to his father that he was strongly tempted to push the mon- arch over on the pavement below, a depth of nearly 150 feet, in revenge for the sack of the city a few years before. The wily old Italian said, " My son, such things should be done, and not talked about." Tlie Pantheon has been stripped of all its costly orna- ments, leaving only its simple grandeur to delight the eye. Formerly the outer walls were faced with marble, which is now all gone. The vast dome was covered with gilded bronze, and its interior either lined or profusely ornament- ed with silver. The plates of bronze that covered the roof, and the silver, were removed by Constans II., A.D. 655, and afterward taken to Alexandria. Pope Urban YIII. completed the plunder of the building by taking the bronze beams of the portico to form the baldachino of the high altar of St. Peter's, and to cast cannon for the castle of St. , ROME TO FLORENCE. 425 Aiigelo. This pope belonged to the Barberini family, and used a part of the plunder to ornament the Barbenni pal- ace. Pasquin, the mediasval oracle of Rome, made the fol- lowing record of its final desecration: Quod nonfecerunt Barlari Boince,fecerunt Barherini. (What the Barbari- ans left of Rome, the Barberini destroyed.) The prince of painters, Raphael, who was a great admirer of the sublime structure, requested that he might be buried within its walls. When he died, his body, together with his last and noblest work, the Transfiguration, was exposed for three days in the Pantheon, and visited by crowds, who gazed upon both with equal interest, but with different emotions. His remains were afterward deposited in a niche formed in the w^alls, and the spot is now marked by a simple slab with an inscription in Latin. For many years the Academy of St. Luke, an association of artists, had a skull in their possession, said to be Raphael's. As doubts had arisen in regard to the actual resting-place of the immortal master of the pencil, it was determined in 1833 to settle the ques- tion by an examination of his tomb. It was accordingly opened in the presence of several ecclesiastical dignitaries and artists, and the skeleton was found entire just as it had been entombed. The relics w^ere replaced, inclosed in an antique marble sarcophagus from the Vatican Museum. Of course the skull in the possession of the Academy of St. Luke lost its value, notwithstanding it had often awakened the admiration of phrenologists, who had found the paint- er's bump strikingly developed. But perhaps it did belong to a great artist. Who knows ? The ardent student of classical poetry and history (which in ancient times were often identical) is greatly scandalized in coming to the banks of the Tiber, Instead of a mighty river commensurate with its fame, he finds a small, muddy stream, scarcely any where two hundred yards wide. The mud, the narrowness, the very swiftness of its current, as if it were hurrying away to the sea to escape observation, are too much for him at the first glance. But as he gazes, 426 AROUND THE WORLD. the events which ages ago crowded around its banks, and which were known and felt the world over, come up before him like a grand procession, and it is no longer the insig- nificant stream, but the river of ancient Rome. That is distinction enough. It matters little to an ordinary trav- eler whether the stories of ^neas, and of Romulus and Remus, are myths or veritable history. Very few who come to Italy have any purpose or desire to settle the questions of fancy and of fact with which the early days of Rome are euNironed. This is left for the Kiebuhrs whose tastes incline them in that direction. It is far more pleasant (and, for all practical purposes at the present day, it is just as well) to do as we did when school-boys — accept as history the story of the founder of Rome cast by the waters of the Tiber upon the spot where he afterward built the city. The river is always turbid. Virgil is the only author who calls it coerulean, and this was a stretch of poetic li- cense quite beyond the mark. Upon what the fancy was founded it would be difficult to tell. It often overflows its banks as in ancient times, and the Campus Martins, on which the modern city is chiefly built, becomes inuiidated. The height of the water is marked upon columns standing on the river bank in the Via Ripetta, and also upon the fa- §ade of the Church of Santa Maria Sopra Minerva, in the very heart of the city, where the marks are some ten or twelve feet above the pavement. I have seen the pave- ment of the Pantheon several feet under water, so that the building could be entered only by boats. Treasures of art have often found their way into the river, which, if they could be recovered, would bring in the art markets of the world immense prices. Statuary more perfect, and perhaps more beautiful than any of the works of the ancient mas- ters that are now jDreserved in the Vatican, doubtless lie imbedded in groups in the muddy bottom. The famous banker of the time of Leo X., Agostino Chigi, gave to the pope and his cardinals a splendid and costly entertainment, at which the dishes were all of the precious metals. It is ROME TO FLORENCE. 427 said that when the feast was over they were thrown into the Tiber by the order of the rich banker, that no less ilhis- trious quests nii2;ht use them. There is a tradition that the sacred vessels of the Jewish Temple, brought from Je- rusalem, among them the golden candlestick, were lost or thrown from the Milvian Bridge and never recovered. There is nothing connected with the antiquities of Rome that Christian travelers visit with deeper interest than the Catacombs, although few venture far into their dark and intricate recesses. These narrow passages, some of wliich are sixty or seventy feet below the surface of the ground, run in all directions under the city and under the Cam- pagna. The whole country is honey-combed by tliem, and it is said that in ancient times there was communication through them from Rome to the sea, fifteen or twenty miles distant. The openings or entrances are few, but it is not uncommon for riders over the Campagna to break throuo-h into those that are nearer the surface. Their origin is not absolutely known — at least there are no authentic records of their excavation ; but it is alto- gether probable they were formed in the early days of Rome by digging for the volcanic sand called jpozzulana, which was used extensively in making the Roman cement for the erection of buildings — that mortar which has re- sisted the action of the elements more than two thousand years, and w^hich bids fair to last as long as the stones themselves. The pozzulana was removed in the same way that coal is dug — in long avenues crossing each other at various angles, leaving enough of the earth or rock to sus- tain the superincumbent mass. They have fallen in at many places, completely blocking up the way, and, as there is always danger of such an occurrence, visitors are usu- ally taken only a short distance, just to show how they were formed, and for what purpose they were subsequently used. Sad indeed would be the fate of those who should be bur- ied beneath the falling mass, and sadder yet of those whose retreat should be cut off, while they were left to 428 AROUND THE WORLD. GEOUND PLAN OF THE CATACOMBS. wander hopelessly until compelled by weariness and weak- ness to lie down and die. Some thrilling incidents are related as warnings to those who enter, and to repress the curiosity of such as might wish to exceed the limits which prudence has assigned to the exploration of these subter- ranean passages. Several years since, fifteen or twenty youth, connected w4th one of the colleges of Rome, ac- companied by a teacher, descended with candles, taking the usual precautions to secure their safe return to the light SOME TO FLORENCE. 429 of dav, but uot one of thein ever came out to tell the fate of the rest. They either lost their way, and wandered on in hope of finding the path that would lead them back until compelled by exhaustion to lie down and die, or the fall of the earth on the path they had taken cut off their escape. Long and diligent search was made, but to this day nothing is known of how or where in the vast laby- rinth they were overtaken by death. The imaginations of those who go down into those dark recesses picture many a fearful scene which no words have power to express. Later still, an artist entered the Catacombs alone, pro- viding himself with a ball of twine, which he unwound as he wandered on, until he became absorbed with the records and recollections of other days. When he came to himself, the slender thread that bound him to the outer world was missing ; with his dim taper he searched for it in vain ; at last the light grew dim, and was then extinguished. In the horror of despair, he groped from one passage to anoth- er, until at last he stumbled in the darkness, and, in his struggles, his hand caught the thread which brought him back to the world. The peculiar interest attaching to these Catacombs is, that during the early ages of Christianity, in the times of persecutions by the Roman emperors, they were the resort of Cln-istians for safety, and probably, to some extent, for worship. They formed a secure refuge for those who were familiar with their windings, and it is probable that great numbers fled to them to escape the cruel death to which they were devoted by their persecutors. Either at the time they were thus used, or subsequently, they became sepulchres for the Christian dead. Niches were cut longi- tudinally in the sides of the long corridors, sometimes five or six one above another, in which the dead were deposited ; they were then closed with a slab of marble or terra cotta, and sealed with cement. In this way they became populous cities of the dead. Not thousands, but hundreds of thousands, were here laid to sleep their last 430 AROUND THE WORLD. sleep. When tliey were first opened the bodies were in all states of preservation or decay. Some retained their form, in other cases the skeletons only remained, while the great multitude had crumbled into dust or had entirely disap- peared. The entrances to the Catacombs, which have all been un- der the strict supervision of the ecclesiastical authorities, are chiefly through or in connection with the churches, and are few in number, notwithstanding the limitless ex- tent of the excavations. The one most accessible and most frequently visited by strangers is at the Church of St. Se- bastian, a mile or more on the Appian Way, outside of the walls of the city. I had several times been into this as far as the old monk in charge consented to act as guide, and as far, probably, as he was familiar with the windings of the way, beyond which it certainly was not safe to venture alone, as a single turn might bewilder any one, and lead him into an endless labyrinth. An ecclesiastic who was visiting Rome to be present at the council entered at one time with our party, but he soon became alarmed, and en- treated US not to go farther, as we must needs keep togeth- er to have the services of the guide. Having seen all that was to be seen of this, I was desirous to make a more ex- tensive examination of those which had not been so com- pletely rifled of their contents, and learning that the Cata- combs in connection with the Church of St. Agnese, in an- other part of the Campagna, were far more interesting on this account, a party was made up, application was made to the cardinal vicar, and, through the intercession of an American lady, permission to enter was obtained. An in- telligent gentleman who was well acquainted with the place and with its history was deputed to accompany us. We spent a large part of the morning appointed for the visit in wandering through the silent vaults, which, unlike the others, are still filled with the crumbling remains of the early confessors of the Christian faith. The excava- tions are much more regular, and on a larger scale than ROME TO FLORENCE. 43;} those which "sve had previously seen. Instead of being more unsafe, as is generally supposed, they are less liable to crumble and fall. The rock in which the excavations are made is more solid, allowing the passages to be cut with more exactness, and they run often to a great distance in a right line. The roofs are vaulted with regularity, and the sides cut perfectly square. The same niches occur as in the other Catacombs, and rise one above another to the number of five or six, but they have not been touched ex- cepting to remove the slabs and inscriptions. The bones of the dead by hundreds, and even thousands, were lying where they were deposited sixteen or eighteen centuries ago. Occasionally they were in a state of preservation, and not unfrequently were covered with a mineral deposit from the drippings of the rock above, which had assisted in keeping them entire ; in many cases it seemed to have produced a sort of petrification, but generally, where the form of a body, or even of a bone appeared, it would sink and almost vanish under the touch, all substance having gone. The teeth were occasionally undecayed, and, as I took one from its socket, the bone to which it had been at- tached sank immediately away. The bodies had been laid in their narrow couches uncof- tined, and, as the slabs had been removed, all that remained of the sleepers was exposed to view ; but there was nothing repulsive in the sight, as there would be in an ordinary charnel-house, nor any thing melancholy in the place itself. The sacred, Christian associations dispelled such thoughts. These bodies, which had been slumbering quietly for nearly two thousand years, had been laid away in the hope of a coming morning — the morning of the resurrection, when the dust into which they would crumble should be gather- ed again and reanimated, to meet at his coming Him who is the resurrection and the life. Many trembling hearts had been driven by the persecutors into these recesses to escape the sword or the jaws of wild beasts ; but when they ceased to beat, whether through violence or by a natural 4-32 ABOUND THE WORLD. death, they were all and forever at rest. The storms of centuries had j-aged above their heads, armies had met in deadly conflict on the soil above them, but they slept on im- disturbed. Instead of being oppressed with sad or mourn- ful thoughts, a feeling of triumph — of actual joy, came over me in the remembrance of the glorious victories over death and every other foe that had been gained by the host around me. After fighting the good fight of faith, and resisting unto blood, they had gone up to receive the rew^ard and the crown of the martyi'S. When the Catacombs were first opened inscriptions were found on the slabs, some of them rudely cut, and not un- frequently they were accompanied with emblematical de- vices expressive of Christian hope or sentiment. The slabs were removed and set in the wall of the long corridor lead- ing to the Museum of the Vatican, where they may now be seen. Among the most common emblems were the Three Children in the Fiery Furnace, and Daniel in the Lions' Den, doubtless used as emblems of martyi'dom ; the Good Shepherd, with a Lamb on his shoulders ; Noah at the win- dow of the Ark ; the Dove ; an Anchor ; a Fish, the signifi- cance of which as an early Christian emblem is well known ; with representations of the miracles of Christ, etc. I give but a few specimens of the multitude of inscrip- tions : " Valeria dormit in pace" (Valeria sleeps in peace). '' In pace Domini dormit" (He sleeps in the peace of the Lord). " In pace" and " In Christo" occur frequently. The constant occurrence of the word " sleep" as a synonym for death is striking. The following are mere translations of inscriptions : " Lannes, the martyr of Christ, rests here. He suffered under Diocletian." " In the time of the Emperor Adrian, Marius, a young military leader, who had lived long enough : with his blood he gave up his life for Christ. At length he rested in peace. The well-deserving, with tears and fears, erected this in the Ides of December, VI." ROME TO FLORENCE. 433 " Here lies Gordianus, deputy of Gaul, murdered with all liis famil}' for his faith. They rest iu peace. Theophila, his maid, erected this." I can not attempt even the briefest enumeration of the places and objects of interest, ancient and modern, which are in and around E,ome ; it is a world in itself, and I have found by experiment that months would not exhaust the study. The Vatican, the Capitol, the ancient and modern palaces, the Coliseum, the churches, which are also reposi- tories of art ; the Seven Hills, the Appian Way, the sub- urbs, Albano, Frascati, and a thousand ruins, each one of which has its classic historj^, all claim the attention of the traveler, but can not have their record here. There is no other city in Europe where an intelligent traveler can tarry so long with so much interest. But we must pass on. I can not do so, however, without expressing my own pleasure in the thought that Kome, which I had seen only under a dark shadow — the shadow of spiritual despotism, is now in the liglit. The sun is shining on Home as it has not shone for many long centuries, save in the brief period after the Ee volution of 1848. Its people walk the streets breathing the air of freedom — freedom to think their own thoughts and speak their own words, enjoying the protection of a liberal government, even though it be a kingly. Long live Victor Emanuel, and long may he reign over United Italy — at least so long as he pursues the enlightened policy which he has been carrying out since he came to the throne. And ever may the people of Rome rejoice in freedom from ghostly tyranny, the most oppressive of all forms of despot- ism. The temporal power of tlie pope will assuredly never be re-established with " the consent of the governed." As a matter of necessity, owing to the arrangement of the trains, we made a night journey to Florence, entering it in the morning, and greatly enjoying the views of river, and mountain, and vale as we approached the city. Victor Emanuel can not liave set his heart upon making Eome the capital of the new kingdom of Italy on account of its Ee 434 AROUND THE WORLD. i^reater beauty. Tliore is no inland city in Europe more superbly located than Florence. If not a gem in itself, the setting makes it one. The surroundino^ lieio-hts, with the numerous villas, and vineyards, and monasteries that crown the hills, make the sight one to be enjoyed and never for- gotten. The view from San Miniato, which is reached by one of the most beautiful drives in the suburbs of any city in the world, can scarcely be surpassed by any mere inland view. FLORENCE, FEOM SAN MINIATO. And Florence is as attractive as ever in its works of art. The Uffizi and Pitti Palaces, the treasure-houses of paint- ing, have witnessed revolutions raging around them, but their pictures and other treasures remain where they were. It is a marvel as well as a pleasure, after reading of the many changes in the government of these lands, to find its o-alleries of art and all that thev contain untouched. The first Napoleon ruthlessly despoiled Italy, but the sentiment ROME TO FLORENCE. 435 of the world, as well as Lis own changing fortunes, com- pelled him to restore what others have not dared to touch. The removal of the court to Home will make no chano-e in the art treasures of Florence ; they will remain undisturb- ed, and future travelers will find them just where they were found before Victor Emanuel was welcomed to Flor- ence. The days passed quickh' away in visiting and revisiting the galleries, where one can linger for weeks; the Duomo, with its Campanile and Baptistery ; Santa Croce, and Sau Lorenzo, and the many places and objects of interest which have so lono- attracted crowds of travelers to the beautiful city, made more attractive than ever before. An excursion to Pisa, distant about an hour, afforded a sight of the Lean- ing Tower, and of the Cathedral in which still hangs the bronze chandelier, the swinging of which suggested to the philosophical mind of Galileo the theory of the pendulum, the fii'st step toward his demonstration of the nature and order of the solar svstem, for which be came near sufferin Brothers' Valuable Standard Works, LOSSING'S FIELD-BOOK OF THE REVOLUTION. Pictorial Field-Book of the Eevolutiou; or, IllustratiDiis, by Peu aiul Peucil, of the History, Biography, Sceuery, Relics, and Traditions of the War for Independence. By Bknson j. LossiNG. 2 vols., Svo, Cloth, $U 00; Sheep, $15 00; Half Calf, $18 00; Full Turkey Morocco, $22 00. LOSSING'S FIELD-BOOK OF THE WAR OF 1812. Pictorial Field-Book of the War of 1S12 ; or. Illustrations, by Peu and Pencil, of the History, Biography, Sceuery, Relics, and Traditions of the Last War for American Independence. By Benson J. Lossing. With several hundred Engravings on Wood, by Lossing and Barritt, chiefly from Original Sketches by the Author. lOSS pages, Svo, Cloth, $7 00; Sheep, $8 50; Half Calf, $10 00. ALFORD'S GREEK TESTAMENT. The Greek Testament : with a critically revised Text ; a Digest of Various Readings ; Marginal References to Verbal and Idio- matic Usage ; Prolegomena ; and a Critical and Exegetical Commentary. For the Use of Theological Students aud Ministers. By Henky Alfokd, D.D., Dean of Canterbury. Vol. I., containing the Four Gospels. 944 pages, Svo, Cloth, $G 00 ; Sheep, $0 50. ABBOTT'S FREDERICK THE GREAT. The History of Frederick the Second, called Frederick the Great. By Joun S. C. Auuott. Elegantly Illustrated. Svo, Cloth, $5 00. ABBOTT'S HISTORY OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION. The French Revolu- tion of 1TS9, as viewed in the Light of Republican Institutions. By John S. C. Au- BOTT. With 100 Engravings. Svo, Cloth, $5 00. ABBOTT'S NAPOLEON BONAPARTE. The History of Napoleon Bonaparte. By Joun S. C. Aijhott. With Maps, Woodcuts, and Portraits on Steel. 2 vols., Svo, Cloth, $10 00. ABBOTT'S NAPOLEON AT ST. HELENA ; or, Interesting Anecdotes and Remark- able Conversations of the Emperor during the Five aud a Half Years of his Captivity. Collected from the Memorials of Las Casas, O'Meara, Montholou, Antommarchi, and others. By John S. C. Abbott. With Illustrations. Svo, Cloth, $5 00. ADDISON'S COMPLETE WORKS. The Works of Joseph Addison, embracing the whole of the "Spectator." Complete in 3 vols., Svo, Cloth, $G 00. ALCOCK'S JAPAN. The Capital of the Tycoon : a Narrative of a Three Years' Residence in Japan. By Sir Rutuekfokd Aloock, K.C.B., Her Majesty's Envoy Extraordinarv and Minister Plenipotentiary in Japan. With Maps and Engravings. 2 vols., 12mo,"Cloth, $3 50. ALISON'S HISTORY OF EUROPE. Fiebt Sekies : From the Commencement of the French Revolution, in 1789, to the Restoration of the Bourbons, in 1815. [ In addition to the Notes on Chapter LXXVI., which correct the errors of the original work concerning the United States, a copious Analytical Index has been appended to this American edition.] Second Series : Prom the Fall of Napoleon, in 1S15, to the Accession of Louis Napoleon, in 1852. S vols., Svo, Cloth, $16 00. BALDWIN'S PRE-HISTORIC NATIONS. Pre-Historic Nations ; or. Inquiries con- cerning some of the Great Peoples and Civilizations of Antiquity, and their Probable Relation to a still Older Civilization of the Ethiopians or Cushites of Arabia. By John D. Baldwin, Member of the American Oriental Society. 12mo, Cloth, $1 75. BAETH'S NORTH AND CENTRAL AFRICA. Travels and Discoveries in North and Central Africa : being a Journal of an Expedition undertaken under the Auspices of H. B. M.'s Government, in the Years 1S49-1S55. By Heney Babth, Ph.D., D.C.L. Illustrated. 3 vols., Svo, Cloth, $12 00. HENRY WARD BEECHER'S SERMONS. Sermons by Henry Ward Beecher, Plvmouth Church, Brooklyn. Selected from Published and Unpublished Dis- courses, and Revised by their Author. With Steel Portrait. Complete in 2 vols., Svo, Cloth, $5 00. LYMAN BEECHER'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY, &o. Autobiography, Correspondence, &c., of Lyman Beecher, D.D. Edited by his Son, Cuari.es Beeoher. With Three Steel Portraits, and Engravings on Wood. In 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $5 00. BOSWELL'S JOHNSON. The Life of Samuel Johnson. LL.D. Including a Journey to the Hebrides. By James Bosweli., Esq. A New Edition, with numerous Additions and Notes. By John Wilson Ckoker, LL.D., F.R.S. Portrait of Bosweli. 2 vols., Svo, Cloth, $4 00. Harper <5j^ Brothers' Valuable Standard Works. 3 DRAPER'S CIVIL WAR. History of the American Civil War. By Joun W. Dea- PEE, AI.D., LL.D., Professor of Chemistry aud Physiology in the University of New York. In Three Vols. Svo, Cloth, $3 50 per vol. DRAPER'S INTELLECTUAL DEVELOPMENT OP EUROPE. A History of the Intellectual Development of Europe. By Joun W. Drai'er, M.D., LL.D., Profess- or of Chemistry and Physioloj^y in the University of New York. Svo, Cloth, $5 00. DRAPER'S AMERICAN CIVIL POLICY. Thoughts on the Future Civil Policy of America. By John W. Drapzk, M.D., LL.D., Professor of Chemistry and Physiol- ogy in the University of New York. Crown Svo, Cloth, $2 50. DU CHAILLCS AFRICA. Explorations and Adventures in Equatorial Africa : with Accounts of the Manners and Customs of the People, and of the Chase of the Go- rilla, the Crocodile, Leopard, Elephant, Hippopotamus, and other Animals. By Pacl 1!. Do CuAiLLtj. Numerous Illustrations. Svo, Cloth, $5 00. BELLOWS'S OLD WORLD. The Old World in its New Face : Impressions of Eu rope in 1S67-1S63. By He.nky W. Bellows. 2 vols., l'2mo. Cloth, $3 50. BROD HEAD'S HISTORY OF NEW YORK. History of the State of New York. By John Rometn Beodhead. 1609-1691. 2 vols. Svo, Cloth, $3 00 per vol. BROUGHAM'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY. Life and Times of Henet, Loed Beocgham. Written by Himself. In Three Volumes. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00 per vol. . BULWER'S prose WORKS. Miscellaneous Prose Works of Edward Bulwer. Lord Lytton. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3 50. BULWER'S HORACE. The Odes and Epodes of Horace. A Metrical Translation into English. With Introduction aud Commentaries. By Lop.t) Lytton. With Latin Text from the Editions of Orelli, Macleane, and Y^onge. 12mo, Cloth, $1 75. BULWER'S KING ARTHUR. A Poem. By Eael Lytton. New Edition. 12mo, Clotb, $1 T5. BURNS'S LIFE AND WORKS. The Life aud Works of Robert Bums. Edited by Robep.t Chambebs. 4 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $6 00. REINDEER, DOGS, AND SNOW-SHOES. A Journal of Siberian Travel and Ex- plorations made in the Years 1S65-'6T. By Ricuaed J. Busu, late of the Russo- American Telegraph Expedition. Illustrated. Crown Svo, Cloth, $3 00. CARLYLE'S FREDERICK THE GREAT. History of Friedrich II., called Frederick the Great. By Tuomas Caelyle. Portraits, Maps, Plans. &c. 6 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $12 00. CARLYLE'S FRENCH REVOLUTION. History of the French Revolution. Newly Revised by the Author, with Index, &c. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3 50. CARLYLE'S OLIVER CROMWELL. Letters and Speeches of Oliver Cromwell. With Elucidations and Connecting Narrative. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $3 50. CHALMERS'S POSTHOI OUS WORKS. The Posthumous Works of Dr. Chalmers. Edited by his Sou-in-Law, Rev. William Hanna, LL.D. Complete in 9 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $13 50. COLERIDGE'S COMPLETE WORKS. The Complete Works of Samuel Tavlor Coleridge. With an Introductory Essay upon his Philosophical and Theological Opinions. Edited by Professor Suedd. Complete in Seven Vols. With a^'flne Portrait. Small Svo, Cloth, $10 50. CURTIS'S HISTORY' OF THE CONSTITUTION. History of the Origin, Formation, and Adoption of the Constitution of the United States. By Geoeqe Ticknob CuETis. 2 vols., Svo, Cloth, $0 00. DOOLITTLE'S CHINA. Social Life of the Chinese : with some Account of their Re- ligious, Governmental, Educational, and Business Customs and Opinions. With special but not exclusive Reference to Fuhchau. By Rev. JrsTrs Doolittlb, Fourteen Years Member of the Fuhchau Mission of the American Board. Illus- trated with more than 150 characteristic Engravings on Wood. 2 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $5 00. GIBBON'S ROME. History of the Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire. By Ed- ward Gibbon. With Notes by Rev. H. H. Milman and M. Grizox. A new cheap Edition. To which is added a complete Index of the whole Work, and a Portrait of the Author. 6 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $9 00. 4 Harper &= Brothers' Valuable Sta7idard Works. HARPER'S NEW CLASSICAL LIBRARY. Literal Translations. The following Volumes are now ready. Portraits. 12mo, Cloth, $1 50 each. CjiSAR. — ViKGIL. — SaLLUST. — HORACE.— CiCEEo'S OrATIONS. — ClCEEO'S OfFIOEB> &c._CiOERO ON Oratory and Orators.— Tacitus (2 vols.). — Terence. — SoPuooLES. — JtrvE.NAL. — Xenophon. — Homer's Iliau. — Homkr's Odyssey. — Hkrodotus. — Demosthenes. — Thccydides. — ^schylus. — Eitripices (2 vols.). — LiVY (-2 vols.). DAVIS'S CARTHAGE. Carthage and her Remains : being an Account of the Exca- vations and Researches ou the Site of the Phcenician Metropolis in Africa and other adjacent Places. Conducted under the Auspices of Her Majesty's Government. Bv Dr. Davis, F.R.G.S. Profusely Illustrated with Maps, Woodcuts, Chromo- Lithographs, &c. Svo, Cloth, $4 00. EDGE WORTH'S (Miss) NOVELS. With Engravings. 10 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $15 00. GROTE'S HISTORY OF GREECE. 12 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $18 00. HELPS'S SPANISH CONQLTEST. The Spanish Conquest in America, and its Rela- tion to the History of Slavery and to the Government of Colonies. By Arthur Helps. 4 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $6 00. HALE'S (Mrs.) WOMAN'S RECORD. Woman's Record ; or, Biographical Sketches of all Distinguished Women, from the Creation to the Present Time. Arranged in Four Eras, with Selections from Female Writers of each Era. By Mrs. Sarah JosEPUA Hale. Illustrated with more than 200 Portraits. Svo, Cloth, $5 00. HALL'S ARCTIC RESEARCHES. Arctic Researches and Life among the Esqui- maux: being the Narrative of an Expedition in Search of Sir John Franliliu, in the Years IStiO, 1S61, and 1S62. By Charles Francis Hall. With Maps and 100 Illustrations. The Illustrations are from Original Drawings by Charles Parsons, Henry L. Stephens, Solomon Evtinge, W. S. L. Jewett, and Granville Perkins, after Sketches by Captain Hall. 'Svo, Cloth, $5 00. HALLAM'S CONSTITUTIONAL HISTORY OF ENGLAND, from the Accession of Henry VIL to the Death of George II. Svo, Cloth, $2 00. HALLAM'S LITERATURE. Introduction to the Literature of Europe during the Fifteenth, Sixteenth, and Seventeenth Centuries. By Henry Hallam. 2 vols., Svo, Cloth, $4 00. HALLAM'S MIDDLE AGES. State of Europe during the Middle Ages. By Heney Hallam. Svo, Cloth, $2 00. HILDRETH'S HISTORY OP THE L*NITED STATES. First Series : From the First Settlement of the Country to the Adoption of the Federal Constitution. Second Series : From the Adoption of the Federal Constitution to the End of the Sis^teenth Congress. 6 vols., Svo, Cloth, $1S 00. HUME'S HISTORY OF ENGLAND. History of England, from the Invasion of Ju- lius Cfesar to the Abdication of James II., 16SS. By David Hume. A new Edi- tion, with the Author's last Corrections and Improvements. To wliich is Prefix- ed a short Account of his Life, written by Himself. With a Portrait of the Au- thor. 6 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $9 00. JAY'S WORKS. Complete Works of Rev. William Jay : comprising his Sermons, Family Discourses, Morning and Evening Exercises for every Day in the Year, Family Prayers, &c. Author's enlarged Edition, revised. 3 vols., Svo, Cloth, $6 0(t. " JEFFERSON'S DOMESTIC LIFE. The Domestic Life of Thomas Jefferson : com- piled from Familv Letters and Reminiscences by his Great-Grauddaughter, Sarah N. Randolph. With Illustrations. Crown'Svo, Illuminated Cloth, Bev- eled Edges, $2 50. JOHNSON'S COMPLETE WORKS. The Wg Speke, Captain H. M. Indian Army, Fellow and Gold Med- alist of the Royal Geographical Society, Hon. Corresponding Member and Gold Medalist of the French Geographical Society, &c. With Maps and Portraits and numerous Illustrations, chiefly from Drawings by Captain Grant. Svo, Cloth, uniform with Livingstone, Barth, Burton, &c.', $-4 00. STRICKLAND'S (Miss) QUEENS OF SCOTLAND. Lives of theQueens of Scot- land and English Princesses connected with the Regal Succession of Great Brit- ain. By Agnes Strickland. 8 vols., 12mo, Cloth, $12 00. THE STUDENT'S SERIES. France. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00. Gibbon. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00. Greece. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00. Hume. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00. Rome. By Liddell. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00. Old Testament History. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00. New Testament History. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00. Strickland's Queens of England. Abridged. Engravings. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00. Ancieut History of the East. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00. Hallam's Middle Ages. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00. Lyell's Elements of Geology. 12mo, Cloth, $2 00. TENNYSON'S COMPLETE POEMS. The Complete Poems of Alfred Tennyson, Poet Laureate. With numerous Illustrations by Eminent Artists, and "Three Characteristic Portraits. Svo, Paper, 75 cents ; Cloth, $1 25. THOMSON'S LAND AND THE BOOK. The Land and the Book ; or, Biblical Illus- trations drawn from the Manners and Customs, the Scenes and the Scenery, of the Holy Land. By W. M. Thomson, D.D., Twenty-five Years a Missionary of the A.B.C.P.M. in Syria and Palestine. With two elaborate Maps of Palestine, an ac- curate Plan of Jerusalem, and several hundred Engravings, representing the Scen- ery, Topography, and Productions of the Holy Land, and the Costumes, Manners, and Habits of the People. 2 large 12mo vols.. Cloth, $5 00. TYERMAN'S WESLEY. The Life and Times of the Rev. John Wesley, M.A., Found- er of the Methodists. By the Rev. Luke Tyerman, Author of " The Life of Rev. Samuel Wesley." Portraits. 3 vols.. Crown Svo. VAJVIBERY'S CENTRAL ASIA. Travels in Central Asia. Being the Account of a Journey from Teheran across the Turkoman Desert, on the Eastern Shore of the Caspian, to Khiva, Bokhara, and Samarcand, performed in the Year 1SC3. By Arminius Vambert, Member of the Hungarian Academy of Pesth, by whom he was sent on this Scientific Mission. With Map and Woodcuts. Svo, Cloth, $4 50. WOOD'S HOMES WITHOUT HANDS. Homes Without Hands: being a Descrip- tion of the Habitations of Animals, classed according to their Principle of Con- struction. By J. G. Wood, M.A., F.L.S. With about 140 Illustrations. Svo, Cloth, Beveled Edges, $4 50. RARE BOOK COLLECTION THE LIBRARY OF THE UNIVERSITY OF NORTH CAROLINA AT CHAPEL HILL Travel G440 .P95 imiumtmiit t^MBM M«i wktmtmtmiim t»«w«ai>«p«trhi|0W1iJii'ili'iiili'i'iliiaai*i»<»«i>t I y--«i|iai»»>^